Austen, Jane
Sense and Sensibility
The Novels of Jane Austen. R. W. Chapman, ed. 2nd. ed. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1926
1797-1811
AusSeSe3
The family of Dashwood had been long settled in Sussex.
Their estate was large, and their residence was at Norland Park,
in the centre of their property, where, for many
generations, they had lived in so respectable a manner,
as to engage the general good opinion of their surrounding
acquaintance. The late owner of this estate was a single
man, who lived to a very advanced age, and who for many
years of his life, had a constant companion and housekeeper
in his sister. But her death, which happened ten
years before his own, produced a great alteration in his
home; for to supply her loss, he invited and received
into his house the family of his nephew Mr. Henry Dashwood,
the legal inheritor of the Norland estate, and the
person to whom he intended to bequeath it. In the
society of his nephew and niece, and their children, the
old Gentleman's days were comfortably spent. His
attachment to them all increased. The constant attention
of Mr. and Mrs. Henry Dashwood to his wishes, which
proceeded not merely from interest, but from goodness
of heart, gave him every degree of solid comfort which his
age could receive; and the cheerfulness of the children
added a relish to his existence.
By a former marriage, Mr. Henry Dashwood had one
son: by his present lady, three daughters. The son,
a steady respectable young man, was amply provided
for by the fortune of his mother, which had been large,
and half of which devolved on him on his coming of age.
By his own marriage, likewise, which happened soon
afterwards, he added to his wealth. To him therefore
the succession to the Norland estate was not so really
important as to his sisters; for their fortune, independent
AusSeSe4
of what might arise to them from their father's inheriting
that property, could be but small. Their mother had
nothing, and their father only seven thousand pounds in
his own disposal; for the remaining moiety of his first
wife's fortune was also secured to her child, and he had
only a life interest in it.
The old Gentleman died; his will was read, and like
almost every other will, gave as much disappointment as
pleasure. He was neither so unjust, nor so ungrateful,
as to leave his estate from his nephew; -- but he left it
to him on such terms as destroyed half the value of the
bequest. Mr. Dashwood had wished for it more for the
sake of his wife and daughters than for himself or his son:
-- but to his son, and his son's son, a child of four years
old, it was secured, in such a way, as to leave to himself
no power of providing for those who were most dear to
him, and who most needed a provision, by any charge
on the estate, or by any sale of its valuable woods. The
whole was tied up for the benefit of this child, who, in
occasional visits with his father and mother at Norland,
had so far gained on the affections of his uncle, by such
attractions as are by no means unusual in children of two
or three years old; and imperfect articulation, an earnest
desire of having his own way, many cunning tricks, and
a great deal of noise, as to outweigh all the value of all
the attention which, for years, he had received from his
niece and her daughters. He meant not to be unkind
however, and, as a mark of his affection for the three
girls, he left them a thousand pounds a-piece.
Mr. Dashwood's disappointment was, at first, severe;
but his temper was cheerful and sanguine, and he might
reasonably hope to live many years, and by living
economically, lay by a considerable sum from the produce
of an estate already large, and capable of almost immediate
improvement. But the fortune, which had been so tardy
in coming, was his only one twelvemonth. He survived his
uncle no longer; and ten thousand pounds, including the late
legacies, was all that remained for his widow and daughters.
AusSeSe5
His son was sent for, as soon as his danger was known,
and to him Mr. Dashwood recommended, with all the
strength and urgency which illness could command, the
interest of his mother-in-law and sisters.
Mr. John Dashwood had not the strong feelings of
the rest of the family; but he was affected by a recommendation
of such a nature at such a time, and he promised
to do every thing in his power to make them comfortable.
His father was rendered easy by such an assurance, and
Mr. John Dashwood had then leisure to consider how much
there might prudently be in his power to do for them.
He was not an ill-disposed young man, unless to be
rather cold hearted, and rather selfish, is to be ill-disposed:
but he was, in general, well respected; for he conducted
himself with propriety in the discharge of his ordinary
duties. Had he married a more amiable woman, he might
have been made still more respectable than he was: --
he might even have been made amiable himself; for he
was very young when he married, and very fond of his
wife. But Mrs. John Dashwood was a strong caricature
of himself; -- more narrow-minded and selfish.
When he gave his promise to his father, he meditated
within himself to increase the fortunes of his sisters by
the present of a thousand pounds a-piece. He then really
thought himself equal to it. The prospect of four thousand
a-year, in addition to his present income, besides the
remaining half of his own mother's fortune, warmed his
heart and made him feel capable of generosity.
-- "Yes,
he would give them three thousand pounds: it would
be liberal and handsome! It would be enough to make
them completely easy. Three thousand pounds! he
could spare so considerable a sum with little inconvenience."
-- He thought of it all day long, and for many days
successively, and he did not repent.
No sooner was his father's funeral over, than Mrs. John Dashwood,
without sending any notice of her intention
to her mother-in-law, arrived with her child and their
attendants. No one could dispute her right to come;
AusSeSe6
the house was her husband's from the moment of his
father's decease; but the indelicacy of her conduct was
so much the greater, and to a woman in Mrs. Dashwood's
situation, with only common feelings, must have been
highly unpleasing; -- but in her mind there was a sense
of honour so keen, a generosity so romantic, that any
offence of the kind, by whomsoever given or received,
was to her a source of immoveable disgust. Mrs. John Dashwood
had never been a favourite with any of her
husband's family; but she had had no opportunity, till
the present, of shewing them with how little attention
to the comfort of other people she could act when occasion
required it.
So acutely did Mrs. Dashwood feel this ungracious
behaviour, and so earnestly did she despise her daughter-in-law
for it, that, on the arrival of the latter, she would
have quitted the house for ever, had not the entreaty of
her eldest girl induced her first to reflect on the propriety
of going, and her own tender love for all her three children
determined her afterwards to stay, and for their sakes
avoid a breach with their brother.
Elinor, this eldest daughter whose advice was so
effectual, possessed a strength of understanding, and
coolness of judgment, which qualified her, though only
nineteen, to be the counsellor of her mother, and enabled
her frequently to counteract, to the advantage of them
all, that eagerness of mind in Mrs. Dashwood which must
generally have led to imprudence. She had an excellent
heart; -- her disposition was affectionate, and her feelings
were strong; but she knew how to govern them: it was
a knowledge which her mother had yet to learn, and which
one of her sisters had resolved never to be taught.
Marianne's abilities were, in many respects, quite equal
to Elinor's. She was sensible and clever; but eager in
every thing; her sorrows, her joys, could have no
moderation. She was generous, amiable, interesting:
she was every thing but prudent. The resemblance
between her and her mother was strikingly great.
AusSeSe7
Elinor saw, with concern, the excess of her sister's
sensibility; but by Mrs. Dashwood it was valued and
cherished. They encouraged each other now in the
violence of their affliction. The agony of grief which
overpowered them at first, was voluntarily renewed,
was sought for, was created again and again. They
gave themselves up wholly to their sorrow, seeking
increase of wretchedness in every reflection that could
afford it, and resolved against ever admitting consolation
in future. Elinor, too, was deeply afflicted; but
still she could struggle, she could exert herself. She
could consult with her brother, could receive her sister-in-law
on her arrival, and treat her with proper attention;
and could strive to rouse her mother to similar exertion,
and encourage her to similar forbearance.
Margaret, the other sister, was a good-humoured well-disposed
girl; but as she had already imbibed a good
deal of Marianne's romance, without having much of her
sense, she did not, at thirteen, bid fair to equal her sisters
at a more advanced period of life.
AusSeSe8
Mrs. John Dashwood now installed herself mistress
of Norland; and her mother and sisters-in-law were
degraded to the condition of visitors. As such, however,
they were treated by her with quiet civility; and by
her husband with as much kindness as he could feel
towards any body beyond himself, his wife, and their
child. He really pressed them, with some earnestness,
to consider Norland as their home; and, as no plan
appeared so eligible to Mrs. Dashwood as remaining there
till she could accommodate herself with a house in the
neighbourhood, his invitation was accepted.
A continuance in a place where every thing reminded her
of former delight, was exactly what suited her mind. In
seasons of cheerfulness, no temper could be more cheerful
than hers, or possess, in a greater degree, that sanguine
expectation of happiness which is happiness itself. But in
sorrow she must be equally carried away by her fancy, and
as far beyond consolation as in pleasure she was beyond alloy.
Mrs. John Dashwood did not at all approve of what
her husband intended to do for his sisters.
To take
three thousand pounds from the fortune of their dear
little boy, would be impoverishing him to the most
dreadful degree.
She begged him to think again on the
subject.
How could he answer it to himself to rob his
child, and his only child too, of so large a sum? And
what possible claim could the Miss Dashwoods, who
were related to him only by half blood, which she considered
as no relationship at all, have on his generosity
to so large an amount. It was very well known that no
affection was ever supposed to exist between the children
of any man by different marriages; and why was he to
ruin himself, and their poor little Harry, by giving away
all his money to his half sisters?
AusSeSe9
"It was my father's last request to me,"
replied her
husband,
"that I should assist his widow and daughters."
"He did not know what he was talking of, I dare say;
ten to one but he was light-headed at the time. Had he
been in his right senses, he could not have thought of
such a thing as begging you to give away half your fortune
from your own child."
"He did not stipulate for any particular sum, my dear
Fanny; he only requested me, in general terms, to assist
them, and make their situation more comfortable than
it was in his power to do. Perhaps it would have been as
well if he had left it wholly to myself. He could hardly
suppose I should neglect them. But as he required the
promise, I could not do less than give it: at least I thought
so at the time. The promise, therefore, was given, and
must be performed. Something must be done for them
whenever they leave Norland and settle in a new home."
"Well, then, let something be done for them; but
that something need not be three thousand pounds.
Consider,"
she added,
"that when the money is once
parted with, it never can return. Your sisters will marry,
and it will be gone for ever. If, indeed, it could ever be
restored to our little boy --"
"Why, to be sure,"
said her husband, very gravely,
"that would make a great difference. The time may
come when Harry will regret that so large a sum was
parted with. If he should have a numerous family, for
instance, it would be a very convenient addition."
"To be sure it would."
"Perhaps, then, it would be better for all parties if
the sum were diminished one half. -- Five hundred pounds
would be a prodigious increase to their fortunes!"
"Oh! beyond any thing great! What brother on
earth would do half so much for his sisters, even if really
his sisters! And as it is -- only half blood! -- But you
have such a generous spirit!"
"I would not wish to do any thing mean,"
he replied.
"One had rather, on such occasions, do too much than too
AusSeSe10
little. No one, at least, can think I have not done enough
for them: even themselves, they can hardly expect more."
"There is no knowing what they may expect,"
said
the lady,
"but we are not to think of their expectations:
the question is, what you can afford to do."
"Certainly -- and I think I may afford to give them
five hundred pounds a-piece. As it is, without any addition
of mine, they will each have above three thousand
pounds on their mother's death -- a very comfortable
fortune for any young woman."
"To be sure it is: and, indeed, it strikes me that they
can want no addition at all. They will have ten thousand
pounds divided amongst them. If they marry, they will
be sure of doing well, and if they do not, they may all
live very comfortably together on the interest of ten
thousand pounds."
"That is very true, and, therefore, I do not know
whether, upon the whole, it would not be more advisable
to do something for their mother while she lives rather
than for them -- something of the annuity kind I mean. --
My sisters would feel the good effects of it as well as herself.
A hundred a year would make them all perfectly
comfortable."
His wife hesitated a little, however, in giving her
consent to this plan.
"To be sure,"
said she,
"it is better than parting with
fifteen hundred pounds at once. But then if Mrs. Dashwood
should live fifteen years, we shall be completely
taken in."
"Fifteen years! my dearFanny; her life cannot be
worth half that purchase."
"Certainly not; but if you observe, people always
live for ever when there is any annuity to be paid them;
and she is very stout and healthy, and hardly forty.
An annuity is a very serious business; it comes over and
over every year, and there is no getting rid of it. You are
not aware of what you are doing. I have known a great
deal of the trouble of annuities; for my mother was
AusSeSe11
clogged with the payment of three to old superannuated
servants by my father's will, and it is amazing how
disagreeable she found it. Twice every year these
annuities were to be paid; and then there was the trouble
of getting it to them; and then one of them was said to
have died, and afterwards it turned out to be no such
thing. My mother was quite sick of it. Her income was
not her own, she said, with such perpetual claims on it;
and it was the more unkind in my father, because,
otherwise, the money would have been entirely at my
mother's disposal, without any restriction whatever. It
has given me such an abhorrence of annuities, that I am
sure I would not pin myself down to the payment of one
for all the world."
"It is certainly an unpleasant thing,"
replied Mr. Dashwood,
"to have those kind of yearly drains on one's
income. One's fortune, as your mother justly says, is
not one's own. To be tied down to the regular payment
of such a sum, on every rent day, is by no means desirable:
it takes away one's independence."
"Undoubtedly; and after all you have no thanks
for it. They think themselves secure, you do no more
than what is expected, and it raises no gratitude at all.
If I were you, whatever I did should be done at my own
discretion entirely. I would not bind myself to allow
them any thing yearly. It may be very inconvenient
some years to spare a hundred, or even fifty pounds from
our own expences."
"I believe you are right, my love; it will be better
that there should be no annuity in the case; whatever
I may give them occasionally will be of far greater assistance
than a yearly allowance, because they would only
enlarge their style of living if they felt sure of a larger
income, and would not be sixpence the richer for it at
the end of the year. It will certainly be much the best
way. A present of fifty pounds, now and then, will
prevent their ever being distressed for money, and will,
I think be amply discharging my promise to my father."
AusSeSe12
"To be sure it will. Indeed, to say the truth, I am
convinced within myself that your father had no idea
of your giving them any money at all. The assistance
he thought of, I dare say, was only such as might be
reasonably expected of you; for instance, such as looking
out for a comfortable small house for them, helping them
to move their things, and sending them presents of fish
and game, and so forth, whenever they are in season.
I'll lay my life that he meant nothing farther; indeed, it
would be very strange and unreasonable if he did. Do
but consider, my dearMr. Dashwood, how excessively
comfortable your mother-in-law and her daughters may
live on the interest of seven thousand pounds, besides
the thousand pounds belonging to each of the girls,
which brings them in fifty pounds a-year a-piece, and,
of course, they will pay their mother for their board out
of it. Altogether, they will have five hundred a-year
amongst them, and what on earth can four women want
for more than that? -- They will live so cheap! Their
housekeeping will be nothing at all. They will have no
carriage, no horses, and hardly any servants; they will
keep no company, and can have no expences of any kind!
Only conceive how comfortable they will be! Five
hundred a-year! I am sure I cannot imagine how they
will spend half of it; and as to your giving them more,
it is quite absurd to think of it. They will be much more
able to give you something."
"Upon my word,"
said Mr. Dashwood,
"I believe you
are perfectly right. My father certainly could mean
nothing more by his request to me than what you say.
I clearly understand it now, and I will strictly fulfil my
engagement by such acts of assistance and kindness to
them as you have described. When my mother removes
into another house my services shall be readily given to
accommodate her as far as I can. Some little present of
furniture too may be acceptable then."
"Certainly,"
returned Mrs. John Dashwood.
"But,
however, one thing must be considered. When your
AusSeSe13
father and mother moved to Norland, though the furniture
of Stanhill was sold, all the china, plate, and linen was
saved, and is now left to your mother. Her house will
therefore be almost completely fitted up as soon as she
takes it."
"That is a material consideration undoubtedly. A
valuable legacy indeed! And yet some of the plate
would have been a very pleasant addition to our own
stock here."
"Yes; and the set of breakfast china is twice as
handsome as what belongs to this house. A great deal
too handsome, in my opinion, for any place they can ever
afford to live in. But, however, so it is. Your father
thought only of them. And I must say this: that you
owe no particular gratitude to him, nor attention to his
wishes, for we very well know that if he could, he would
have left almost every thing in the world to them."
This argument was irresistible. It gave to his intentions
whatever of decision was wanting before; and he finally
resolved, that it would be absolutely unnecessary, if
not highly indecorous, to do more for the widow and
children of his father, than such kind of neighbourly acts
as his own wife pointed out.
AusSeSe14
Mrs. Dashwood remained at Norland several months;
not from any disinclination to move when the sight of
every well known spot ceased to raise the violent emotion
which it produced for a while; for when her spirits
began to revive, and her mind became capable of some
other exertion than that of heightening its affliction by
melancholy remembrances, she was impatient to be gone,
and indefatigable in her inquiries for a suitable dwelling
in the neighbourhood of Norland; for to remove far
from that beloved spot was impossible. But she could
hear of no situation that at once answered her notions
of comfort and ease, and suited the prudence of her
eldest daughter, whose steadier judgment rejected several
houses as too large for their income, which her mother
would have approved.
Mrs. Dashwood had been informed by her husband of
the solemn promise on the part of his son in their favour,
which gave comfort to his last earthly reflections. She
doubted the sincerity of this assurance no more than he
had doubted it himself, and she thought of it for her
daughters' sake with satisfaction, though as for herself
she was persuaded that a much smaller provision than
7000 l. would support her in affluence. For their brother's
sake too, for the sake of his own heart she rejoiced; and
she reproached herself for being unjust to his merit before,
in believing him incapable of generosity. His attentive
behaviour to herself and his sisters convinced her that
their welfare was dear to him, and, for a long time, she
firmly relied on the liberality of his intentions.
The contempt which she had, very early in their
acquaintance, felt for her daughter-in-law, was very
much increased by the farther knowledge of her character,
which half a year's residence in her family afforded; and
AusSeSe15
perhaps in spite of every consideration of politeness or
maternal affection on the side of the former, the two ladies
might have found it impossible to have lived together
so long, had not a particular circumstance occurred to
give still greater eligibility, according to the opinions of
Mrs. Dashwood, to her daughters' continuance at Norland.
This circumstance was a growing attachment between
her eldest girl and the brother of Mrs. John Dashwood,
a gentlemanlike and pleasing young man, who was introduced
to their acquaintance soon after his sister's establishment
at Norland, and who had since spent the greatest
part of his time there.
Some mothers might have encouraged the intimacy
from motives of interest, for Edward Ferrars was the
eldest son of a man who had died very rich; and some
might have repressed it from motives of prudence, for,
except a trifling sum, the whole of his fortune depended
on the will of his mother. But Mrs. Dashwood was alike
uninfluenced by either consideration. It was enough for
her that he appeared to be amiable, that he loved her
daughter, and that Elinor returned the partiality. It
was contrary to every doctrine of her's that difference of
fortune should keep any couple asunder who were
attracted by resemblance of disposition; and that
Elinor's merit should not be acknowledged by every one
who knew her, was to her comprehension impossible.
Edward Ferrars was not recommended to their good
opinion by any peculiar graces of person or address. He
was not handsome, and his manners required intimacy to
make them pleasing. He was too diffident to do justice to
himself; but when his natural shyness was overcome,
his behaviour gave every indication of an open affectionate
heart. His understanding was good, and his education
had given it solid improvement. But he was neither fitted
by abilities nor disposition to answer the wishes of his
mother and sister, who longed to see him distinguished --
as -- they hardly knew what. They wanted him to make
a fine figure in the world in some manner or other. His
AusSeSe16
mother wished to interest him in political concerns, to
get him into parliament, or to see him connected with
some of the great men of the day. Mrs. John Dashwood
wished it likewise; but in the mean while, till one of
these superior blessings could be attained, it would have
quieted her ambition to see him driving a barouche. But
Edward had no turn for great men or barouches. All
his wishes centered in domestic comfort and the quiet of
private life. Fortunately he had a younger brother who
was more promising.
Edward had been staying several weeks in the house
before he engaged much of Mrs. Dashwood's attention;
for she was, at that time, in such affliction as rendered
her careless of surrounding objects. She saw only that
he was quiet and unobtrusive, and she liked him for it.
He did not disturb the wretchedness of her mind by
ill-timed conversation. She was first called to observe
and approve him farther, by a reflection whichElinor
chanced one day to make on the difference between him
and his sister. It was a contrast which recommended
him most forcibly to her mother.
"It is enough,"
said she;
"to say that he is unlike
Fanny is enough. It implies every thing amiable. I love
him already."
"I think you will like him,"
said Elinor,
"when you
know more of him."
"Like him!"
replied her mother with a smile.
"I
can feel no sentiment of approbation inferior to love."
"You may esteem him."
"I have never yet known what it was to separate
esteem and love."
Mrs. Dashwood now took pains to get acquainted
with him. Her manners were attaching and soon
banished his reserve. She speedily comprehended all
his merits; the persuasion of his regard for Elinor
perhaps assisted her penetration; but she really felt
assured of his worth: and even that quietness of manner
which militated against all her established ideas of what
AusSeSe17
a young man's address ought to be, was no longer
uninteresting when she knew his heart to be warm and
his temper affectionate.
No sooner did she perceive any symptom of love in
his behaviour to Elinor, than she considered their
serious attachment as certain, and looked forward to
their marriage as rapidly approaching.
"In a few months, my dearMarianne,"
said she,
"Elinor will in all probability be settled for life. We
shall miss her; but she will be happy."
"Oh! mama, how shall we do without her?"
"My love, it will be scarcely a separation. We shall
live within a few miles of each other, and shall meet
every day of our lives. You will gain a brother, a real,
affectionate brother. I have the highest opinion in the
world of Edward's heart. But you look grave, Marianne;
do you disapprove your sister's choice?"
"Perhaps,"
said Marianne,
"I may consider it with
some surprise. Edward is very amiable, and I love him
tenderly. But yet -- he is not the kind of young man --
there is a something wanting -- his figure is not striking;
it has none of that grace which I should expect in the
man who could seriously attach my sister. His eyes
want all that spirit, that fire, which at once announce
virtue and intelligence. And besides all this, I am afraid,
mama, he has no real taste. Music seems scarcely to
attract him, and though he admires Elinor's drawings
very much, it is not the admiration of a person who can
understand their worth. It is evident, in spite of his
frequent attention to her while she draws, that in fact
he knows nothing of the matter. He admires as a lover,
not as a connoisseur. To satisfy me, those characters
must be united. I could not be happy with a man whose
taste did not in every point coincide with my own. He
must enter into all my feelings; the same books, the
same music must charm us both. Oh! mama, how
spiritless, how tame was Edward's manner in reading
to us last night! I felt for my sister most severely.
AusSeSe18
Yet she bore it with so much composure, she seemed
scarcely to notice it. I could hardly keep my seat.
To hear those beautiful lines which have frequently
almost driven me wild, pronounced with such impenetrable
calmness, such dreadful indifference!" --
"He would certainly have done more justice to
simple and elegant prose. I thought so at the time;
but you would give him Cowper."
"Nay, mama, if he is not to be animated by Cowper!
-- but we must allow for difference of taste. Elinor
has not my feelings, and therefore she may overlook it,
and be happy with him. But it would have broke my
heart had I loved him, to hear him read with so little
sensibility. Mama, the more I know of the world, the
more am I convinced that I shall never see a man whom
I can really love. I require so much! He must have
all Edward's virtues, and his person and manners must
ornament his goodness with every possible charm."
"Remember, my love, that you are not seventeen.
It is yet too early in life to despair of such an happiness.
Why should you be less fortunate than your mother?
In one circumstance only, my Marianne, may your
destiny be different from her's!"
AusSeSe19
"What a pity it is, Elinor",
said Marianne,
"that
Edward should have no taste for drawing."
"No taste for drawing,"
replied Elinor;
"why
should you think so? He does not draw himself, indeed,
but he has great pleasure in seeing the performance of
other people, and I assure you he is by no means deficient
in natural taste, though he has not had opportunities
of improving it. Had he ever been in the way of learning,
I think he would have drawn very well. He distrusts
his own judgment in such matters so much, that he
is always unwilling to give his opinion on any picture;
but he has an innate propriety and simplicity of taste,
which in general direct him perfectly right."
Marianne was afraid of offending, and said no more
on the subject; but the kind of approbation which
Elinor described as excited in him by the drawings of
other people, was very far from that rapturous delight,
which, in her opinion, could alone be called taste. Yet,
though smiling within herself at the mistake, she
honoured her sister for that blind partiality to Edward
which produced it.
"I hope, Marianne,"
continued Elinor,
"you do not
consider him as deficient in general taste. Indeed,
I think I may say that you cannot, for your behaviour
to him is perfectly cordial, and if that were your opinion,
I am sure you could never be civil to him."
Marianne hardly knew what to say. She would not
wound the feelings of her sister on any account, and yet
to say what she did not believe was impossible. At
length she replied:
"Do not be offended, Elinor, if my praise of him is
not in every thing equal to your sense of his merits. I
have not had so many opportunities of estimating the
AusSeSe20
minuter propensities of his mind, his inclinations and
tastes as you have; but I have the highest opinion in
the world of his goodness and sense. I think him every thing
that is worthy and amiable."
"I am sure,"
replied Elinor with a smile,
"that his
dearest friends could not be dissatisfied with such
commendation as that. I do not perceive how you
could express yourself more warmly."
Marianne was rejoiced to find her sister so easily
pleased.
"Of his sense and his goodness,"
continued Elinor,
"no one can, I think, be in doubt, who has seen him
often enough to engage him in unreserved conversation.
The excellence of his understanding and his principles
can be concealed only by that shyness which too often
keeps him silent. You know enough of him to do justice
to his solid worth. But of his minuter propensities as
you call them, you have from peculiar circumstances
been kept more ignorant than myself. He and I have
been at times thrown a good deal together, while you
have been wholly engrossed on the most affectionate
principle by my mother. I have seen a great deal of
him, have studied his sentiments and heard his opinion
on subjects of literature and taste; and, upon the whole,
I venture to pronounce that his mind is well-informed,
his enjoyment of books exceedingly great, his imagination
lively, his observation just and correct, and his taste
delicate and pure. His abilities in every respect improve
as much upon acquaintance as his manners and person.
At first sight, his address is certainly not striking; and
his person can hardly be called handsome, till the expression
of his eyes, which are uncommonly good, and the
general sweetness of his countenance, is perceived. At
present, I know him so well, that I think him really
handsome; or, at least, almost so. What say you,
Marianne?"
"I shall very soon think him handsome, Elinor, if
I do not now. When you tell me to love him as a brother,
AusSeSe21
I shall no more see imperfection in his face, than I now
do in his heart."
Elinor started at this declaration, and was sorry for
the warmth she had been betrayed into, in speaking
of him. She felt that Edward stood very high in her
opinion. She believed the regard to be mutual; but
she required greater certainty of it to make Marianne's
conviction of their attachment agreeable to her. She
knew that whatMarianne and her mother conjectured
one moment, they believed the next -- that with them,
to wish was to hope, and to hope was to expect. She
tried to explain the real state of the case to her sister.
"I do not attempt to deny,"
said she,
"that I think
very highly of him -- that I greatly esteem, that I like
him."
Marianne here burst forth with indignation --
"Esteem him! Like him! Cold-hearted Elinor! Oh!
worse than cold-hearted! Ashamed of being otherwise. Use
those words again and I will leave the room this moment."
Elinor could not help laughing.
"Excuse me,"
said
she,
"and be assured that I meant no offence to you,
by speaking, in so quiet a way, of my own feelings.
Believe them to be stronger than I have declared;
believe them, in short, to be such as his merit, and the
suspicion -- the hope of his affection for me may warrant,
without imprudence or folly. But farther than this
you must not believe. I am by no means assured of
his regard for me. There are moments when the extent
of it seems doubtful; and till his sentiments are fully
known, you cannot wonder at my wishing to avoid any
encouragement of my own partiality, by believing or
calling it more than it is. In my heart I feel little --
scarcely any doubt of his preference. But there are
other points to be considered besides his inclination.
He is very far from being independent. What his mother
really is we cannot know; but, from Fanny's occasional
mention of her conduct and opinions, we have never
been disposed to think her amiable; and I am very much
AusSeSe22
mistaken if Edward is not himself aware that there
would be many difficulties in his way, if he were to wish
to marry a woman who had not either a great fortune
or high rank."
Marianne was astonished to find how much the
imagination of her mother and herself had outstripped
the truth.
"And you really are not engaged to him!"
said she.
"Yet it certainly soon will happen. But two advantages
will proceed from this delay. I shall not lose you so
soon, and Edward will have greater opportunity of
improving that natural taste for your favourite pursuit
which must be so indispensably necessary to your
future felicity. Oh! if he should be so far stimulated
by your genius as to learn to draw himself, how delightful
it would be!"
Elinor had given her real opinion to her sister. She
could not consider her partiality for Edward in so
prosperous a state as Marianne had believed it.
There
was, at times, a want of spirits about him which, if it
did not denote indifference, spoke a something almost
as unpromising. A doubt of her regard, supposing him
to feel it, need not give him more than inquietude. It
would not be likely to produce that dejection of mind
which frequently attended him. A more reasonable
cause might be found in the dependent situation which
forbad the indulgence of his affection.
She knew that
his mother neither behaved to him so as to make his
home comfortable at present, nor to give him any assurance
that he might form a home for himself, without
strictly attending to her views for his aggrandizement.
With such a knowledge as this, it was impossible for
Elinor to feel easy on the subject. She was far from
depending on that result of his preference of her, which
her mother and sister still considered as certain. Nay,
the longer they were together the more doubtful seemed
the nature of his regard; and sometimes, for a few painful
minutes, she believed it to be no more than friendship.
AusSeSe23
But, whatever might really be its limits, it was enough,
when perceived by his sister, to make her uneasy; and
at the same time, (which was still more common,) to
make her uncivil. She took the first opportunity of
affronting her mother-in-law on the occasion, talking to
her so expressively of her brother's great expectations,
of Mrs. Ferrars's resolution that both her sons should
marry well, and of the danger attending any young
woman who attempted to draw him in; that Mrs. Dashwood
could neither pretend to be unconscious,
nor endeavour to be calm. She gave her an answer
which marked her contempt, and instantly left the room,
resolving that, whatever might be the inconvenience or
expense of so sudden a removal, her beloved Elinor
should not be exposed another week to such insinuations.
In this state of her spirits, a letter was delivered to
her from the post, which contained a proposal particularly
well timed. It was the offer of a small house,
on very easy terms, belonging to a relation of her own,
a gentleman of consequence and property in Devonshire.
The letter was from this gentleman himself, and written
in the true spirit of friendly accommodation. He
understood that she was in need of a dwelling, and though
the house he now offered her was merely a cottage, he
assured her that every thing should be done to it which
she might think necessary, if the situation pleased her.
He earnestly pressed her, after giving the particulars of
the house and garden, to come with her daughters to
Barton Park, the place of his own residence, from whence
she might judge, herself, whether Barton Cottage, for
the houses were in the same parish, could, by any alteration,
be made comfortable to her. He seemed really
anxious to accommodate them, and the whole of his
letter was written in so friendly a style as could not fail
of giving pleasure to his cousin; more especially at
a moment when she was suffering under the cold and
unfeeling behaviour of her nearer connections. She
needed no time for deliberation or inquiry. Her resolution
AusSeSe24
was formed as she read. The situation of Barton,
in a county so far distant from Sussex as Devonshire,
which, but a few hours before, would have been a sufficient
objection to outweigh every possible advantage
belonging to the place, was now its first recommendation.
To quit the neighbourhood of Norland was no longer an
evil; it was an object of desire; it was a blessing, in
comparison of the misery of continuing her daughter-in-law's
guest: and to remove for ever from that
beloved place would be less painful than to inhabit
or visit it while such a woman was its mistress.
She
instantly wrote Sir John Middleton her acknowledgment
of his kindness, and her acceptance of his proposal;
and then hastened to shew both letters to her daughters,
that she might be secure of their approbation before her
answer were sent.
Elinor had always thought it would be more prudent
for them to settle at some distance from Norland than
immediately amongst their present acquaintance. On
that head, therefore, it was not for her to oppose her
mother's intention of removing into Devonshire. The
house, too, as described by Sir John, was on so simple
a scale, and the rent so uncommonly moderate, as to
leave her no right of objection on either point; and,
therefore, though it was not a plan which brought any
charm to her fancy, though it was a removal from the
vicinity of Norland beyond her wishes, she made no
attempt to dissuade her mother from sending her letter
of acquiescence.
AusSeSe25
No sooner was her answer dispatched, than Mrs. Dashwood
indulged herself in the pleasure of announcing to
her son-in-law and his wife that
she was provided with
an house, and should incommode them no longer than
till every thing were ready for her inhabiting it.
They
heard her with surprise. Mrs. John Dashwood said
nothing; but her husband civilly hoped
that she would
not be settled far from Norland.
She had great satisfaction
in replying that she was going into Devonshire. --
Edward turned hastily towards her, on hearing this,
and, in a voice of surprise and concern, which required
no explanation to her, repeated,
"Devonshire! Are
you, indeed, going there? So far from hence! And to
what part of it?"
She explained the situation. It was
within four miles northward of Exeter.
"It is but a cottage,"
she continued,
"but I hope
to see many of my friends in it. A room or two can
easily be added; and if my friends find no difficulty
in travelling so far to see me, I am sure I will find none
in accommodating them."
She concluded with a very kind invitation to Mr. and
Mrs. John Dashwood to visit her at Barton; and to
Edward she gave one with still greater affection. Though
her late conversation with her daughter-in-law had
made her resolve on remaining at Norland no longer than
was unavoidable, it had not produced the smallest effect
on her in that point to which it principally tended.
To separate Edward and Elinor was as far from being
her object as ever; and she wished to shew Mrs. John Dashwood
by this pointed invitation to her brother, how
totally she disregarded her disapprobation of the match.
Mr. John Dashwood told his mother again and again
how exceedingly sorry he was that she had taken an
house at such a distance from Norland as to prevent
AusSeSe26
his being of any service to her in removing her furniture.
He really felt conscientiously vexed on the occasion;
for the very exertion to which he had limited the
performance of his promise to his father was by this
arrangement rendered impracticable. -- The furniture
was all sent round by water. It chiefly consisted of
household linen, plate, china, and books, with an
handsome pianoforte of Marianne's. Mrs. John Dashwood
saw the packages depart with a sigh: she could
not help feeling it hard that as Mrs. Dashwood's income
would be so trifling in comparison with their own, she
should have any handsome article of furniture.
Mrs. Dashwood took the house for a twelvemonth;
it was ready furnished, and she might have immediate
possession. No difficulty arose on either side in the
agreement; and she waited only for the disposal of
her effects at Norland, and to determine her future
household, before she set off for the west; and this,
as she was exceedingly rapid in the performance of
every thing that interested her, was soon done. -- The
horses which were left her by her husband, had been
sold soon after his death, and an opportunity now offering
of disposing of her carriage, she agreed to sell that likewise
at the earnest advice of her eldest daughter. For
the comfort of her children, had she consulted only her
own wishes, she would have kept it; but the discretion
of Elinor prevailed. Her wisdom too limited the number
of their servants to three; two maids and a man, with
whom they were speedily provided from amongst those
who had formed their establishment at Norland.
The man and one of the maids were sent off immediately
into Devonshire, to prepare the house for their
mistress's arrival; for as Lady Middleton was entirely
unknown to Mrs. Dashwood, she preferred going directly
to the cottage to being a visitor at Barton Park; and
she relied so undoubtingly on Sir John's description
of the house, as to feel no curiosity to examine it herself
till she entered it as her own. Her eagerness to be gone
AusSeSe27
from Norland was preserved from diminution by the
evident satisfaction of her daughter-in-law in the prospect
of her removal; a satisfaction which was but feebly
attempted to be concealed under a cold invitation to
her to defer her departure. Now was the time when her
son-in-law's promise to his father might with particular
propriety be fulfilled. Since he had neglected to do it
on first coming to the estate, their quitting his house
might be looked on as the most suitable period for its
accomplishment. But Mrs. Dashwood began shortly
to give over every hope of the kind, and to be convinced,
from the general drift of his discourse, that his assistance
extended no farther than their maintenance for six
months at Norland. He so frequently talked of the
increasing expenses of housekeeping, and of the perpetual
demands upon his purse, which a man of any consequence
in the world was beyond calculation exposed to, that he
seemed rather to stand in need of more money himself
than to have any design of giving money away.
In a very few weeks from the day which brought
Sir John Middleton's first letter to Norland, every thing
was so far settled in their future abode as to enable
Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters to begin their journey.
Many were the tears shed by them in their last adieus
to a place so much beloved.
"Dear, dear Norland!"
said Marianne, as she wandered alone before the house,
on the last evening of their being there;
"when shall
I cease to regret you! -- when learn to feel a home
elsewhere! -- Oh! happy house, could you know what
I suffer in now viewing you from this spot, from whence
perhaps I may view you no more! -- And you, ye well-known
trees! -- but you will continue the same. -- No
leaf will decay because we are removed, nor any branch
become motionless although we can observe you no
longer! -- No; you will continue the same; unconscious
of the pleasure or the regret you occasion, and insensible
of any change in those who walk under your shade! --
But who will remain to enjoy you?"
AusSeSe28
The first part of their journey was performed in too
melancholy a disposition to be otherwise than tedious
and unpleasant. But as they drew towards the end of
it, their interest in the appearance of a country which
they were to inhabit overcame their dejection, and
a view of Barton Valley as they entered it gave them
cheerfulness. It was a pleasant fertile spot, well wooded,
and rich in pasture. After winding along it for more
than a mile, they reached their own house. A small
green court was the whole of its demesne in front; and
a neat wicket gate admitted them into it.
As a house, Barton Cottage, though small, was comfortable
and compact; but as a cottage it was defective,
for the building was regular, the roof was tiled, the
window shutters were not painted green, nor were the
walls covered with honeysuckles. A narrow passage
led directly through the house into the garden behind.
On each side of the entrance was a sitting room, about
sixteen feet square; and beyond them were the offices
and the stairs. Four bed-rooms and two garrets formed
the rest of the house. It had not been built many
years and was in good repair. In comparison of Norland,
it was poor and small indeed! -- but the tears which
recollection called forth as they entered the house were
soon dried away. They were cheered by the joy of the
servants on their arrival, and each for the sake of the
others resolved to appear happy. It was very early
in September; the season was fine, and from first
seeing the place under the advantage of good weather,
they received an impression in its favour which was of
material service in recommending it to their lasting
approbation.
The situation of the house was good. High hills rose
AusSeSe29
immediately behind, and at no great distance on each
side; some of which were open downs, the others
cultivated and woody. The village of Barton was chiefly
on one of these hills, and formed a pleasant view from
the cottage windows. The prospect in front was more
extensive; it commanded the whole of the valley, and
reached into the country beyond. The hills which
surrounded the cottage terminated the valley in that
direction; under another name, and in another course,
it branched out again between two of the steepest of
them.
With the size and furniture of the house Mrs. Dashwood
was upon the whole well satisfied; for though her
former style of life rendered many additions to the latter
indispensable, yet to add and improve was a delight to
her; and she had at this time ready money enough to
supply all that was wanted of greater elegance to the
apartments.
"As for the house itself, to be sure,"
said she,
"it is too small for our family, but we will
make ourselves tolerably comfortable for the present,
as it is too late in the year for improvements. Perhaps
in the spring, if I have plenty of money, as I dare say
I shall, we may think about building. These parlours
are both too small for such parties of our friends as I
hope to see often collected here; and I have some
thoughts of throwing the passage into one of them with
perhaps a part of the other, and so leave the remainder
of that other for an entrance; this, with a new drawing-room
which may be easily added, and a bed-chamber
and garret above, will make it a very snug little cottage.
I could wish the stairs were handsome. But one must
not expect every thing; though I suppose it would be
no difficult matter to widen them. I shall see how
much I am before-hand with the world in the spring,
and we will plan our improvements accordingly."
In the mean time, till all these alterations could be
made from the savings of an income of five hundred
a-year by a woman who never saved in her life, they
AusSeSe30
were wise enough to be contented with the house as it
was; and each of them was busy in arranging their
particular concerns, and endeavouring, by placing
around them their books and other possessions, to form
themselves a home. Marianne's pianoforte was unpacked
and properly disposed of; and Elinor's drawings were
affixed to the walls of their sitting room.
In such employments as these they were interrupted
soon after breakfast the next day by the entrance of
their landlord, who called to welcome them to Barton,
and to offer them every accommodation from his own
house and garden in which their's might at present be
deficient. Sir John Middleton was a good looking man
about forty. He had formerly visited at Stanhill, but
it was too long ago for his young cousins to remember
him. His countenance was thoroughly good-humoured;
and his manners were as friendly as the style of his
letter. Their arrival seemed to afford him real satisfaction,
and their comfort to be an object of real solicitude
to him. He said much of his earnest desire of their
living in the most sociable terms with his family, and
pressed them so cordially to dine at Barton Park every
day till they were better settled at home, that, though
his entreaties were carried to a point of perseverance
beyond civility, they could not give offence. His kindness
was not confined to words; for within an hour after
he left them, a large basket full of garden stuff and fruit
arrived from the park, which was followed before the end
of the day by a present of game. He insisted moreover
on conveying all their letters to and from the post for
them, and would not be denied the satisfaction of sending
them his newspaper every day.
Lady Middleton had sent a very civil message by him,
denoting her intention of waiting on Mrs. Dashwood
as soon as she could be assured that her visit would be
no inconvenience; and as this message was answered
by an invitation equally polite, her ladyship was introduced
to them the next day.
AusSeSe31
They were of course very anxious to see a person on
whom so much of their comfort at Barton must depend;
and the elegance of her appearance was favourable to
their wishes. Lady Middleton was not more than six
or seven and twenty; her face was handsome, her
figure tall and striking, and her address graceful. Her
manners had all the elegance which her husband's
wanted. But they would have been improved by some
share of his frankness and warmth; and her visit was
long enough to detract something from their first
admiration, by shewing that though perfectly well-bred,
she was reserved, cold, and had nothing to say for herself
beyond the most common-place inquiry or remark.
Conversation however was not wanted, for Sir John
was very chatty, and Lady Middleton had taken the
wise precaution of bringing with her their eldest child,
a fine little boy about six years old, by which means
there was one subject always to be recurred to by the
ladies in case of extremity, for they had to inquire his
name and age, admire his beauty, and ask him questions
which his mother answered for him, while he hung
about her and held down his head, to the great surprise
of her ladyship, who
wondered at his being so shy before
company as he could make noise enough at home.
On
every formal visit a child ought to be of the party, by
way of provision for discourse. In the present case it
took up ten minutes to determine whether the boy were
most like his father or mother, and in what particular he
resembled either, for of course every body differed, and
every body was astonished at the opinion of the others.
An opportunity was soon to be given to the Dashwoods
of debating on the rest of the children, as Sir John
would not leave the house without securing their promise
of dining at the park the next day.
AusSeSe32
Barton Park was about half a mile from the cottage.
The ladies had passed near it in their way along the
valley, but it was screened from their view at home by
the projection of an hill. The house was large and
handsome; and the Middletons lived in a style of equal
hospitality and elegance. The former was for Sir John's
gratification, the latter for that of his lady. They were
scarcely ever without some friends staying with them
in the house, and they kept more company of every
kind than any other family in the neighbourhood. It
was necessary to the happiness of both; for however
dissimilar in temper and outward behaviour, they
strongly resembled each other in that total want of
talent and taste which confined their employments,
unconnected with such as society produced, within
a very narrow compass. Sir John was a sportsman,
Lady Middleton a mother. He hunted and shot, and
she humoured her children; and these were their only
resources. Lady Middleton had the advantage of being
able to spoil her children all the year round, while
Sir John's independent employments were in existence
only half the time. Continual engagements at home and
abroad, however, supplied all the deficiencies of nature
and education; supported the good spirits of Sir John,
and gave exercise to the good-breeding of his wife.
Lady Middleton piqued herself upon the elegance of
her table, and of all her domestic arrangements; and
from this kind of vanity was her greatest enjoyment in
any of their parties. But Sir John's satisfaction in
society was much more real; he delighted in collecting
about him more young people than his house would
hold, and the noisier they were the better was he pleased.
He was a blessing to all the juvenile part of the neighbourhood,
AusSeSe33
for in summer he was for ever forming parties
to eat cold ham and chicken out of doors, and in winter
his private balls were numerous enough for any young
lady who was not suffering under the insatiable appetite
of fifteen.
The arrival of a new family in the country was always
a matter of joy to him, and in every point of view he
was charmed with the inhabitants he had now procured
for his cottage at Barton. The Miss Dashwoods were
young, pretty, and unaffected. It was enough to secure
his good opinion; for to be unaffected was all that a
pretty girl could want to make her mind as captivating
as her person. The friendliness of his disposition made
him happy in accommodating those, whose situation
might be considered, in comparison with the past, as
unfortunate. In shewing kindness to his cousins
therefore he had the real satisfaction of a good heart;
and in settling a family of females only in his cottage,
he had all the satisfaction of a sportsman; for a sportsman,
though he esteems only those of his sex who are
sportsmen likewise, is not often desirous of encouraging
their taste by admitting them to a residence within
his own manor.
Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters were met at the
door of the house by Sir John, who welcomed them to
Barton Park with unaffected sincerity; and as he
attended them to the drawing room repeated to the
young ladies the concern which the same subject had
drawn from him the day before, at being unable to
get any smart young men to meet them.
They would
see,
he said,
only one gentleman there besides himself;
a particular friend who was staying at the park, but who
was neither very young nor very gay. He hoped they
would all excuse the smallness of the party, and could
assure them it should never happen so again. He had
been to several families that morning in hopes of
procuring some addition to their number, but it was
moonlight and every body was full of engagements.
AusSeSe34
Luckily Lady Middleton's mother had arrived at Barton
within the last hour, and as she was a very cheerful agreeable
woman, he hoped the young ladies would not find it
so very dull as they might imagine.
The young ladies, as
well as their mother, were perfectly satisfied with having
two entire strangers of the party, and wished for no more.
Mrs. Jennings, Lady Middleton's mother, was a good-humoured,
merry, fat, elderly woman, who talked a great
deal, seemed very happy, and rather vulgar. She was
full of jokes and laughter, and before dinner was over
had said many witty things on the subject of lovers and
husbands; hoped they had not left their hearts behind
them in Sussex, and pretended to see them blush
whether they did or not. Marianne was vexed at it
for her sister's sake, and turned her eyes towards Elinor
to see how she bore these attacks, with an earnestness
which gave Elinor far more pain than could arise from
such common-place raillery as Mrs. Jennings's.
Colonel Brandon, the friend of Sir John, seemed no
more adapted by resemblance of manner to be his
friend, than Lady Middleton was to be his wife, or
Mrs. Jennings to be Lady Middleton's mother. He was
silent and grave. His appearance however was not
unpleasing, in spite of his being in the opinion of Marianne
and Margaret an absolute old bachelor, for he was on
the wrong side of five and thirty; but though his face
was not handsome his countenance was sensible, and
his address was particularly gentlemanlike.
There was nothing in any of the party which could
recommend them as companions to the Dashwoods;
but the cold insipidity of Lady Middleton was so
particularly repulsive, that in comparison of it the
gravity of Colonel Brandon, and even the boisterous
mirth of Sir John and his mother-in-law was interesting.
Lady Middleton seemed to be roused to enjoyment only
by the entrance of her four noisy children after dinner,
who pulled her about, tore her clothes, and put an end to
every kind of discourse except what related to themselves.
AusSeSe35
In the evening, as Marianne was discovered to be
musical, she was invited to play. The instrument was
unlocked, every body prepared to be charmed, and
Marianne, who sang very well, at their request went
through the chief of the songs whichLady Middleton
had brought into the family on her marriage, and which
perhaps had lain ever since in the same position on the
pianoforte=, for her ladyship had celebrated that event
by giving up music, although by her mother's account
she had played extremely well, and by her own was
very fond of it.
Marianne's performance was highly applauded. Sir John
was loud in his admiration at the end of every
song, and as loud in his conversation with the others
while every song lasted. Lady Middleton frequently
called him to order, wondered how any one's attention
could be diverted from music for a moment, and asked
Marianne to sing a particular song whichMarianne
had just finished. Colonel Brandon alone, of all the
party, heard her without being in raptures. He paid
her only the compliment of attention; and she felt
a respect for him on the occasion, which the others had
reasonably forfeited by their shameless want of taste.
His pleasure in music, though it amounted not to that
extatic delight which alone could sympathize with her
own, was estimable when contrasted against the horrible
insensibility of the others; and she was reasonable
enough to allow that a man of five and thirty might well
have outlived all acuteness of feeling and every exquisite
power of enjoyment. She was perfectly disposed to
make every allowance for the colonel's advanced state
of life which humanity required.
AusSeSe36
Mrs. Jennings was a widow, with an ample jointure.
She had only two daughters, both of whom she had
lived to see respectably married, and she had now
therefore nothing to do but marry all the rest of the
world. In the promotion of this object she was zealously
active, as far as her ability reached; and missed no
opportunity of projecting weddings among all the young
people of her acquaintance. She was remarkably quick
in the discovery of attachments, and had enjoyed the
advantage of raising the blushes and the vanity of many
a young lady by insinuations of her power over such
a young man; and this kind of discernment enabled
her soon after her arrival at Barton decisively to pronounce
that Colonel Brandon was very much in love
with Marianne Dashwood. She rather suspected it to
be so, on the very first evening of their being together,
from his listening so attentively while she sang to them;
and when the visit was returned by the Middletons'
dining at the cottage, the fact was ascertained by his
listening to her again. It must be so. She was perfectly
convinced of it. It would be an excellent match, for
he was rich and she was handsome. Mrs. Jennings had
been anxious to see Colonel Brandon well married, ever
since her connection with Sir John first brought him
to her knowledge; and she was always anxious to get
a good husband for every pretty girl.
The immediate advantage to herself was by no means
inconsiderable, for it supplied her with endless jokes
against them both. At the park she laughed at the
colonel, and in the cottage at Marianne. To the former
her raillery was probably, as far as it regarded only
himself, perfectly indifferent; but to the latter it was
at first incomprehensible; and when its object was
AusSeSe37
understood, she hardly knew whether most to laugh
at its absurdity, or censure its impertinence, for she
considered it as an unfeeling reflection on the colonel's
advanced years, and on his forlorn condition as an old
bachelor.
Mrs. Dashwood, who could not think a man five years
younger than herself, so exceedingly ancient as he
appeared to the youthful fancy of her daughter, ventured
to clear Mrs. Jennings from the probability of wishing
to throw ridicule on his age.
"But at least, mama, you cannot deny the absurdity
of the accusation, though you may not think it intentionally
ill-natured. Colonel Brandon is certainly
younger than Mrs. Jennings, but he is old enough to
be my father; and if he were ever animated enough to
be in love, must have long outlived every sensation of
the kind. It is too ridiculous! When is a man to be
safe from such wit, if age and infirmity will not protect
him?"
"Infirmity!"
said Elinor,
"do you call Colonel Brandon
infirm? I can easily suppose that his age may
appear much greater to you than to my mother; but
you can hardly deceive yourself as to his having the
use of his limbs!"
"Did not you hear him complain of the rheumatism?
and is not that the commonest infirmity of declining
life?"
"My dearest child,"
said her mother laughing,
"at
this rate you must be in continual terror of my decay;
and it must seem to you a miracle that my life has
been extended to the advanced age of forty."
"Mama, you are not doing me justice. I know very
well that Colonel Brandon is not old enough to make
his friends yet apprehensive of losing him in the course
of nature. He may live twenty years longer. But thirty-five
has nothing to do with matrimony."
"Perhaps,"
said Elinor,
"thirty-five and seventeen
had better not have any thing to do with matrimony
AusSeSe38
together. But if there should by any chance happen
to be a woman who is single at seven and twenty, I
should not think Colonel Brandon's being thirty-five
any objection to his marrying her."
"A woman of seven and twenty,"
said Marianne,
after pausing a moment,
"can never hope to feel or
inspire affection again, and if her home be uncomfortable,
or her fortune small, I can suppose that she might bring
herself to submit to the offices of a nurse, for the sake
of the provision and security of a wife. In his marrying
such a woman therefore there would be nothing unsuitable.
It would be a compact of convenience, and the
world would be satisfied. In my eyes it would be no
marriage at all, but that would be nothing. To me it
would seem only a commercial exchange, in which each
wished to be benefited at the expense of the other."
"It would be impossible, I know,"
replied Elinor,
"to convince you that a woman of seven and twenty
could feel for a man of thirty-five any thing near enough
to love, to make him a desirable companion to her. But
I must object to your dooming Colonel Brandon and
his wife to the constant confinement of a sick chamber,
merely because he chanced to complain yesterday (a
very cold damp day) of a slight rheumatic feel in one
of his shoulders."
"But he talked of flannel waistcoats,"
said Marianne;
"and with me a flannel waistcoat is invariably connected
with the aches, cramps, rheumatisms, and every
species of ailment that can afflict the old and the feeble."
"Had he been only in a violent fever, you would not
have despised him half so much. Confess, Marianne,
is not there something interesting to you in the flushed
cheek, hollow eye, and quick pulse of a fever?"
Soon after this, upon Elinor's leaving the room,
"Mama,"
said Marianne,
"I have an alarm on the
subject of illness, which I cannot conceal from you.
I am sure Edward Ferrars is not well. We have now
been here almost a fortnight, and yet he does not come.
AusSeSe39
Nothing but real indisposition could occasion this
extraordinary delay. What else can detain him at
Norland?"
"Had you any idea of his coming so soon?"
said
Mrs. Dashwood.
"I had none. On the contrary, if
I have felt any anxiety at all on the subject, it has been
in recollecting that he sometimes shewed a want of
pleasure and readiness in accepting my invitation, when
I talked of his coming to Barton. Does Elinor expect
him already?"
"I have never mentioned it to her, but of course
she must."
"I rather think you are mistaken, for when I was
talking to her yesterday of getting a new grate for the
spare bedchamber, she observed that there was no
immediate hurry for it, as it was not likely that the
room would be wanted for some time."
"How strange this is! what can be the meaning of
it! But the whole of their behaviour to each other has
been unaccountable! How cold, how composed were
their last adieus! How languid their conversation the
last evening of their being together! In Edward's
farewell there was no distinction between Elinor and
me: it was the good wishes of an affectionate brother
to both. Twice did I leave them purposely together
in the course of the morning, and each time did he
most unaccountably follow me out of the room. And
Elinor, in quitting Norland and Edward, cried not as
I did. Even now her self-command is invariable. When
is she dejected or melancholy? When does she try to
avoid society, or appear restless and dissatisfied in it?"
AusSeSe40
The Dashwoods were now settled at Barton with
tolerable comfort to themselves. The house and the
garden, with all the objects surrounding them, were now
become familiar, and the ordinary pursuits which had
given to Norland half its charms, were engaged in again
with far greater enjoyments than Norland had been able
to afford, since the loss of their father. Sir John Middleton,
who called on them every day for the first
fortnight, and who was not in the habit of seeing much
occupation at home, could not conceal his amazement
on finding them always employed.
Their visitors, except those from Barton Park, were
not many; for, in spite of Sir John's urgent entreaties
that they would mix more in the neighbourhood, and
repeated assurances of his carriage being always at their
service, the independence of Mrs. Dashwood's spirit
overcame the wish of society for her children; and she
was resolute in declining to visit any family beyond the
distance of a walk. There were but few who could be
so classed; and it was not all of them that were attainable.
About a mile and a half from the cottage, along
the narrow winding valley of Allenham, which issued
from that of Barton, as formerly described, the girls
had, in one of their earliest walks, discovered an ancient
respectable looking mansion, which, by reminding them
a little of Norland, interested their imagination and made
them wish to be better acquainted with it. But they
learnt, on inquiry, that its possessor, an elderly lady of
very good character, was unfortunately too infirm to
mix with the world, and never stirred from home.
The whole country about them abounded in beautiful
walks. The high downs which invited them from
almost every window of the cottage to seek the exquisite
AusSeSe41
enjoyment of air on their summits, were an happy
alternative when the dirt of the valleys beneath shut
up their superior beauties; and towards on of these
hills did Marianne and Margaret one memorable morning
direct their steps, attracted by the partial sunshine of
a showery sky, and unable longer to bear the confinement
which the settled rain of the two preceding days
had occasioned. The weather was not tempting enough
to draw the two others from their pencil and their book,
in spite of Marianne's declaration that the day would
be lastingly fair, and that every threatening cloud
would be drawn off from their hills; and the two girls
set off together.
They gaily ascended the downs, rejoicing in their own
penetration at every glimpse of blue sky; and when
they caught in their faces the animating gales of an
high south-westerly wind, they pitied the fears which had
prevented their mother and Elinor from sharing such
delightful sensations.
"Is there a felicity in the world,"
said Marianne,
"superior to this? -- Margaret, we will walk here at
least two hours."
Margaret agreed, and they pursued their way against
the wind, resisting it with laughing delight for about
twenty minutes longer, when suddenly the clouds
united over their heads, and a driving rain set full in
their face. -- Chagrined and surprised, they were obliged,
though unwillingly, to turn back, for no shelter was
nearer than their own house. One consolation however
remained for them, to which the exigence of the moment
gave more than usual propriety; it was that of running
with all possible speed down the steep side of the hill
which led immediately to their garden gate.
They set off. Marianne had at first the advantage,
but a false step brought her suddenly to the ground,
and Margaret, unable to stop herself to assist her, was
involuntarily hurried along, and reached the bottom in
safety.
AusSeSe42
A gentleman carrying a gun, with two pointers playing
round him, was passing up the hill and within a few
yards of Marianne, when her accident happened. He
put down his gun and ran to her assistance. She had
raised herself from the ground, but her foot had been
twisted in the fall, and she was scarcely able to stand.
The gentleman offered his services, and perceiving that
her modesty declined what her situation rendered
necessary, took her up in his arms without farther
delay, and carried her down the hill. Then passing
through the garden, the gate of which had been left
open by Margaret, he bore her directly into the house,
whither Margaret was just arrived, and quitted not his
hold till he had seated her in a chair in the parlour.
Elinor and her mother rose up in amazement at their
entrance, and while the eyes of both were fixed on him
with an evident wonder and a secret admiration which
equally sprung from his appearance, he apologized for
his intrusion by relating its cause, in a manner so frank
and so graceful, that his person, which was uncommonly
handsome, received additional charms from his voice
and expression. Had he been even old, ugly, and vulgar,
the gratitude and kindness of Mrs. Dashwood would
have been secured by any act of attention to her child;
but the influence of youth, beauty, and elegance, gave
an interest to the action which came home to her
feelings.
She thanked him again and again; and with a sweetness
of address which always attended her, invited him
to be seated. But this he declined, as he was dirty and
wet. Mrs. Dashwood then begged to know to whom
she was obliged.
His name,
he replied,
was Willoughby,
and his present home was at Allenham, from whence
he hoped she would allow him the honour of calling
to-morrow to inquire after Miss Dashwood.
The honour
was readily granted, and he then departed, to make
himself still more interesting, in the midst of an heavy
rain.
AusSeSe43
His manly beauty and more than common gracefulness
were instantly the theme of general admiration, and the
laugh which his gallantry raised against Marianne,
received particular spirit from his exterior attractions. --
Marianne herself had seen less of his person than the
rest, for the confusion which crimsoned over her face,
on his lifting her up, had robbed her of the power of
regarding him after their entering the house. But she
had seen enough of him to join in all the admiration of
the others, and with an energy which always adorned
her praise. His person and air were equal to what her
fancy had ever drawn for the hero of a favourite story;
and in his carrying her into the house with so little
previous formality, there was a rapidity of thought
which particularly recommended the action to her.
Every circumstance belonging to him was interesting.
His name was good, his residence was in their favourite
village, and she soon found out that of all manly dresses
a shooting-jacket was the most becoming. Her imagination
was busy, her reflections were pleasant, and the
pain of a sprained ancle was disregarded.
Sir John called on them as soon as the next interval
of fair weather that morning allowed him to get out of
doors; and Marianne's accident being related to him,
he was eagerly asked whether he knew any gentleman
of the name of Willoughby at Allenham.
"Willoughby!"
cried Sir John;
"what, is he in
the country? That is good news however; I will ride
over to-morrow, and ask him to dinner on Thursday."
"You know him then,"
said Mrs. Dashwood.
"Know him! to be sure I do. Why, he is down here
every year."
"And what sort of a young man is he?"
"As good a kind of fellow as ever lived, I assure you.
A very decent shot, and there is not a bolder rider in
England."
"And is that all you can say for him?"
cried Marianne,
indignantly.
"But what are his manners on
AusSeSe44
more intimate acquaintance? What his pursuits, his
talents and genius?"
Sir John was rather puzzled.
"Upon my soul,"
said he,
"I do not know much about
him as to all that. But he is a pleasant, good humoured
fellow, and has got the nicest little black bitch of
a pointer I ever saw. Was she out with him to-day?"
But Marianne could no more satisfy him as to the
colour of Mr. Willoughby's pointer, than he could describe
to her the shades of his mind.
"But who is he?"
said Elinor.
"Where does he
come from? Has he a house at Allenham?"
On this point Sir John could give more certain
intelligence; and he told them that Mr. Willoughby
had no property of his own in the country; that he
resided there only while he was visiting the old lady at
Allenham Court, to whom he was related, and whose
possessions he was to inherit; adding,
"Yes, yes, he
is very well worth catching, I can tell you, Miss Dashwood;
he has a pretty little estate of his own in Somersetshire
besides; and if I were you, I would not give him
up to my younger sister in spite of all this tumbling
down hills. Miss Marianne must not expect to have all
the men to herself. Brandon will be jealous, if she
does not take care."
"I do not believe,"
said Mrs. Dashwood, with a good humoured
smile,
"that Mr. Willoughby will be incommoded
by the attempts of either of my daughters towards
what you call catching him. It is not an employment
to which they have been brought up. Men are very
safe with us, let them be ever so rich. I am glad to find,
however, from what you say, that he is a respectable
young man, and one whose acquaintance will not be
ineligible."
"He is as good a sort of fellow, I believe, as ever
lived,"
repeated Sir John.
"I remember last Christmas,
at a little hop at the park, he danced from eight o'clock
till four, without once sitting down."
AusSeSe45
"Did he indeed?"
cried Marianne, with sparkling
eyes,
"and with elegance, with spirit?"
"Yes; and he was up again at eight to ride to covert."
"That is what I like; that is what a young man
ought to be. Whatever be his pursuits, his eagerness
in them should know no moderation, and leave him no
sense of fatigue."
"Aye, aye, I see how it will be,"
said Sir John,
"I see how it will be. You will be setting your cap at
him now, and never think of poor Brandon."
"That is an expression, Sir John,"
said Marianne,
warmly,
"which I particularly dislike. I abhor every
common-place phrase by which wit is intended; and
""setting one's cap at a man,"" or ""making a conquest,""
are the most odious of all. Their tendency is gross and
illiberal; and if their construction could ever be deemed
clever, time has long ago destroyed all its ingenuity."
Sir John did not much understand this reproof; but
he laughed as heartily as if he did, and then replied,
"Aye, you will make conquests enough, I dare say,
one way or other. Poor Brandon! he is quite smitten
already, and he is very well worth setting your cap at,
I can tell you, in spite of all this tumbling about and
spraining of ancles."
AusSeSe46
Marianne's preserver, as Margaret, with more elegance
than precision, stiled Willoughby, called at the
cottage early the next morning to make his personal inquiries.
He was received by Mrs. Dashwood with more
than politeness; with a kindness whichSir John's
account of him and her own gratitude prompted; and
every thing that passed during the visit, tended to assure
him of the sense, elegance, mutual affection, and
domestic comfort of the family to whom accident had
now introduced him. Of their personal charms he had
not required a second interview to be convinced.
Miss Dashwood had a delicate complexion, regular
features, and a remarkably pretty figure. Marianne
was still handsomer. Her form, though not so correct
as her sister's, in having the advantage of height, was
more striking; and her face was so lovely, that when in
the common cant of praise she was called a beautiful
girl, truth was less violently outraged than usually
happens. Her skin was very brown, but from its
transparency, her complexion was uncommonly brilliant;
her features were all good; her smile was sweet and
attractive, and in her eyes, which were very dark, there
was a life, a spirit, an eagerness which could hardly be
seen without delight. From Willoughby their expression
was at first held back, by the embarrassment which the
remembrance of his assistance created. But when this
passed away, when her spirits became collected, when
she saw that to the perfect good-breeding of the gentleman,
he united frankness and vivacity, and above all,
when she heard him declare that of music and dancing
he was passionately fond, she gave him such a look of
approbation as secured the largest share of his discourse
to herself for the rest of his stay.
AusSeSe47
It was only necessary to mention any favourite
amusement to engage her to talk. She could not be
silent when such points were introduced, and she had
neither shyness nor reserve in their discussion. They
speedily discovered that their enjoyment of dancing
and music was mutual, and that it arose from a general
conformity of judgment in all that related to either.
Encouraged by this to a further examination of his
opinions, she proceeded to question him on the subject
of books; her favourite authors were brought forward
and dwelt upon with so rapturous a delight, that any
young man of five and twenty must have been insensible
indeed, not to become an immediate convert to the
excellence of such works, however disregarded before.
Their taste was strikingly alike. The same books, the
same passages were idolized by each -- or if any difference
appeared, any objection arose, it lasted no longer than
till the force of her arguments and the brightness of her
eyes could be displayed. He acquiesced in all her
decisions, caught all her enthusiasm; and long before
his visit concluded, they conversed with the familiarity
of a long-established acquaintance.
"Well, Marianne,"
said Elinor, as soon as he had left
them,
"for one morning I think you have done pretty
well. You have already ascertained Mr. Willoughby's
opinion in almost every matter of importance. You
know what he thinks of Cowper and Scott; you are
certain of his estimating their beauties as he ought, and
you have received every assurance of his admiring Pope
no more than is proper. But how is your acquaintance
to be long supported, under such extraordinary dispatch
of every subject for discourse? You will soon have
exhausted each favourite topic. Another meeting will
suffice to explain his sentiments on picturesque beauty,
and second marriages, and then you can have nothing
farther to ask." --
"Elinor,"
cried Marianne,
"is this fair? is this
just? are my ideas so scanty? But I see what you
AusSeSe48
mean. I have been too much at my ease, too happy,
too frank. I have erred against every common-place
notion of decorum; I have been open and sincere
where I ought to have been reserved, spiritless, dull,
and deceitful: -- had I talked only of the weather and
the roads, and had I spoken only once in ten minutes,
this reproach would have been spared."
"My love,"
said her mother,
"you must not be
offended with Elinor -- she was only in jest. I should
scold her myself, if she were capable of wishing to check
the delight of your conversation with our new friend." --
Marianne was softened in a moment.
Willoughby, on his side, gave every proof of his pleasure
in their acquaintance, which an evident wish of
improving it could offer. He came to them every day.
To inquire after Marianne was at first his excuse; but
the encouragement of his reception, to which every day
gave greater kindness, made such an excuse unnecessary
before it had ceased to be possible, by Marianne's perfect
recovery. She was confined for some days to the house;
but never had any confinement been less irksome.
Willoughby was a young man of good abilities, quick
imagination, lively spirits, and open, affectionate
manners. He was exactly formed to engage Marianne's
heart, for with all this, he joined not only a captivating
person, but a natural ardour of mind which was now
roused and increased by the example of her own, and
which recommended him to her affection beyond every thing
else.
His society became gradually her most exquisite
enjoyment. They read, they talked, they sang together;
his musical talents were considerable; and he read with
all the sensibility and spirit whichEdward had unfortunately
wanted.
In Mrs. Dashwood's estimation, he was as faultless
as in Marianne's; and Elinor saw nothing to censure
in him but a propensity, in which he strongly resembled
and peculiarly delighted her sister, of saying too much
AusSeSe49
what he thought on every occasion, without attention
to persons or circumstances. In hastily forming and
giving his opinion of other people, in sacrificing general
politeness to the enjoyment of undivided attention
where his heart was engaged, and in slighting too easily
the forms of worldly propriety, he displayed a want of
caution whichElinor could not approve, in spite of
all that he and Marianne could say in its support.
Marianne began now to perceive that the desperation
which had seized her at sixteen and a half, of ever
seeing a man who could satisfy her ideas of perfection,
had been rash and unjustifiable. Willoughby was all
that her fancy had delineated in that unhappy hour
and in every brighter period, as capable of attaching
her; and his behaviour declared his wishes to be in that
respect as earnest, as his abilities were strong.
Her mother too, in whose mind not one speculative
thought of their marriage had been raised, by his
prospect of riches, was led before the end of a week to
hope and expect it; and secretly to congratulate herself
on having gained two such sons-in-law as Edward and
Willoughby.
Colonel Brandon's partiality for Marianne, which had
so early been discovered by his friends, now first became
perceptible to Elinor, when it ceased to be noticed by
them. Their attention and wit were drawn off to his
more fortunate rival; and the raillery which the other
had incurred before any partiality arose, was removed
when his feelings began really to call for the ridicule
so justly annexed to sensibility. Elinor was obliged,
though unwillingly, to believe that the sentiments
whichMrs. Jennings had assigned him for her own
satisfaction, were now actually excited by her sister;
and that however a general resemblance of disposition
between the parties might forward the affection of
Mr. Willoughby, an equally striking opposition of
character was no hindrance to the regard of Colonel Brandon.
She saw it with concern; for what could
AusSeSe50
a silent man of five and thirty hope, when opposed by
a very lively one of five and twenty? and as she could
not even wish him successful, she heartily wished him
indifferent. She liked him -- in spite of his gravity and
reserve, she beheld in him an object of interest. His
manners, though serious, were mild; and his reserve
appeared rather the result of some oppression of spirits,
than of any natural gloominess of temper. Sir John
had dropt hints of past injuries and disappointments,
which justified her belief of his being an unfortunate
man, and she regarded him with respect and compassion.
Perhaps she pitied and esteemed him the more because
he was slighted by Willoughby and Marianne, who,
prejudiced against him for being neither lively nor young,
seemed resolved to undervalue his merits.
"Brandon is just the kind of man,"
said Willoughby
one day, when they were talking of him together,
"whom every body speaks well of, and nobody cares
about; whom all are delighted to see, and nobody
remembers to talk to."
"That is exactly what I think of him,"
cried Marianne.
"Do not boast of it, however,"
said Elinor,
"for it
is injustice in both of you. He is highly esteemed by
all the family at the park, and I never see him myself
without taking pains to converse with him."
"That he is patronized by you,"
replied Willoughby,
"is certainly in his favour; but as for the esteem of the
others, it is a reproach in itself. Who would submit to
the indignity of being approved by such women as Lady Middleton
and Mrs. Jennings, that could command the
indifference of any body else?"
"But perhaps the abuse of such people as yourself
and Marianne, will make amends for the regard of Lady Middleton
and her mother. If their praise is censure,
your censure may be praise, for they are not more
undiscerning, than you are prejudiced and unjust."
"In defence of your protege=you can even be saucy."
"My protege=, as you call him, is a sensible man;
AusSeSe51
and sense will always have attraction for me. Yes,
Marianne, even in a man between thirty and forty.
He has seen a great deal of the world; has been abroad;
has read, and has a thinking mind. I have found him
capable of giving me much information on various
subjects, and he has always answered my inquiries with
the readiness of good-breeding and good nature."
"That is to say,"
cried Marianne contemptuously,
"he has told you that in the East Indies the climate
is hot, and the mosquitoes are troublesome."
"He would have told me so, I doubt not, had I made
any such inquiries, but they happened to be points on
which I had been previously informed."
"Perhaps,"
said Willoughby,
"his observations may
have extended to the existence of nabobs, gold mohrs,
and palanquins."
"I may venture to say that his observations have
stretched much farther than your candour. But why
should you dislike him?"
"I do not dislike him. I consider him, on the contrary,
as a very respectable man, who has every body's
good word and nobody's notice; who has more money
than he can spend, more time than he knows how to
employ, and two new coats every year."
"Add to which,"
cried Marianne,
"that he has neither
genius, taste, nor spirit. That his understanding has
no brilliancy, his feelings no ardour, and his voice
no expression."
"You decide on his imperfections so much in the
mass,"
replied Elinor,
"and so much on the strength
of your own imagination, that the commendation I am
able to give of him is comparatively cold and insipid.
I can only pronounce him to be a sensible man, well-bred,
well-informed, of gentle address, and I believe possessing
an amiable heart."
"Miss Dashwood,"
cried Willoughby,
"you are now
using me unkindly. You are endeavouring to disarm
me by reason, and to convince me against my will.
AusSeSe52
But it will not do. You shall find me as stubborn as
you can be artful. I have three unanswerable reasons
for disliking Colonel Brandon: he has threatened me
with rain when I wanted it to be fine; he has found
fault with the hanging of my curricle, and I cannot
persuade him to buy my brown mare. If it will be any
satisfaction to you, however, to be told, that I believe
his character to be in other respects irreproachable,
I am ready to confess it. And in return for an acknowledgment,
which must give me some pain, you cannot
deny me the privilege of disliking him as much as ever."
AusSeSe53
Little had Mrs. Dashwood or her daughters imagined,
when they first came into Devonshire, that so many
engagements would arise to occupy their time as shortly
presented themselves, or that they should have such
frequent invitations and such constant visitors as to
leave them little leisure for serious employment. Yet
such was the case. When Marianne was recovered, the
schemes of amusement at home and abroad, which
Sir John had been previously forming, were put in
execution. The private balls at the park then began;
and parties on the water were made and accomplished
as often as a showery October would allow. In every
meeting of the kind Willoughby was included; and the
ease and familiarity which naturally attended these
parties were exactly calculated to give increasing
intimacy to his acquaintance with the Dashwoods, to
afford him opportunity of witnessing the excellencies
of Marianne, of marking his animated admiration of her,
and of receiving, in her behaviour to himself, the most
pointed assurance of her affection.
Elinor could not be surprised at their attachment.
She only wished that it were less openly shewn; and
once or twice did venture to suggest the propriety of
some self-command to Marianne. But Marianne
abhorred all concealment where no real disgrace could
attend unreserve; and to aim at the restraint of sentiments
which were not in themselves illaudable, appeared
to her not merely an unnecessary effort, but a disgraceful
subjection of reason to common-place and mistaken
notions. Willoughby thought the same; and their
behaviour, at all times, was an illustration of their
opinions.
When he was present she had no eyes for any one else.
AusSeSe54
Every thing he did, was right. Every thing he said, was
clever. If their evenings at the park were concluded
with cards, he cheated himself and all the rest of the
party to get her a good hand. If dancing formed the
amusement of the night, they were partners for half the
time; and when obliged to separate for a couple of
dances, were careful to stand together and scarcely
spoke a word to any body else. Such conduct made
them of course most exceedingly laughed at; but ridicule
could not shame, and seemed hardly to provoke them.
Mrs. Dashwood entered into all their feelings with
a warmth which left her no inclination for checking
this excessive display of them. To her it was but the
natural consequence of a strong affection in a young
and ardent mind.
This was the season of happiness to Marianne. Her
heart was devoted to Willoughby, and the fond attachment
to Norland, which she brought with her from
Sussex, was more likely to be softened than she had
thought it possible before, by the charms which his
society bestowed on her present home.
Elinor's happiness was not so great. Her heart was
not so much at ease, nor her satisfaction in their amusements
so pure. They afforded her no companion that
could make amends for what she had left behind, nor
that could teach her to think of Norland with less regret
than ever. Neither Lady Middleton nor Mrs. Jennings
could supply to her the conversation she missed; although
the latter was an everlasting talker, and from the first
had regarded her with a kindness which ensured her
a large share of her discourse. She had already repeated
her own history to Elinor three or four times; and had
Elinor's memory been equal to her means of improvement,
she might have known very early in their acquaintance,
all the particulars of Mr. Jennings's last illness,
and what he said to his wife a few minutes before he died.
Lady Middleton was more agreeable than her mother,
only in being more silent. Elinor needed little observation
AusSeSe55
to perceive that her reserve was a mere calmness
of manner with which sense had nothing to do. Towards
her husband and mother she was the same as to them;
and intimacy was therefore neither to be looked for nor
desired. She had nothing to say one day that she had
not said the day before. Her insipidity was invariable,
for even her spirits were always the same; and though
she did not oppose the parties arranged by her husband,
provided every thing were conducted in style and her
two eldest children attended her, she never appeared
to receive more enjoyment from them, than she might
have experienced in sitting at home; -- and so little did
her presence add to the pleasure of the others, by any
share in their conversation, that they were sometimes
only reminded of her being amongst them by her solicitude
about her troublesome boys.
In Colonel Brandon alone, of all her new acquaintance,
did Elinor find a person who could in any degree claim
the respect of abilities, excite the interest of friendship,
or give pleasure as a companion. Willoughby was out
of the question. Her admiration and regard, even her
sisterly regard, was all his own; but he was a lover;
his attentions were wholly Marianne's, and a far less
agreeable man might have been more generally pleasing.
Colonel Brandon, unfortunately for himself, had no
such encouragement to think only of Marianne, and in
conversing with Elinor he found the greatest consolation
for the total indifference of her sister.
Elinor's compassion for him increased, as she had
reason to suspect that the misery of disappointed love
had already been known by him. This suspicion was
given by some words which accidentally dropt from him
one evening at the park, when they were sitting down
together by mutual consent, while the others were
dancing. His eyes were fixed on Marianne, and, after
a silence of some minutes, he said with a faint smile,
"Your sister, I understand, does not approve of second
attachments."
AusSeSe56
"No,"
replied Elinor,
"her opinions are all romantic."
"Or rather, as I believe, she considers them impossible
to exist."
"I believe she does. But how she contrives it without
reflecting on the character of her own father, who had
himself two wives, I know not. A few years however
will settle her opinions on the reasonable basis of common
sense and observation; and then they may be more
easy to define and to justify than they now are, by any body
but herself."
"This will probably be the case,"
he replied;
"and
yet there is something so amiable in the prejudices of
a young mind, that one is sorry to see them give way
to the reception of more general opinions."
"I cannot agree with you there,"
said Elinor.
"There
are inconveniences attending such feelings as Marianne's,
which all the charms of enthusiasm and ignorance of
the world cannot atone for. Her systems have all the
unfortunate tendency of setting propriety at nought;
and a better acquaintance with the world is what I look
forward to as her greatest possible advantage."
After a short pause he resumed the conversation by
saying --
"Does your sister make no distinction in her objections
against a second attachment? or is it equally
criminal in every body? Are those who have been
disappointed in their first choice, whether from the
inconstancy of its object, or the perverseness of circumstances,
to be equally indifferent during the rest of
their lives?"
"Upon my word, I am not acquainted with the
minutia of her principles. I only know that I never yet
heard her admit any instance of a second attachment's
being pardonable."
"This,"
said he,
"cannot hold; but a change, a
total change of sentiments -- No, no, do not desire it, --
for when the romantic refinements of a young mind are
obliged to give way, how frequently are they succeeded
AusSeSe57
by such opinions as are but too common, and too
dangerous! I speak from experience. I once knew
a lady who in temper and mind greatly resembled your
sister, who thought and judged like her, but who from
an inforced change -- from a series of unfortunate
circumstances" ----
Here he stopt suddenly; appeared
to think that he had said too much, and by his countenance
gave rise to conjectures, which might not
otherwise have entered Elinor's head. The lady would
probably have passed without suspicion, had he not
convinced Miss Dashwood that what concerned her
ought not to escape his lips. As it was, it required but
a slight effort of fancy to connect his emotion with the
tender recollection of past regard. Elinor attempted
no more. But Marianne, in her place, would not have
done so little. The whole story would have been speedily
formed under her active imagination; and every thing
established in the most melancholy order of disastrous
love.
AusSeSe58
As Elinor and Marianne were walking together the
next morning the latter communicated a piece of news
to her sister, which in spite of all that she knew before
of Marianne's imprudence and want of thought, surprised
her by its extravagant testimony of both. Marianne
told her, with the greatest delight, that Willoughby
had given her a horse, one that he had bred himself on
his estate in Somersetshire, and which was exactly
calculated to carry a woman. Without considering that
it was not in her mother's plan to keep any horse,
that if she were to alter her resolution in favour of this
gift, she must buy another for the servant, and keep
a servant to ride it, and after all, build a stable to receive
them, she had accepted the present without hesitation,
and told her sister of it in raptures.
"He intends to send his groom into Somersetshire
immediately for it,"
she added,
"and when it arrives,
we will ride every day. You shall share its use with me.
Imagine to yourself, my dearElinor, the delight of
a gallop on some of these downs."
Most unwilling was she to awaken from such a dream
of felicity, to comprehend all the unhappy truths which
attended the affair; and for some time she refused to
submit to them.
As to an additional servant, the
expence would be a trifle; mama she was sure would
never object to it; and any horse would do for him;
he might always get one at the park; as to a stable,
the merest shed would be sufficient.
Elinor then
ventured to doubt the propriety of her receiving such
a present from a man so little, or at least so lately
known to her. This was too much.
"You are mistaken, Elinor,"
said she warmly,
"in
supposing I know very little of Willoughby. I have not
AusSeSe59
known him long indeed, but I am much better acquainted
with him, than I am with any other creature
in the world, except yourself and mama. It is not time
or opportunity that is to determine intimacy; -- it is
disposition alone. Seven years would be insufficient to
make some people acquainted with each other, and seven
days are more than enough for others. I should hold
myself guilty of greater impropriety in accepting a horse
from my brother, than from Willoughby. Of John I know
very little, though we have lived together for years;
but of Willoughby my judgment has long been formed."
Elinor thought it wisest to touch that point no more.
She knew her sister's temper. Opposition on so tender
a subject would only attach her the more to her own
opinion. But by an appeal to her affection for her
mother, by representing the inconveniences which that
indulgent mother must draw on herself, if (as would
probably be the case) she consented to this increase of
establishment, Marianne was shortly subdued; and she
promised not to tempt her mother to such imprudent
kindness by mentioning the offer, and to tell Willoughby
when she saw him next, that it must be declined.
She was faithful to her word; and when Willoughby
called at the cottage, the same day, Elinor heard her
express her disappointment to him in a low voice, on
being obliged to forego the acceptance of his present.
The reasons for this alteration were at the same time
related, and they were such as to make further entreaty
on his side impossible. His concern however was very
apparent; and after expressing it with earnestness, he
added in the same low voice --
"But, Marianne, the horse
is still yours, though you cannot use it now. I shall keep
it only till you can claim it. When you leave Barton
to form your own establishment in a more lasting home,
Queen Mab shall receive you."
This was all overheard by Miss Dashwood;
and in
the whole of the sentence, in his manner of pronouncing
it, and in his addressing her sister by her christian name
AusSeSe60
alone, she instantly saw an intimacy so decided, a meaning
so direct, as marked a perfect agreement between
them.
From that moment she doubted not of their
being engaged to each other; and the belief of it created
no other surprise, than that she, or any of their friends,
should be left by tempers so frank, to discover it by
accident.
Margaret related something to her the next day,
which placed this matter in a still clearer light. Willoughby
had spent the preceding evening with them,
and Margaret, being left some time in the parlour
with only him and Marianne, had had opportunity for
observations, which, with a most important face, she
communicated to her eldest sister, when they were next
by themselves.
"Oh! Elinor,"
she cried,
"I have such a secret to
tell you about Marianne. I am sure she will be married
to Mr. Willoughby very soon."
"You have said so,"
replied Elinor,
"almost every
day since they first met on High-church Down; and
they had not known each other a week, I believe, before
you were certain that Marianne wore his picture round
her neck; but it turned out to be only the miniature
of our great uncle."
"But indeed this is quite another thing. I am sure
they will be married very soon, for he has got a lock of her
hair."
"Take care, Margaret. It may be only the hair of
some great uncle of his."
"But indeed, Elinor, it is Marianne's. I am almost
sure it is, for I saw him cut it off. Last night after tea,
when you and mama went out of the room, they were
whispering and talking together as fast as could be, and
he seemed to be begging something of her, and presently
he took up her scissars and cut off a long lock of her hair,
for it was all tumbled down her back; and he kissed
it, and folded it up in a piece of white paper, and put
it into his pocket-book."
AusSeSe61
From such particulars, stated on such authority,
Elinor could not withhold her credit: nor was she disposed
to it, for the circumstance was in perfect unison
with what she had heard and seen herself.
Margaret's sagacity was not always displayed in
a way so satisfactory to her sister. When Mrs. Jennings
attacked her one evening at the park, to give the name
of the young man who was Elinor's particular favourite,
which had been long a matter of great curiosity to her,
Margaret answered by looking at her sister, and saying,
"I must not tell, may I, Elinor?"
This of course made every body laugh; and Elinor
tried to laugh too. But the effort was painful. She was
convinced that Margaret had fixed on a person, whose
name she could not bear with composure to become
a standing joke with Mrs. Jennings.
Marianne felt for her most sincerely; but she did
more harm than good to the cause, by turning very
red, and saying in an angry manner to Margaret,
"Remember that whatever your conjectures may be,
you have no right to repeat them."
"I never had any conjectures about it,"
replied
Margaret;
"it was you who told me of it yourself."
This increased the mirth of the company, and Margaret
was eagerly pressed to say something more.
"Oh! pray, Miss Margaret, let us know all about
it,"
said Mrs. Jennings.
"What is the gentleman's
name?"
"I must not tell, ma'am. But I know very well
what it is; and I know where he is too."
"Yes, yes, we can guess where he is; at his own
house at Norland to be sure. He is the curate of the
parish I dare say."
"No, that he is not. He is of no profession at all."
"Margaret,"
said Marianne with great warmth,
"you
know that all this is an invention of your own, and that
there is no such person in existence."
"Well then he is lately dead, Marianne, for I am sure
AusSeSe62
there was such a man once, and his name begins with
an F."
Most grateful did Elinor feel to Lady Middleton for
observing at this moment,
that it rained very hard,"
though she believed the interruption to proceed less from
any attention to her, than from her ladyship's great
dislike of all such inelegant subjects of raillery as delighted
her husband and mother. The idea however started by
her, was immediately pursued by Colonel Brandon,
who was on every occasion mindful of the feelings of
others; and much was said on the subject of rain by
both of them. Willoughby opened the piano-forte, and
asked Marianne to sit down to it; and thus amidst the
various endeavours of different people to quit the topic,
it fell to the ground. But not so easily did Elinor recover
from the alarm into which it had thrown her.
A party was formed this evening for going on the
following day to see a very fine place about twelve
miles from Barton, belonging to a brother-in-law of
Colonel Brandon, without whose interest it could not
be seen, as the proprietor, who was then abroad, had
left strict orders on that head. The grounds were
declared to be highly beautiful, and Sir John, who was
particularly warm in their praise, might be allowed to
be a tolerable judge, for he had formed parties to visit
them, at least, twice every summer for the last ten years.
They contained a noble piece of water; a sail on which
was to form a great part of the morning's amusement;
cold provisions were to be taken, open carriages only
to be employed, and every thing conducted in the usual
style of a complete party of pleasure.
To some few of the company, it appeared rather a bold
undertaking, considering the time of year, and that it
had rained every day for the last fortnight; -- and Mrs. Dashwood,
who had already a cold, was persuaded by
Elinor to stay at home.
AusSeSe63
Their intended excursion to Whitwell turned out very
differently from whatElinor had expected. She was prepared
to be wet through, fatigued, and frightened; but the
event was still more unfortunate, for they did not go at all.
By ten o'clock the whole party were assembled at
the park, where they were to breakfast. The morning
was rather favourable, though it had rained all night,
as the clouds were then dispersing across the sky, and
the sun frequently appeared. They were all in high
spirits and good humour, eager to be happy, and
determined to submit to the greatest inconveniences
and hardships rather than be otherwise.
While they were at breakfast the letters were brought
in. Among the rest there was one for Colonel Brandon;
-- he took it, looked at the direction, changed colour,
and immediately left the room.
"What is the matter with Brandon?"
said Sir John.
Nobody could tell.
"I hope he has had no bad news,"
said Lady Middleton.
"It must be something extraordinary that could
make Colonel Brandon leave my breakfast table so
suddenly."
In about five minutes he returned.
"No bad news, Colonel, I hope;"
said Mrs. Jennings,
as soon as he entered the room.
"None at all, ma'am, I thank you."
"Was it from Avignon? I hope it is not to say that
your sister is worse."
"No, ma'am. It came from town, and is merely
a letter of business."
"But how came the hand to discompose you so much,
if it was only a letter of business? Come, come, this
wo'nt do, Colonel; so let us hear the truth of it."
AusSeSe64
"My dear Madam,"
said Lady Middleton,
"recollect
what you are saying."
"Perhaps it is to tell you that your cousin Fanny
is married?"
said Mrs. Jennings, without attending
to her daughter's reproof.
"No, indeed, it is not."
"Well, then, I know who it is from, Colonel. And
I hope she is well."
"Whom do you mean, ma'am?"
said he, colouring
a little.
"Oh! you know who I mean."
"I am particularly sorry, ma'am,"
said he, addressing
Lady Middleton,
"that I should receive this letter to-day,
for it is on business which requires my immediate
attendance in town."
"In town!"
cried Mrs. Jennings.
"What can you
have to do in town at this time of year?"
"My own loss is great,"
he continued,
"in being
obliged to leave so agreeable a party; but I am the more
concerned, as I fear my presence is necessary to gain
your admittance at Whitwell."
What a blow upon them all was this!
"But if you write a note to the housekeeper, Mr. Brandon,"
said Marianne eagerly,
"will it not be
sufficient?"
He shook his head.
"We must go,"
said Sir John. --
"It shall not be put
off when we are so near it. You cannot go to town till
to-morrow, Brandon, that is all."
"I wish it could be so easily settled. But it is not
in my power to delay my journey for one day!"
"If you would but let us know what your business
is,"
said Mrs. Jennings,
"we might see whether it could
be put off or not."
"You would not be six hours later,"
said Willoughby,
"if you were to defer your journey till our return."
"I cannot afford to lose one hour." --
Elinor then heard Willoughby say in a low voice to
AusSeSe65
Marianne,
"There are some people who cannot bear
a party of pleasure. Brandon is one of them. He was
afraid of catching cold I dare say, and invented this
trick for getting out of it. I would lay fifty guineas the
letter was of his own writing."
"I have no doubt of it,"
replied Marianne.
"There is no persuading you to change your mind,
Brandon, I know of old,"
said Sir John,
"when once
you are determined on any thing. But, however,
I hope you will think better of it. Consider, here are
the two Miss Careys come over from Newton, the three
Miss Dashwoods walked up from the cottage, and
Mr. Willoughby got up two hours before his usual time,
on purpose to go to Whitwell."
Colonel Brandon again repeated his sorrow at being
the cause of disappointing the party; but at the same
time declared it to be unavoidable.
"Well then, when will you come back again?"
"I hope we shall see you at Barton,"
added her ladyship,
"as soon as you can conveniently leave town;
and we must put off the party to Whitwell till you
return."
"You are very obliging. But it is so uncertain, when
I may have it in my power to return, that I dare not
engage for it at all."
"Oh! he must and shall come back,"
cried Sir John.
"If he is not here by the end of the week, I shall go
after him."
"Aye, so do, Sir John,"
cried Mrs. Jennings,
"and
then perhaps you may find out what his business is."
"I do not want to pry into other men's concerns.
I suppose it is something he is ashamed of."
Colonel Brandon's horses were announced.
"You do not go to town on horseback, do you?"
added Sir John.
"No. Only to Honiton. I shall then go post."
"Well, as you are resolved to go, I wish you a good
journey. But you had better change your mind."
AusSeSe66
"I assure you it is not in my power."
He then took leave of the whole party.
"Is there no chance of my seeing you and your
sisters in town this winter, Miss Dashwood?"
"I am afraid, none at all."
"Then I must bid you farewell for a longer time
than I should wish to do."
To Marianne, he merely bowed and said nothing.
"Come, Colonel,"
said Mrs. Jennings,
"before you go,
do let us know what you are going about."
He wished her a good morning, and attended by
Sir John, left the room.
The complaints and lamentations which politeness
had hitherto restrained, now burst forth universally;
and they all agreed again and again how provoking it
was to be so disappointed.
"I can guess what his business is, however,"
said
Mrs. Jennings exultingly.
"Can you, ma'am?"
said almost every body.
"Yes; it is about Miss Williams, I am sure."
"And who is Miss Williams?"
asked Marianne.
"What! do not you know whoMiss Williams is?
I am sure you must have heard of her before. She
is a relation of the Colonel's, my dear; a very near
relation. We will not say how near, for fear of shocking
the young ladies."
Then lowering her voice a little,
she said to Elinor,
"She is his natural daughter."
"Indeed!"
"Oh! yes; and as like him as she can stare. I dare
say the Colonel will leave her all his fortune."
When Sir John returned, he joined most heartily
in the general regret on so unfortunate an event;
concluding however by observing, that as they were all
got together, they must do something by way of being
happy; and after some consultation it was agreed,
that although happiness could only be enjoyed at
Whitwell, they might procure a tolerable composure
of mind by driving about the country. The carriages
AusSeSe67
were then ordered; Willoughby's was first, and Marianne
never looked happier than when she got into it. He
drove through the park very fast, and they were soon
out of sight; and nothing more of them was seen till
their return, which did not happen till after the return
of all the rest. They both seemed delighted with their
drive, but said only in general terms that they had kept
in the lanes, while the others went on the downs.
It was settled that there should be a dance in the
evening, and that every body should be extremely
merry all day long. Some more of the Careys came to
dinner, and they had the pleasure of sitting down nearly
twenty to table, whichSir John observed with great
contentment. Willoughby took his usual place between
the two elder Miss Dashwoods. Mrs. Jennings sat on
Elinor's right hand; and they had not been long
seated, before she leant behind her and Willoughby,
and said to Marianne, loud enough for them both to
hear,
"I have found you out in spite of all your tricks.
I know where you spent the morning."
Marianne coloured, and replied very hastily,
"Where,
pray?" --
"Did not you know,"
said Willoughby,
"that we
had been out in my curricle?"
"Yes, yes, Mr. Impudence, I know that very well,
and I was determined to find out where you had been to.
-- I hope you like your house, Miss Marianne. It is
a very large one I know, and when I come to see you,
I hope you will have new-furnished it, for it wanted it
very much, when I was there six years ago."
Marianne turned away in great confusion. Mrs. Jennings
laughed heartily; and Elinor found that in
her resolution to know where they had been, she had
actually made her own woman enquire of Mr. Willoughby's
groom, and that she had by that method been
informed that they had gone to Allenham, and spent
a considerable time there in walking about the garden
and going all over the house.
AusSeSe68
Elinor could hardly believe this to be true, as it
seemed very unlikely that Willoughby should propose,
or Marianne consent, to enter the house while Mrs. Smith
was in it, with whomMarianne had not the
smallest acquaintance.
As soon as they left the dining-room, Elinor enquired
of her about it; and great was her surprise when she
found that every circumstance related by Mrs. Jennings
was perfectly true. Marianne was quite angry with her
for doubting it.
"Why should you imagine, Elinor, that we did not
go there, or that we did not see the house? Is not it
what you have often wished to do yourself?"
"Yes, Marianne, but I would not go while Mrs. Smith
was there, and with no other companion than Mr. Willoughby."
"Mr. Willoughby however is the only person who can
have a right to shew that house; and as we went in
an open carriage, it was impossible to have any other
companion. I never spent a pleasanter morning in
my life."
"I am afraid,"
replied Elinor,
"that the pleasantness
of an employment does not always evince its propriety."
"On the contrary, nothing can be a stronger proof
of it, Elinor; for if there had been any real impropriety
in what I did, I should have been sensible of it at the
time, for we always know when we are acting wrong,
and with such a conviction I could have had no pleasure."
"But, my dearMarianne, as it has already exposed
you to some very impertinent remarks, do you not
now begin to doubt the discretion of your own conduct?"
"If the impertinent remarks of Mrs. Jennings are
to be the proof of impropriety in conduct, we are all
offending every moment of our lives. I value not
her censure any more than I should do her commendation.
I am not sensible of having done any thing wrong
in walking over Mrs. Smith's grounds, or in seeing her
house. They will one day be Mr. Willoughby's, and"----
AusSeSe69
"If they were one day to be your own, Marianne,
you would not be justified in what you have done."
She blushed at this hint; but it was even visibly
gratifying to her; and after a ten minutes' interval of
earnest thought, she came to her sister again, and said
with great good humour,
"Perhaps, Elinor, it was rather
ill-judged in me to go to Allenham; but Mr. Willoughby
wanted particularly to shew me the place; and it is
a charming house I assure you. -- There is one remarkably
pretty sitting room up stairs; of a nice comfortable
size for constant use, and with modern furniture it
would be delightful. It is a corner room, and has
windows on two sides. On one side you look across the
bowling-green, behind the house, to a beautiful hanging wood,
and on the other you have a view of the church
and village, and, beyond them, of those fine bold hills
that we have so often admired. I did not see it to
advantage, for nothing could be more forlorn than the
furniture, -- but if it were newly fitted up -- a couple
of hundred pounds, Willoughby says, would make it
one of the pleasantest summer-rooms in England."
Could Elinor have listened to her without interruption
from the others, she would have described every room
in the house with equal delight.
AusSeSe70
The sudden termination of Colonel Brandon's visit
at the park, with his steadiness in concealing its cause,
filled the mind and raised the wonder of Mrs. Jennings
for two or three days; she was a great wonderer, as
every one must be who takes a very lively interest in all
the comings and goings of all their acquaintance. She
wondered with little intermission what could be the
reason of it; was sure there must be some bad news,
and thought over every kind of distress that could have
befallen him, with a fixed determination that he should
not escape them all.
"Something very melancholy must be the matter,
I am sure,"
said she.
"I could see it in his face. Poor
man! I am afraid his circumstances may be bad. The
estate at Delaford was never reckoned more than two
thousand a year, and his brother left every thing sadly
involved. I do think he must have been sent for about
money matters, for what else can it be? I wonder
whether it is so. I would give any thing to know the
truth of it. Perhaps it is about Miss Williams -- and,
by the bye, I dare say it is, because he looked so conscious
when I mentioned her. May be she is ill in town;
nothing in the world more likely, for I have a notion
she is always rather sickly. I would lay any wager it is
about Miss Williams. It is not so very likely he should
be distressed in his circumstances now, for he is a very
prudent man, and to be sure must have cleared the
estate by this time. I wonder what it can be! May be
his sister is worse at Avignon, and has sent for him
over. His setting off in such a hurry seems very like
it. Well, I wish him out of all his trouble with all my
heart, and a good wife into the bargain."
So wondered, so talked Mrs. Jennings, her opinion
AusSeSe71
varying with every fresh conjecture, and all seeming
equally probable as they arose. Elinor, though she felt
really interested in the welfare of Colonel Brandon,
could not bestow all the wonder on his going so suddenly
away, whichMrs. Jennings was desirous of her feeling;
for besides that the circumstance did not in her opinion
justify such lasting amazement or variety of speculation,
her wonder was otherwise disposed of. It was engrossed
by the extraordinary silence of her sister and Willoughby
on the subject, which they must know to be peculiarly
interesting to them all. As this silence continued,
every day made it appear more strange and more
incompatible with the disposition of both. Why they
should not openly acknowledge to her mother and herself,
what their constant behaviour to each other
declared to have taken place, Elinor could not imagine.
She could easily conceive that marriage might not
be immediately in their power; for though Willoughby
was independent, there was no reason to believe him
rich. His estate had been rated by Sir John at about
six or seven hundred a year; but he lived at an expense
to which that income could hardly be equal, and he
had himself often complained of his poverty. But for
this strange kind of secrecy maintained by them relative
to their engagement, which in fact concealed nothing
at all, she could not account; and it was so wholly
contradictory to their general opinions and practice,
that a doubt sometimes entered her mind of their being
really engaged, and this doubt was enough to prevent
her making any inquiry of Marianne.
Nothing could be more expressive of attachment to
them all, than Willoughby's behaviour. To Marianne
it had all the distinguishing tenderness which a lover's
heart could give, and to the rest of the family it was the
affectionate attention of a son and a brother. The
cottage seemed to be considered and loved by him as
his home; many more of his hours were spent there
than at Allenham; and if no general engagement
AusSeSe72
collected them at the park, the exercise which called
him out in the morning was almost certain of ending
there, where the rest of the day was spent by himself
at the side of Marianne, and by his favourite pointer
at her feet.
One evening in particular, about a week after Colonel Brandon
had left the country, his heart seemed more
than usually open to every feeling of attachment to
the objects around him; and on Mrs. Dashwood's
happening to mention her design of improving the cottage
in the spring, he warmly opposed every alteration of
a place which affection had established as perfect with
him.
"What!"
he exclaimed --
"Improve this dear cottage!
No. That I will never consent to. Not a stone
must be added to its walls, not an inch to its size, if my
feelings are regarded."
"Do not be alarmed,"
said Miss Dashwood,
"nothing
of the kind will be done; for my mother will never have
money enough to attempt it."
"I am heartily glad of it,"
he cried.
"May she
always be poor, if she can employ her riches no better."
"Thank you, Willoughby. But you may be assured
that I would not sacrifice one sentiment of local attachment
of yours, or of any one whom I loved, for all the
improvements in the world. Depend upon it that whatever
unemployed sum may remain, when I make up
my accounts in the spring, I would even rather lay it
uselessly by than dispose of it in a manner so painful
to you. But are you really so attached to this place as
to see no defect in it?"
"I am,"
said he.
"To me it is faultless. Nay, more,
I consider it as the only form of building in which
happiness is attainable, and were I rich enough, I would
instantly pull Combe down, and build it up again in
the exact plan of this cottage."
"With dark narrow stairs, and a kitchen that smokes,
I suppose,"
said Elinor.
AusSeSe73
"Yes,"
cried he in the same eager tone,
"with all
and every thing belonging to it; -- in no one convenience
or inconvenience about it, should the least variation be
perceptible. Then, and then only, under such a roof,
I might perhaps be as happy at Combe as I have been
at Barton."
"I flatter myself,"
replied Elinor,
"that even under
the disadvantage of better rooms and a broader staircase,
you will hereafter find your own house as faultless as
you now do this."
"There certainly are circumstances,"
said Willoughby,
"which might greatly endear it to me; but this place
will always have one claim on my affection, which no
other can possibly share."
Mrs. Dashwood looked with pleasure at Marianne,
whose fine eyes were fixed so expressively on Willoughby,
as plainly denoted how well she understood him.
"How often did I wish,"
added he,
"when I was at
Allenham this time twelvemonth, that Barton cottage
were inhabited! I never passed within view of it without
admiring its situation, and grieving that no one should
live in it. How little did I then think that the very
first news I should hear from Mrs. Smith, when I next
came into the country, would be that Barton cottage
was taken: and I felt an immediate satisfaction and
interest in the event, which nothing but a kind of
prescience of what happiness I should experience from
it, can account for. Must it not have been soMarianne?"
speaking to her in a lowered voice. Then continuing
his former tone, he said,
"And yet this house you would
spoil, Mrs. Dashwood? You would rob it of its simplicity
by imaginary improvement! and this dear parlour,
in which our acquaintance first began, and in which so
many happy hours have been since spent by us together,
you would degrade to the condition of a common
entrance, and every body would be eager to pass through
the room which has hitherto contained within itself,
more real accommodation and comfort than any other
AusSeSe74
apartment of the handsomest dimensions in the world
could possibly afford."
Mrs. Dashwood again assured him that no alteration
of the kind should be attempted.
"You are a good woman,"
he warmly replied.
"Your
promise makes me easy. Extend it a little farther, and
it will make me happy. Tell me that not only your
house will remain the same, but that I shall ever find
you and yours as unchanged as your dwelling; and
that you will always consider me with the kindness
which has made every thing belonging to you so dear
to me."
The promise was readily given, and Willoughby's
behaviour during the whole of the evening declared at
once his affection and happiness.
"Shall we see you to-morrow to dinner?"
said
Mrs. Dashwood when he was leaving them.
"I do not
ask you to come in the morning, for we must walk to
the park, to call on Lady Middleton."
He engaged to be with them by four o'clock.
AusSeSe75
Mrs. Dashwood's visit to Lady Middleton took place
the next day, and two of her daughters went with her;
but Marianne excused herself from being of the party
under some trifling pretext of employment; and her
mother, who concluded that a promise had been made
by Willoughby the night before of calling on her while
they were absent, was perfectly satisfied with her
remaining at home.
On their return from the park they found Willoughby's
curricle and servant in waiting at the cottage, and
Mrs. Dashwood was convinced that her conjecture had
been just. So far it was all as she had foreseen; but
on entering the house she beheld what no foresight
had taught her to expect. They were no sooner in the
passage than Marianne came hastily out of the parlour
apparently in violent affliction, with her handkerchief
at her eyes; and without noticing them ran up stairs.
Surprised and alarmed they proceeded directly into the
room she had just quitted, where they found only
Willoughby, who was leaning against the mantle-piece
with his back towards them. He turned round on their
coming in, and his countenance shewed that he strongly
partook of the emotion which overpowered Marianne.
"Is any thing the matter with her?"
cried Mrs. Dashwood
as she entered --
"is she ill?"
"I hope not,"
he replied, trying to look cheerful; and
with a forced smile presently added,
"It is I who may
rather expect to be ill -- for I am now suffering under
a very heavy disappointment!"
"Disappointment!"
"Yes, for I am unable to keep my engagement with
you. Mrs. Smith has this morning exercised the privilege
of riches upon a poor dependant cousin, by sending me on
AusSeSe76
business to London. I have just received my dispatches,
and taken my farewel of Allenham; and by way of
exhilaration I am now come to take my farewel of you."
"To London! -- and are you going this morning?"
"Almost this moment."
"This is very unfortunate. But Mrs. Smith must be
obliged; -- and her business will not detain you from
us long I hope."
He coloured as he replied,
"You are very kind, but
I have no idea of returning into Devonshire immediately.
My visits to Mrs. Smith are never repeated within the
twelvemonth."
"And is Mrs. Smith your only friend? Is Allenham
the only house in the neighbourhood to which you will
be welcome? For shame, Willoughby. Can you wait
for an invitation here?"
His colour increased; and with his eyes fixed on the
ground he only replied,
"You are too good."
Mrs. Dashwood looked at Elinor with surprise. Elinor
felt equal amazement. For a few moments every one
was silent. Mrs. Dashwood first spoke.
"I have only to add, my dearWilloughby, that at
Barton cottage you will always be welcome; for I
will not press you to return here immediately, because
you only can judge how far that might be pleasing
to Mrs. Smith; and on this head I shall be no more
disposed to question your judgment than to doubt your
inclination."
"My engagements at present,"
replied Willoughby
confusedly,
"are of such a nature -- that -- I dare not
flatter myself" --
He stopt. Mrs. Dashwood was too much astonished
to speak, and another pause succeeded. This was broken
by Willoughby, who said with a faint smile,
"It is folly
to linger in this manner. I will not torment myself
any longer by remaining among friends whose society
it is impossible for me now to enjoy."
He then hastily took leave of them all and left the
AusSeSe77
room. They saw him step into his carriage, and in
a minute it was out of sight.
Mrs. Dashwood felt too much for speech, and instantly
quitted the parlour to give way in solitude to the concern
and alarm which this sudden departure occasioned.
Elinor's uneasiness was at least equal to her mother's.
She thought of what had just passed with anxiety and
distrust. Willoughby's behaviour in taking leave of
them, his embarrassment, and affectation of cheerfulness,
and, above all, his unwillingness to accept her
mother's invitation, a backwardness so unlike a lover,
so unlike himself, greatly disturbed her. One moment
she feared that no serious design had ever been formed
on his side; and the next that some unfortunate
quarrel had taken place between him and her sister; --
the distress in whichMarianne had quitted the room was
such as a serious quarrel could most reasonably account
for, though when she considered whatMarianne's love
for him was, a quarrel seemed almost impossible.
But whatever might be the particulars of their separation,
her sister's affliction was indubitable; and she
thought with the tenderest compassion of that violent
sorrow whichMarianne was in all probability not merely
giving way to as a relief, but feeding and encouraging
as a duty.
In about half an hour her mother returned, and though
her eyes were red, her countenance was not uncheerful.
"Our dearWilloughby is now some miles from
Barton, Elinor,"
said she, as she sat down to work,
"and with how heavy a heart does he travel?"
"It is all very strange. So suddenly to be gone!
It seems but the work of a moment. And last night
he was with us so happy, so cheerful, so affectionate?
And now after only ten minutes notice -- Gone too without
intending to return! -- Something more than what
he owned to us must have happened. He did not speak,
he did not behave like himself. You must have seen the
difference as well as I. What can it be? Can they have
AusSeSe78
quarrelled? Why else should he have shewn such
unwillingness to accept your invitation here?" --
"It was not inclination that he wanted, Elinor;
I could plainly see that. He had not the power of
accepting it. I have thought it all over I assure you,
and I can perfectly account for every thing that at first
seemed strange to me as well as to you."
"Can you indeed?"
"Yes. I have explained it to myself in the most
satisfactory way; -- but you, Elinor, who love to doubt
where you can ---- It will not satisfy you, I know; but
you shall not talk me out of my trust in it. I am persuaded
that Mrs. Smith suspects his regard for Marianne,
disapproves of it, (perhaps because she has other views
for him,) and on that account is eager to get him away; --
and that the business which she sends him off to transact,
is invented as an excuse to dismiss him. This is what
I believe to have happened. He is moreover aware that
she does disapprove the connection, he dares not therefore
at present confess to her his engagement with
Marianne, and he feels himself obliged, from his dependent
situation, to give into her schemes, and absent
himself from Devonshire for a while. You will tell me,
I know, that this may, or may not have happened;
but I will listen to no cavil, unless you can point out
any other method of understanding the affair as satisfactory
as this. And now, Elinor, what have you to say?"
"Nothing, for you have anticipated my answer."
"Then you would have told me, that it might or
might not have happened. Oh! Elinor, how incomprehensible
are your feelings! You had rather take evil
upon credit than good. You had rather look out for
misery for Marianne and guilt for poor Willoughby,
than an apology for the latter. You are resolved to
think him blameable, because he took leave of us with
less affection than his usual behaviour has shewn. And
is no allowance to be made for inadvertence, or for
spirits depressed by recent disappointment? Are no
AusSeSe79
probabilities to be accepted, merely because they are
not certainties? Is nothing due to the man whom we
have all so much reason to love, and no reason in the
world to think ill of? To the possibility of motives
unanswerable in themselves, though unavoidably secret
for a while? And, after all, what is it you suspect
him of?"
"I can hardly tell you myself. -- But suspicion of
something unpleasant is the inevitable consequence of
such an alteration as we have just witnessed in him.
There is great truth, however, in what you have now
urged of the allowances which ought to be made for
him, and it is my wish to be candid in my judgment of
every body. Willoughby may undoubtedly have very
sufficient reasons for his conduct, and I will hope that
he has. But it would have been more like Willoughby
to acknowledge them at once. Secrecy may be advisable;
but still I cannot help wondering at its being
practised by him."
"Do not blame him, however, for departing from his
character, where the deviation is necessary. But you
really do admit the justice of what I have said in his
defence? -- I am happy -- and he is acquitted."
"Not entirely. It may be proper to conceal their
engagement (if they are engaged) from Mrs. Smith --
and if that is the case, it must be highly expedient for
Willoughby to be but little in Devonshire at present.
But this is no excuse for their concealing it from us."
"Concealing it from us! my dear child, do you
accuse Willoughby and Marianne of concealment? This
is strange indeed, when your eyes have been reproaching
them every day for incautiousness."
"I want no proof of their affection,"
said Elinor;
"but of their engagement I do."
"I am perfectly satisfied of both."
"Yet not a syllable has been said to you on the
subject, by either of them."
"I have not wanted syllables where actions have
AusSeSe80
spoken so plainly. Has not his behaviour to Marianne
and to all of us, for at least the last fortnight, declared
that he loved and considered her as his future wife,
and that he felt for us the attachment of the nearest
relation? Have we not perfectly understood each other?
Has not my consent been daily asked by his looks, his
manner, his attentive and affectionate respect? My
Elinor, is it possible to doubt their engagement? How
could such a thought occur to you? How is it to be
supposed that Willoughby, persuaded as he must be
of your sister's love, should leave her, and leave her
perhaps for months, without telling her of his affection;
-- that they should part without a mutual exchange
of confidence?"
"I confess,"
replied Elinor,
"that every circumstance
except one is in favour of their engagement; but that
one is the total silence of both on the subject, and with
me it almost outweighs every other."
"How strange this is! You must think wretchedly
indeed of Willoughby, if after all that has openly passed
between them, you can doubt the nature of the terms
on which they are together. Has he been acting a part
in his behaviour to your sister all this time? Do you
suppose him really indifferent to her?"
"No, I cannot think that. He must and does love
her I am sure."
"But with a strange kind of tenderness, if he can
leave her with such indifference, such carelessness of
the future, as you attribute to him."
"You must remember, my dear mother, that I have
never considered this matter as certain. I have had my
doubts, I confess; but they are fainter than they were,
and they may soon be entirely done away. If we find
they correspond, every fear of mine will be removed."
"A mighty concession indeed! If you were to see
them at the altar, you would suppose they were going
to be married. Ungracious girl! But I require no such
proof. Nothing in my opinion has ever passed to justify
AusSeSe81
doubt; no secrecy has been attempted; all has been
uniformly open and unreserved. You cannot doubt
your sister's wishes. It must be Willoughby therefore
whom you suspect. But why? Is he not a man of
honour and feeling? Has there been any inconsistency
on his side to create alarm? can he be deceitful?"
"I hope not, I believe not,"
cried Elinor.
"I love
Willoughby, sincerely love him; and suspicion of his
integrity cannot be more painful to yourself than to
me. It has been involuntary, and I will not encourage
it. I was startled, I confess, by the alteration in his
manners this morning; -- he did not speak like himself,
and did not return your kindness with any cordiality.
But all this may be explained by such a situation of
his affairs as you have supposed. He had just parted
from my sister, had seen her leave him in the greatest
affliction; and if he felt obliged, from a fear of offending
Mrs. Smith, to resist the temptation of returning here
soon, and yet aware that by declining your invitation,
by saying that he was going away for some time, he
should seem to act an ungenerous, a suspicious part by
our family, he might well be embarrassed and disturbed.
In such a case, a plain and open avowal of his difficulties
would have been more to his honour I think, as well as
more consistent with his general character; -- but I will
not raise objections against any one's conduct on so
illiberal a foundation, as a difference in judgment from
myself, or a deviation from what I may think right
and consistent."
"You speak very properly. Willoughby certainly
does not deserve to be suspected. Though we have not
known him long, he is no stranger in this part of the
world; and who has ever spoken to his disadvantage?
Had he been in a situation to act independently and
marry immediately, it might have been odd that he
should leave us without acknowledging every thing to
me at once: but this is not the case. It is an engagement
in some respects not prosperously begun, for their
AusSeSe82
marriage must be at a very uncertain distance; and
even secrecy, as far as it can be observed, may now be
very advisable."
They were interrupted by the entrance of Margaret;
and Elinor was then at liberty to think over the representations
of her mother, to acknowledge the probability
of many, and hope for the justice of all.
They saw nothing of Marianne till dinner time, when
she entered the room and took her place at the table
without saying a word. Her eyes were red and swollen;
and it seemed as if her tears were even then restrained
with difficulty. She avoided the looks of them all,
could neither eat nor speak, and after some time, on
her mother's silently pressing her hand with tender
compassion, her small degree of fortitude was quite
overcome, she burst into tears and left the room.
This violent oppression of spirits continued the whole
evening. She was without any power, because she was
without any desire of command over herself. The
slightest mention of any thing relative to Willoughby
overpowered her in an instant; and though her family
were most anxiously attentive to her comfort, it was
impossible for them, if they spoke at all, to keep clear
of every subject which her feelings connected with him.
AusSeSe83
Marianne would have thought herself very inexcusable
had she been able to sleep at all the first night
after parting from Willoughby. She would have been
ashamed to look her family in the face the next morning,
had she not risen from her bed in more need of repose
than when she lay down in it. But the feelings which
made such composure a disgrace, left her in no danger
of incurring it. She was awake the whole night, and she
wept the greatest part of it. She got up with an headache,
was unable to talk, and unwilling to take any
nourishment; giving pain every moment to her mother
and sisters, and forbidding all attempt at consolation
from either. Her sensibility was potent enough!
When breakfast was over she walked out by herself,
and wandered about the village of Allenham, indulging
the recollection of past enjoyment and crying over the
present reverse for the chief of the morning.
The evening passed off in the equal indulgence of
feeling. She played over every favourite song that she
had been used to play to Willoughby, every air in which
their voices had been oftenest joined, and sat at the
instrument gazing on every line of music that he had
written out for her, till her heart was so heavy that no
farther sadness could be gained; and this nourishment
of grief was every day applied. She spent whole hours
at the pianoforte=alternately singing and crying; her
voice often totally suspended by her tears. In books
too, as well as in music, she courted the misery which
a contrast betwen the past and present was certain
of giving. She read nothing but what they had been
used to read together.
Such violence of affliction indeed could not be supported
for ever; it sunk within a few days into a calmer
AusSeSe84
melancholy; but these employments, to which she daily
recurred, her solitary walks and silent meditations, still
produced occasional effusions of sorrow as lively as
ever.
No letter from Willoughby came; and none seemed
expected by Marianne. Her mother was surprised, and
Elinor again became uneasy. But Mrs. Dashwood
could find explanations whenever she wanted them,
which at least satisfied herself.
"Remember, Elinor,"
said she,
"how very often
Sir John fetches our letters himself from the post, and
carries them to it. We have already agreed that secrecy
may be necessary, and we must acknowledge that it
could not be maintained if their correspondence were
to pass through Sir John's hands."
Elinor could not deny the truth of this, and she tried
to find in it a motive sufficient for their silence. But
there was one method so direct, so simple, and in her
opinion so eligible of knowing the real state of the affair,
and of instantly removing all mystery, that she could
not help suggesting it to her mother.
"Why do you not ask Marianne at once,"
said she,
"whether she is or is not engaged to Willoughby?
From you, her mother, and so kind, so indulgent
a mother, the question could not give offence. It
would be the natural result of your affection for her.
She used to be all unreserve, and to you more especially."
"I would not ask such a question for the world.
Supposing it possible that they are not engaged, what
distress would not such an inquiry inflict! At any rate
it would be most ungenerous. I should never deserve
her confidence again, after forcing from her a confession
of what is meant at present to be unacknowledged to
any one. I know Marianne's heart: I know that she
dearly loves me, and that I shall not be the last to whom
the affair is made known, when circumstances make the
revealment of it eligible. I would not attempt to force
the confidence of any one; of a child much less; because
AusSeSe85
a sense of duty would prevent the denial which her
wishes might direct."
Elinor thought this generosity overstrained, considering
her sister's youth, and urged the matter farther,
but in vain; common sense, common care, common
prudence, were all sunk in Mrs. Dashwood's romantic
delicacy.
It was several days before Willoughby's name was
mentioned before Marianne by any of her family;
Sir John and Mrs. Jennings, indeed, were not so nice;
their witticisms added pain to many a painful hour; --
but one evening, Mrs. Dashwood, accidentally taking
up a volume of Shakespeare, exclaimed,
"We have never finished Hamlet, Marianne; our
dearWilloughby went away before we could get through
it. We will put it by, that when he comes again----
But it may be months, perhaps, before that happens."
"Months!"
cried Marianne, with strong surprise.
"No -- nor many weeks."
Mrs. Dashwood was sorry for what she had said; but
it gave Elinor pleasure, as it produced a reply from
Marianne so expressive of confidence in Willoughby
and knowledge of his intentions.
One morning, about a week after his leaving the
country, Marianne was prevailed on to join her sisters
in their usual walk, instead of wandering away by herself.
Hitherto she had carefully avoided every companion
in her rambles. If her sisters intended to walk
on the downs, she directly stole away towards the lanes;
if they talked of the valley, she was as speedy in climbing
the hills, and could never be found when the others set
off. But at length she was secured by the exertions of
Elinor, who greatly disapproved such continual seclusion.
They walked along the road through the valley, and
chiefly in silence, for Marianne's mind could not be
controuled, and Elinor, satisfied with gaining one point,
would not then attempt more. Beyond the entrance
of the valley, where the country, though still rich, was
AusSeSe86
less wild and more open, a long stretch of the road
which they had travelled on first coming to Barton, lay
before them; and on reaching that point, they stopped
to look around them, and examine a prospect which
formed the distance of their view from the cottage,
from a spot which they had never happened to reach
in any of their walks before.
Amongst the objects in the scene, they soon discovered
an animated one; it was a man on horseback riding
towards them. In a few minutes they could distinguish
him to be a gentleman; and in a moment afterwards
Marianne rapturously exclaimed,
"It is he; it is indeed; -- I know it is!" --
And was
hastening to meet him, when Elinor cried out,
"Indeed, Marianne, I think you are mistaken. It is
not Willoughby. The person is not tall enough for him,
and has not his air."
"He has, he has,"
cried Marianne,
"I am sure he has.
His air, his coat, his horse. I knew how soon he would
come."
She walked eagerly on as she spoke; and Elinor, to
screen Marianne from particularity, as she felt almost
certain of its not being Willoughby, quickened her pace
and kept up with her. They were soon within thirty
yards of the gentleman. Marianne looked again; her
heart sunk within her; and abruptly turning round,
she was hurrying back, when the voices of both her
sisters were raised to detain her, a third, almost as well
known as Willoughby's, joined them in begging her to
stop, and she turned round with surprise to see and
welcome Edward Ferrars.
He was the only person in the world who could at
that moment be forgiven for not being Willoughby; the
only one who could have gained a smile from her; but
she dispersed her tears to smile on him, and in her
sister's happiness forgot for a time her own disappointment.
He dismounted, and giving his horse to his servant,
AusSeSe87
walked back with them to Barton, whither he was
purposely coming to visit them.
He was welcomed by them all with great cordiality,
but especially by Marianne, who shewed more warmth
of regard in her reception of him than even Elinor
herself. To Marianne, indeed, the meeting between
Edward and her sister was but a continuation of that
unaccountable coldness which she had often observed
at Norland in their mutual behaviour. On Edward's
side, more particularly, there was a deficiency of all
that a lover ought to look and say on such an occasion.
He was confused, seemed scarcely sensible of pleasure
in seeing them, looked neither rapturous nor gay, said
little but what was forced from him by questions, and
distinguished Elinor by no mark of affection. Marianne
saw and listened with increasing surprise. She began
almost to feel a dislike of Edward; and it ended, as
every feeling must end with her, by carrying back her
thoughts to Willoughby, whose manners formed a contrast
sufficiently striking to those of his brother elect.
After a short silence which succeeded the first surprise
and inquiries of meeting, Marianne asked Edward if
he came directly from London.
No, he had been in
Devonshire a fortnight.
"A fortnight!" she repeated, surprised at his being
so long in the same county with Elinor without seeing
her before.
He looked rather distressed as he added, that he had
been staying with some friends near Plymouth.
"Have you been lately in Sussex?"
said Elinor.
"I was at Norland about a month ago."
"And how does dear, dear Norland look?"
cried
Marianne.
"Dear, dear Norland,"
said Elinor,
"probably looks
much as it always does at this time of year. The woods
and walks thickly covered with dead leaves."
"Oh!"
cried Marianne,
"with what transporting
sensations have I formerly seen them fall! How have
AusSeSe88
I delighted, as I walked, to see them driven in showers
about me by the wind! What feelings have they, the
season, the air altogether inspired! Now there is no one
to regard them. They are seen only as a nuisance,
swept hastily off, and driven as much as possible from
the sight."
"It is not every one,"
said Elinor,
"who has your
passion for dead leaves."
"No; my feelings are not often shared, not often
understood. But sometimes they are." --
As she said
this, she sunk into a reverie for a few moments; -- but
rousing herself again,
"Now, Edward,"
said she, calling
his attention to the prospect,
"here is Barton valley.
Look up it, and be tranquil if you can. Look at those
hills! Did you ever see their equals? To the left is
Barton park, amongst those woods and plantations.
You may see one end of the house. And there, beneath
that farthest hill, which rises with such grandeur, is
our cottage."
"It is a beautiful country,"
he replied;
"but these
bottoms must be dirty in winter."
"How can you think of dirt, with such objects before
you?"
"Because,"
replied he, smiling,
"among the rest of
the objects before me, I see a very dirty lane."
"How strange!"
said Marianne to herself as she
walked on.
"Have you an agreeable neighbourhood here? Are
the Middletons pleasant people?"
"No, not at all,"
answered Marianne,
"we could not
be more unfortunately situated."
"Marianne,"
cried her sister,
"how can you say so?
How can you be so unjust? They are a very respectable
family, Mr. Ferrars; and towards us have behaved in
the friendliest manner. Have you forgot, Marianne,
how many pleasant days we have owed to them?"
"No,"
said Marianne in a low voice,
"nor how many
painful moments."
AusSeSe89
Elinor took no notice of this, and directing her
attention to their visitor, endeavoured to support something
like discourse with him by talking of their
present residence, its conveniences, &c. extorting from
him occasional questions and remarks. His coldness
and reserve mortified her severely; she was vexed and
half angry; but resolving to regulate her behaviour to
him by the past rather than the present, she avoided
every appearance of resentment or displeasure, and
treated him as she thought he ought to be treated from
the family connection.
AusSeSe90
Mrs. Dashwood was surprised only for a moment at
seeing him; for his coming to Barton was, in her opinion,
of all things the most natural. Her joy and expressions
of regard long outlived her wonder. He received the
kindest welcome from her; and shyness, coldness, reserve
could not stand against such a reception. They
had begun to fail him before he entered the house, and
they were quite overcome by the captivating manners
of Mrs. Dashwood. Indeed a man could not very well
be in love with either of her daughters, without extending
the passion to her; and Elinor had the satisfaction
of seeing him soon become more like himself.
His
affections seemed to reanimate towards them all, and
his interest in their welfare again became perceptible.
He was not in spirits however; he praised their house,
admired its prospect, was attentive, and kind; but still
he was not in spirits.
The whole family perceived it,
and Mrs. Dashwood, attributing it to some want of
liberality in his mother, sat down to table indignant
against all selfish parents.
"What are Mrs. Ferrars's views for you at present,
Edward?"
said she, when dinner was over and they
had drawn round the fire;
"are you still to be a great
orator in spite of yourself?"
"No. I hope my mother is now convinced that I
have no more talents than inclination for a public
life!"
"But how is your fame to be established? for famous
you must be to satisfy all your family; and with no
inclination for expense, no affection for strangers, no
profession, and no assurance, you may find it a difficult
matter."
"I shall not attempt it. I have no wish to be distinguished;
AusSeSe91
and I have every reason to hope I never
shall. Thank Heaven! I cannot be forced into genius
and eloquence."
"You have no ambition, I well know. Your wishes
are all moderate."
"As moderate as those of the rest of the world,
I believe. I wish as well as every body else to be
perfectly happy; but like every body else it must be
in my own way. Greatness will not make me so."
"Strange if it would!"
cried Marianne.
"What
have wealth or grandeur to do with happiness?"
"Grandeur has but little,"
said Elinor,
"but wealth
has much to do with it."
"Elinor, for shame!"
said Marianne;
"money can
only give happiness where there is nothing else to give
it. Beyond a competence, it can afford no real satisfaction,
as far as mere self is concerned."
"Perhaps,"
said Elinor, smiling,
"we may come to
the same point. Your competence and my wealth are
very much alike, I dare say; and without them, as
the world goes now, we shall both agree that every kind
of external comfort must be wanting. Your ideas are
only more noble than mine. Come, what is your
competence?"
"About eighteen hundred or two thousand a-year;
not more than that."
Elinor laughed.
"Two thousand a-year! One is
my wealth! I guessed how it would end."
"And yet two thousand a-year is a very moderate
income,"
said Marianne.
"A family cannot well be
maintained on a smaller. I am sure I am not extravagant
in my demands. A proper establishment of servants,
a carriage, perhaps two, and hunters, cannot be supported
on less."
Elinor smiled again, to hear her sister describing so
accurately their future expenses at Combe Magna.
"Hunters!"
repeated Edward --
"But why must
you have hunters? Every body does not hunt."
AusSeSe92
Marianne coloured as she replied,
"But most people
do."
"I wish,"
said Margaret, striking out a novel thought,
"that somebody would give us all a large fortune
apiece!"
"Oh that they would!"
cried Marianne, her eyes
sparkling with animation, and her cheeks glowing with
the delight of such imaginary happiness.
"We are all unanimous in that wish, I suppose,"
said Elinor,
"in spite of the insufficiency of wealth."
"Oh dear!"
cried Margaret,
"how happy I should
be! I wonder what I should do with it!"
Marianne looked as if she had no doubt on that point.
"I should be puzzled to spend a large fortune myself,"
said Mrs. Dashwood,
"if my children were all to be
rich without my help."
"You must begin your improvements on this house,"
observed Elinor,
"and your difficulties will soon vanish."
"What magnificent orders would travel from this
family to London,"
said Edward,
"in such an event!
What a happy day for booksellers, music-sellers, and
print-shops! You, Miss Dashwood, would give a general
commission for every new print of merit to be sent
you -- and as for Marianne, I know her greatness of
soul, there would not be music enough in London to
content her. And books! -- Thomson, Cowper, Scott --
she would buy them all over and over again; she
would buy up every copy, I believe, to prevent their
falling into unworthy hands; and she would have every
book that tells her how to admire an old twisted tree.
Should not you, Marianne? Forgive me, if I am very
saucy. But I was willing to shew you that I had not
forgot our old disputes."
"I love to be reminded of the past, Edward -- whether
it be melancholy or gay, I love to recall it -- and you will
never offend me by talking of former times. You are
very right in supposing how my money would be spent
-- some of it, at least -- my loose cash would certainly
AusSeSe93
be employed in improving my collection of music and
books."
"And the bulk of your fortune would be laid out in
annuities on the authors or their heirs."
"No, Edward, I should have something else to do
with it."
"Perhaps then you would bestow it as a reward on
that person who wrote the ablest defence of your
favorite maxim, that no one can ever be in love more
than once in their life -- for your opinion on that point
is unchanged, I presume?"
"Undoubtedly. At my time of life opinions are
tolerably fixed. It is not likely that I should now see
or hear anything to change them."
"Marianne is as stedfast as ever, you see,"
said Elinor,
"she is not at all altered."
"She is only grown a little more grave than she was."
"Nay, Edward,"
said Marianne,
"you need not
reproach me. You are not very gay yourself."
"Why should you think so!"
replied he, with a sigh.
"But gaiety never was a part of my character."
"Nor do I think it a part of Marianne's,"
said Elinor;
"I should hardly call her a lively girl -- she is very
earnest, very eager in all she does -- sometimes talks
a great deal and always with animation -- but she is
not often really merry."
"I believe you are right,"
he replied,
"and yet
I have always set her down as a lively girl."
"I have frequently detected myself in such kind of
mistakes,"
said Elinor,
"in a total misapprehension of
character in some point or other: fancying people so
much more gay or grave, or ingenious or stupid than
they really are, and I can hardly tell why, or in what
the deception originated. Sometimes one is guided by
what they say of themselves, and very frequently by
what other people say of them, without giving oneself
time to deliberate and judge."
"But I thought it was rightElinor,"
said Marianne,
AusSeSe94
"to be guided wholly by the opinion of other people.
I thought our judgments were given us merely to be
subservient to those of our neighbours. This has always
been your doctrine, I am sure."
"No, Marianne, never. My doctrine has never aimed
at the subjection of the understanding. All I have
ever attempted to influence has been the behaviour.
You must not confound my meaning. I am guilty,
I confess, of having often wished you to treat our
acquaintance in general with greater attention; but
when have I advised you to adopt their sentiments or
conform to their judgment in serious matters?"
"You have not been able then to bring your sister
over to your plan of general civility,"
said Edward to
Elinor.
"Do you gain no ground?"
"Quite the contrary,"
replied Elinor, looking expressively
at Marianne.
"My judgment,"
he returned,
"is all on your side
of the question; but I am afraid my practice is much
more on your sister's. I never wish to offend, but I am
so foolishly shy, that I often seem negligent, when I am
only kept back by my natural aukwardness. I have
frequently thought that I must have been intended by
nature to be fond of low company, I am so little at my
ease among strangers of gentility!"
"Marianne has not shyness to excuse any inattention
of hers,"
said Elinor.
"She knows her own worth too well for false shame,"
replied Edward.
"Shyness is only the effect of a sense
of inferiority in some way or other. If I could persuade
myself that my manners were perfectly easy and graceful,
I should not be shy."
"But you would still be reserved,"
said Marianne,
"and that is worse."
Edward stared --
"Reserved! Am I reserved, Marianne?"
"Yes, very."
"I do not understand you,"
replied he, colouring.
AusSeSe95
"Reserved! -- how, in what manner? What am I to
tell you? What can you suppose?"
Elinor looked surprised at his emotion, but trying
to laugh off the subject, she said to him,
"Do not you
know my sister well enough to understand what she
means? Do not you know that she calls every one
reserved who does not talk as fast, and admire what she
admires as rapturously as herself?"
Edward made no answer. His gravity and thoughtfulness
returned on him in their fullest extent -- and he
sat for some time silent and dull.
AusSeSe96
Elinor saw, with great uneasiness, the low spirits
of her friend. His visit afforded her but a very partial
satisfaction, while his own enjoyment in it appeared
so imperfect. It was evident that he was unhappy;
she wished it were equally evident that he still distinguished
her by the same affection which once she had
felt no doubt of inspiring; but hitherto the continuance
of his preference seemed very uncertain; and the
reservedness of his manner towards her contradicted
one moment what a more animated look had intimated
the preceding one.
He joined her and Marianne in the breakfast-room
the next morning before the others were down; and
Marianne, who was always eager to promote their
happiness as far as she could, soon left them to themselves.
But before she was half way up stairs she
heard the parlour door open, and, turning round, was
astonished to see Edward himself come out.
"I am going into the village to see my horses,"
said
he,
"as you are not yet ready for breakfast; I shall be
back again presently."
------
Edward returned to them with fresh admiration of
the surrounding country; in his walk to the village, he
had seen many parts of the valley to advantage; and
the village itself, in a much higher situation than the
cottage, afforded a general view of the whole, which had
exceedingly pleased him. This was a subject which
ensured Marianne's attention, and she was beginning
to describe her own admiration of these scenes, and to
question him more minutely on the objects that had
particularly struck him, when Edward interrupted her
by saying,
"You must not inquire too far, Marianne --
remember I have no knowledge in the picturesque, and
AusSeSe97
I shall offend you by my ignorance and want of taste
if we come to particulars. I shall call hills steep, which
ought to be bold; surfaces strange and uncouth, which
ought to be irregular and rugged; and distant objects
out of sight, which ought only to be indistinct through
the soft medium of a hazy atmosphere. You must be
satisfied with such admiration as I can honestly give.
I call it a very fine country -- the hills are steep, the woods
seem full of fine timber, and the valley looks comfortable
and snug -- with rich meadows and several neat farm
houses scattered here and there. It exactly answers
my idea of a fine country, because it unites beauty
with utility -- and I dare say it is a picturesque one too,
because you admire it; I can easily believe it to be full
of rocks and promontories, grey moss and brush wood,
but these are all lost on me. I know nothing of the
picturesque."
"I am afraid it is but too true,"
said Marianne;
"but why should you boast of it?"
"I suspect,"
said Elinor,
"that to avoid one kind of
affectation, Edward here falls into another. Because he
believes many people pretend to more admiration of
the beauties of nature than they really feel, and is
disgusted with such pretensions, he affects greater
indifference and less discrimination in viewing them
himself than he possesses. He is fastidious and will
have an affectation of his own."
"It is very true,"
said Marianne,
"that admiration
of landscape scenery is become a mere jargon. Every body
pretends to feel and tries to describe with the
taste and elegance of him who first defined what picturesque
beauty was. I detest jargon of every kind,
and sometimes I have kept my feelings to myself,
because I could find no language to describe them in but
what was worn and hackneyed out of all sense and
meaning."
"I am convinced,"
said Edward,
"that you really
feel all the delight in a fine prospect which you profess
AusSeSe98
to feel. But, in return, your sister must allow me to
feel no more than I profess. I like a fine prospect, but
not on picturesque principles. I do not like crooked,
twisted, blasted trees. I admire them much more if
they are tall, straight and flourishing. I do not like
ruined, tattered cottages. I am not fond of nettles, or
thistles, or heath blossoms. I have more pleasure in
a snug farm-house than a watch-tower -- and a troop of
tidy, happy villagers please me better than the finest
banditti in the world."
Marianne looked with amazement at Edward, with
compassion at her sister. Elinor only laughed.
The subject was continued no farther; and Marianne
remained thoughtfully silent, till a new object suddenly
engaged her attention. She was sitting by Edward,
and in taking his tea from Mrs. Dashwood, his hand
passed so directly before her, as to make a ring, with
a plait of hair in the centre, very conspicuous on one of
his fingers.
"I never saw you wear a ring before, Edward,"
she
cried.
"Is thatFanny's hair? I remember her
promising to give you some. But I should have thought
her hair had been darker."
Marianne spoke inconsiderately what she really felt --
but when she saw how much she had pained Edward,
her own vexation at her want of thought could not be
surpassed by his. He coloured very deeply, and giving
a momentary glance at Elinor, replied,
"Yes; it is
my sister's hair. The setting always casts a different
shade on it you know."
Elinor had met his eye, and looked conscious likewise.
That the hair was her own, she instantaneously felt as
well satisfied as Marianne; the only difference in their
conclusions was, that whatMarianne considered as a
free gift from her sister, Elinor was conscious must have
been procured by some theft or contrivance unknown to
herself. She was not in a humour, however, to regard
it as an affront, and affecting to take no notice of what
AusSeSe99
passed, by instantly talking of something else, she
internally resolved henceforward to catch every opportunity
of eyeing the hair and of satisfying herself,
beyond all doubt, that it was exactly the shade of her
own.
Edward's embarrassment lasted some time, and it
ended in an absence of mind still more settled. He
was particularly grave the whole morning. Marianne
severely censured herself for what she had said; but
her own forgiveness might have been more speedy,
had she known how little offence it had given her sister.
Before the middle of the day, they were visited by
Sir John and Mrs. Jennings, who, having heard of the
arrival of a gentleman at the cottage, came to take
a survey of the guest. With the assistance of his mother-in-law,
Sir John was not long in discovering that the
name of Ferrars began with an F. and this prepared
a future mine of raillery against the devoted Elinor,
which nothing but the newness of their acquaintance
with Edward could have prevented from being immediately
sprung. But, as it was, she only learned from some
very significant looks, how far their penetration, founded
on Margaret's instructions, extended.
Sir John never came to the Dashwoods without
either inviting them to dine at the park the next day,
or to drink tea with them that evening. On the present
occasion, for the better entertainment of their visitor,
towards whose amusement he felt himself bound to
contribute, he wished to engage them for both.
"You must drink tea with us to night,"
said he,
"for
we shall be quite alone -- and to-morrow you must
absolutely dine with us, for we shall be a large party."
Mrs. Jennings enforced the necessity.
"And who
knows but you may raise a dance,"
said she.
"And
that will tempt you, Miss Marianne."
"A dance!"
cried Marianne.
"Impossible! Who
is to dance?"
"Who! why yourselves, and the Careys, and
AusSeSe100
Whitakers to be sure. -- What! you thought nobody
could dance because a certain person that shall be
nameless is gone!"
"I wish with all my soul,"
cried Sir John,
"that
Willoughby were among us again."
This, and Marianne's blushing, gave new suspicions
to Edward.
"And who is Willoughby?"
said he, in
a low voice, to Miss Dashwood, by whom he was sitting.
She gave him a brief reply. Marianne's countenance
was more communicative. Edward saw enough to
comprehend, not only the meaning of others, but such
of Marianne's expressions as had puzzled him before;
and when their visitors left them, he went immediately
round to her and said, in a whisper,
"I have been
guessing. Shall I tell you my guess?"
"What do you mean?"
"Shall I tell you?"
"Certainly."
"Well then; I guess that Mr. Willoughby hunts."
Marianne was surprised and confused, yet she could
not help smiling at the quiet archness of his manner,
and, after a moment's silence, said,
"Oh! Edward! How can you? -- But the time will
come I hope ---- I am sure you will like him."
"I do not doubt it,"
replied he, rather astonished
at her earnestness and warmth; for had he not imagined
it to be a joke for the good of her acquaintance in general,
founded only on a something or a nothing between
Mr. Willoughby and herself, he would not have ventured
to mention it.
AusSeSe101
Edward remained a week at the cottage; he was
earnestly pressed by Mrs. Dashwood to stay longer; but
as if he were bent only on self-mortification, he seemed
resolved to be gone when his enjoyment among his
friends was at the height. His spirits, during the last
two or three days, though still very unequal, were greatly
improved -- he grew more and more partial to the house
and environs -- never spoke of going away without
a sigh -- declared
his time to be wholly disengaged --
even doubted to what place he should go when he left
them -- but still, go he must. Never had any week
passed so quickly -- he could hardly believe it to be gone.
He said so repeatedly; other things he said too, which
marked the turn of his feelings and gave the lie to his
actions.
He had no pleasure at Norland; he detested
being in town; but either to Norland or London, he
must go. He valued their kindness beyond any thing,
and his greatest happiness was in being with them.
Yet
he must leave them at the end of a week, in spite of
their wishes and his own, and without any restraint
on his time.
Elinor placed all that was astonishing in this way of
acting to his mother's account; and it was happy for
her that he had a mother whose character was so
imperfectly known to her, as to be the general excuse
for every thing strange on the part of her son. Disappointed,
however, and vexed as she was, and sometimes
displeased with his uncertain behaviour to herself,
she was very well disposed on the whole to regard his
actions with all the candid allowances and generous
qualifications, which had been rather more painfully
extorted from her, for Willoughby's service, by her
mother. His want of spirits, of openness, and of
AusSeSe102
consistency, were most usually attributed to his want
of independence, and his better knowledge of Mrs. Ferrars's
disposition and designs.
The shortness of
his visit, the steadiness of his purpose in leaving them,
originated in the same fettered inclination, the same
inevitable necessity of temporising with his mother.
The old, well established grievance of duty against will,
parent against child, was the cause of all.
She would
have been glad to know when these difficulties were to
cease, this opposition was to yield, -- when Mrs. Ferrars
would be reformed, and her son be at liberty to be
happy. But from such vain wishes, she was forced to
turn for comfort to the renewal of her confidence in
Edward's affection, to the remembrance of every mark
of regard in look or word which fell from him while at
Barton, and above all to that flattering proof of it
which he constantly wore round his finger.
"I think, Edward,"
said Mrs. Dashwood, as they
were at breakfast the last morning,
"you would be
a happier man if you had any profession to engage
your time and give an interest of your plans and actions.
Some inconvenience to your friends, indeed, might
result from it -- you would not be able to give them so
much of your time. But
(with a smile)
you would be
materially benefited in one particular at least -- you
would know where to go when you left them."
"I do assure you,"
he replied,
"that I have long
thought on this point, as you think now. It has been,
and is, and probably will always be a heavy misfortune
to me, that I have had no necessary business to engage
me, no profession to give me employment, or afford me
any thing like independence. But unfortunately my
own nicety, and the nicety of my friends, have made me
what I am, an idle, helpless being. We never could
agree in our choice of a profession. I always preferred
the church, as I still do. But that was not smart enough
for my family. They recommended the army. That
was a great deal too smart for me. The law was allowed
AusSeSe103
to be genteel enough; many young men, who had
chambers in the Temple, made a very good appearance
in the first circles, and drove about town in very knowing
gigs. But I had no inclination for the law, even in this
less abstruse study of it, which my family approved.
As for the navy, it had fashion on its side, but I was too
old when the subject was first started to enter it -- and,
at length, as there was no necessity for my having any
profession at all, as I might be as dashing and expensive
without a red coat on my back as with one, idleness was
pronounced on the whole to be the most advantageous
and honourable, and a young man of eighteen is not in
general so earnestly bent on being busy as to resist the
solicitations of his friends to do nothing. I was therefore
entered at Oxford and have been properly idle ever
since."
"The consequence of which, I suppose, will be,"
said Mrs. Dashwood,
"since leisure has not promoted
your own happiness, that your sons will be brought up
to as many pursuits, employments, professions, and
trades as Columella's."
"They will be brought up,"
said he, in a serious
accent,
"to be as unlike myself as is possible. In feeling,
in action, in condition, in every thing."
"Come, come; this is all an effusion of immediate
want of spirits, Edward. You are in a melancholy
humour, and fancy that any one unlike yourself must
be happy. But remember that the pain of parting from
friends will be felt by every body at times, whatever
be their education or state. Know your own happiness.
You want nothing but patience -- or give it a more
fascinating name, call it hope. Your mother will secure
to you, in time, that independence you are so anxious for;
it is her duty, and it will, it must ere long become her happiness
to prevent your whole youth from being wasted in
discontent. How much may not a few months do?"
"I think,"
replied Edward,
"that I may defy many
months to produce any good to me."
AusSeSe104
This desponding turn of mind, though it could not
be communicated to Mrs. Dashwood, gave additional
pain to them all in the parting, which shortly took place,
and left an uncomfortable impression on Elinor's feelings
especially, which required some trouble and time to
subdue. But as it was her determination to subdue it,
and to prevent herself from appearing to suffer more than
what all her family suffered on his going away, she did
not adopt the method so judiciously employed by
Marianne, on a similar occasion, to augment and fix
her sorrow, by seeking silence, solitude, and idleness.
Their means were as different as their objects, and equally
suited to the advancement of each.
Elinor sat down to her drawing-table as soon as he
was out of the house, busily employed herself the whole
day, neither sought nor avoided the mention of his
name, appeared to interest herself almost as much as
ever in the general concerns of the family, and if, by
this conduct, she did not lessen her own grief, it was at
least prevented from unnecessary increase, and her
mother and sisters were spared much solicitude on her
account.
Such behaviour as this, so exactly the reverse of her
own, appeared no more meritorious to Marianne, than
her own had seemed faulty to her. The business of
self-command she settled very easily; -- with strong
affections it was impossible, with calm ones it could have
no merit. That her sister's affections were calm, she
dared not deny, though she blushed to acknowledge it;
and of the strength of her own, she gave a very striking
proof, by still loving and respecting that sister, in spite
of this mortifying conviction.
Without shutting herself up from her family, or leaving
the house in determined solitude to avoid them, or lying
awake the whole night to indulge meditation, Elinor
found every day afforded her leisure enough to think of
Edward, and of Edward's behaviour, in every possible
variety which the different state of her spirits at different
AusSeSe105
times could produce; -- with tenderness, pity, approbation,
censure, and doubt. There were moments in
abundance, when, if not by the absence of her mother
and sisters, at least by the nature of their employments,
conversation was forbidden among them, and every
effect of solitude was produced. Her mind was inevitably
at liberty; her thoughts could not be chained elsewhere;
and the past and the future, on a subject so interesting,
must be before her, must force her attention, and engross
her memory, her reflection, and her fancy.
From a reverie of this kind, as she sat at her drawing-table,
she was roused one morning, soon after Edward's
leaving them, by the arrival of company. She happened
to be quite alone. The closing of the little gate, at the
entrance of the green court in front of the house, drew
her eyes to the window, and she saw a large party
walking up to the door. Amongst them were Sir John
and Lady Middleton and Mrs. Jennings, but there were
two others, a gentleman and lady, who were quite
unknown to her. She was sitting near the window, and
as soon as Sir John perceived her, he left the rest of
the party to the ceremony of knocking at the door, and
stepping across the turf, obliged her to open the casement
to speak to him, though the space was so short
between the door and the window, as to make it hardly
possible to speak at one without being heard at the other.
"Well,"
said he,
"we have brought you some
strangers. How do you like them?"
"Hush! they will hear you."
"Never mind if they do. It is only the Palmers.
Charlotte is very pretty, I can tell you. You may see
her if you look this way."
As Elinor was certain of seeing her in a couple of
minutes, without taking that liberty, she begged to
be excused.
"Where is Marianne? Has she run away because
we are come? I see her instrument is open."
"She is walking, I believe."
AusSeSe106
They were now joined by Mrs. Jennings, who had not
patience enough to wait till the door was opened before
she told her story. She came hallooing to the window,
"How do you do, my dear? How does Mrs. Dashwood
do? And where are your sisters? What! all alone!
you will be glad of a little company to sit with you.
I have brought my other son and daughter to see you.
Only think of their coming so suddenly! I thought
I heard a carriage last night, while we were drinking
our tea, but it never entered my head that it could be
them. I thought of nothing but whether it might not
be Colonel Brandon come back again; so I said to
Sir John, I do think I hear a carriage; perhaps it is
Colonel Brandon come back again" ----
Elinor was obliged to turn from her, in the middle
of her story, to receive the rest of the party; Lady Middleton
introduced the two strangers; Mrs. Dashwood
and Margaret came down stairs at the same time,
and they all sat down to look at one another, while
Mrs. Jennings continued her story as she walked through
the passage into the parlour, attended by Sir John.
Mrs. Palmer was several years younger than Lady Middleton,
and totally unlike her in every respect.
She was short and plump, had a very pretty face, and
the finest expression of good humour in it that could
possibly be. Her manners were by no means so elegant
as her sister's, but they were much more prepossessing.
She came in with a smile, smiled all the time of her
visit, except when she laughed, and smiled when she
went away. Her husband was a grave looking young
man of five or six and twenty, with an air of more
fashion and sense than his wife, but of less willingness
to please or be pleased. He entered the room with
a look of self-consequence, slightly bowed to the ladies,
without speaking a word, and, after briefly surveying
them and their apartments, took up a newspaper from
the table and continued to read it as long as he staid.
Mrs. Palmer, on the contrary, who was strongly
AusSeSe107
endowed by nature with a turn for being uniformly
civil and happy, was hardly seated before her admiration
of the parlour and every thing in it burst forth.
"Well! what a delightful room this is! I never saw
anything so charming! Only think, mama, how it is
improved since I was here last! I always thought it
such a sweet place, ma'am!
(turning to Mrs. Dashwood,)
but you have made it so charming! Only look, sister,
how delightful every thing is! How I should like such
a house for myself! Should not you, Mr. Palmer?"
Mr. Palmer made her no answer, and did not even
raise his eyes from the newspaper.
"Mr. Palmer does not hear me,"
said she, laughing,
"he never does sometimes. It is so ridiculous!"
This was quite a new idea to Mrs. Dashwood, she had
never been used to find wit in the inattention of any one,
and could not help looking with surprise at them both.
Mrs. Jennings, in the mean time, talked on as loud as
she could, and continued her account of their surprise,
the evening before, on seeing their friends, without
ceasing till every thing was told. Mrs. Palmer laughed
heartily at the recollection of their astonishment, and
every body agreed, two or three times over, that it
had been quite an agreeable surprise.
"You may believe how glad we all were to see them,"
added Mrs. Jennings, leaning forwards towards Elinor,
and speaking in a low voice as if she meant to be heard
by no one else, though they were seated on different
sides of the room;
"but, however, I can't help wishing
they had not travelled quite so fast, nor made such
a long journey of it, for they came all round by London
upon account of some business, for you know
(nodding
significantly and pointing to her daughter)
it was wrong
in her situation. I wanted her to stay at home and
rest this morning, but she would come with us; she
longed so much to see you all!"
Mrs. Palmer laughed, and said it would not do her
any harm.
AusSeSe108
"She expects to be confined in February,"
continued
Mrs. Jennings.
Lady Middleton could no longer endure such a conversation,
and therefore exerted herself to ask Mr. Palmer
if there was any news in the paper.
"No, none at all,"
he replied, and read on.
"Here comes Marianne,"
cried Sir John.
"Now,
Palmer, you shall see a monstrous pretty girl."
He immediately went into the passage, opened the
front door, and ushered her in himself. Mrs. Jennings
asked her, as soon as she appeared, if she had not been
to Allenham; and Mrs. Palmer laughed so heartily
at the question, as to shew she understood it. Mr. Palmer
looked up on her entering the room, stared at
her some minutes, and then returned to his newspaper.
Mrs. Palmer's eye was now caught by the drawings
which hung round the room. She got up to examine
them.
"Oh! dear, how beautiful these are! Well! how
delightful! Do but look, mama, how sweet! I declare
they are quite charming; I could look at them for ever."
And then sitting down again, she very soon
forgot that there were any such things in the room.
When Lady Middleton rose to go away, Mr. Palmer
rose also, laid down the newspaper, stretched himself,
and looked at them all round.
"My love, have you been asleep?"
said his wife,
laughing.
He made her no answer; and only observed, after
again examining the room, that it was very low pitched,
and that the ceiling was crooked. He then made his
bow and departed with the rest.
Sir John had been very urgent with them all to spend
the next day at the park. Mrs. Dashwood, who did not
chuse to dine with them oftener than they dined at the
cottage, absolutely refused on her own account; her
daughters might do as they pleased. But they had no
curiosity to see how Mr. and Mrs. Palmer ate their
AusSeSe109
dinner, and no expectation of pleasure from them in
any other way. They attempted, therefore, likewise to
excuse themselves; the weather was uncertain and not
likely to be good. But Sir John would not be satisfied --
the carriage should be sent for them and they must come.
Lady Middleton too, though she did not press their
mother, pressed them. Mrs. Jennings and Mrs. Palmer
joined their entreaties, all seemed equally anxious to
avoid a family party; and the young ladies were obliged
to yield.
"Why should they ask us?"
said Marianne, as soon
as they were gone.
"The rent of this cottage is said to
be low; but we have it on very hard terms, if we are
to dine at the park whenever any one is staying either
with them, or with us."
"They mean no less to be civil and kind to us now,"
said Elinor,"
by these frequent invitations than by
those which we received from them a few weeks ago.
The alteration is not in them, if their parties are grown
tedious and dull. We must look for the change elsewhere."
AusSeSe110
As the Miss Dashwoods entered the drawing-room
of the park the next day, at one door, Mrs. Palmer
came running in at the other, looking as good humoured
and merry as before. She took them all most affectionately
by the hand, and expressed great delight in seeing
them again.
"I am so glad to see you!"
said she, seating herself
between Elinor and Marianne,
"for it is so bad a day
I was afraid you might not come, which would be
a shocking thing, as we go away again to-morrow. We
must go, for the Westons come to us next week you
know. It was quite a sudden thing our coming at all,
and I knew nothing of it till the carriage was coming to
the door, and then Mr. Palmer asked me if I would
go with him to Barton. He is so droll! He never tells
me any thing! I am so sorry we cannot stay longer;
however we shall meet again in town very soon, I hope."
They were obliged to put an end to such an expectation.
"Not go to town!"
cried Mrs. Palmer, with a laugh,
"I shall be quite disappointed if you do not. I could
get the nicest house in the world for you, next door to
our's, in Hanover-square. You must come, indeed.
I am sure I shall be very happy to chaperon you at any
time till I am confined, if Mrs. Dashwood should not
like to go into public."
They thanked her; but were obliged to resist all
her entreaties.
"Oh! my love,"
cried Mrs. Palmer to her husband,
who just then entered the room --
"You must help me
persuade the Miss Dashwoods to go to town this winter."
Her love made no answer; and after slightly bowing
to the ladies, began complaining of the weather.
"How horrid all this is!"
said he.
"Such weather
AusSeSe111
makes every thing and every body disgusting. Dulness
is as much produced within doors as without, by rain.
It makes one detest all one's acquaintance. What the
devil does Sir John mean by not having a billiard room
in his house? How few people know what comfort is!
Sir John is as stupid as the weather."
The rest of the company soon dropt in.
"I am afraid, Miss Marianne,"
said Sir John,
"you
have not been able to take your usual walk to Allenham
to-day."
Marianne looked very grave and said nothing.
"Oh! don't be so sly before us,"
said Mrs. Palmer;
"for we know all about it, I assure you; and I admire
your taste very much, for I think he is extremely handsome.
We do not live a great way from him in the
country, you know. Not above ten miles, I dare say."
"Much nearer thirty,"
said her husband.
"Ah! well! there is not much difference. I never
was at his house; but they say it is a sweet pretty
place."
"As vile a spot as I ever saw in my life,"
said Mr. Palmer.
Marianne remained perfectly silent, though her
countenance betrayed her interest in what was said.
"Is it very ugly?"
continued Mrs. Palmer --
"then
it must be some other place that is so pretty I suppose."
When they were seated in the dining room, Sir John
observed with regret that they were only eight altogether.
"My dear,"
said he to his lady,
"it is very provoking
that we should be so few. Why did not you ask the
Gilberts to come to us to-day?"
"Did not I tell you, Sir John, when you spoke to
me about it before, that it could not be done? They
dined with us last."
"You and I, Sir John,"
said Mrs. Jennings,
"should
not stand upon such ceremony."
"Then you would be very ill-bred,"
cried Mr. Palmer.
"My love, you contradict every body," --
said his
AusSeSe112
wife with her usual laugh.
"Do you know that you are
quite rude?"
"I did not know I contradicted any body in calling
your mother ill-bred."
"Aye, you may abuse me as you please,"
said the
good-natured old lady,
"you have taken Charlotte off
my hands, and cannot give her back again. So there
I have the whip hand of you."
Charlotte laughed heartily to think that her husband
could not get rid of her; and exultingly said,
she did
not care how cross he was to her, as they must live
together.
It was impossible for any one to be more
thoroughly good-natured, or more determined to be
happy than Mrs. Palmer. The studied indifference,
insolence, and discontent of her husband gave her no
pain: and when he scolded or abused her, she was
highly diverted.
"Mr. Palmer is so droll!"
said she, in a whisper,
to Elinor.
"He is always out of humour."
Elinor was not inclined, after a little observation, to
give him credit for being so genuinely and unaffectedly
ill-natured or ill-bred as he wished to appear. His
temper might perhaps be a little soured by finding, like
many others of his sex, that through some unaccountable
bias in favour of beauty, he was the husband of a very
silly woman, -- but she knew that this kind of blunder
was too common for any sensible man to be lastingly
hurt by it. --
It was rather a wish of distinction she
believed, which produced his contemptuous treatment
of every body, and his general abuse of every thing
before him. It was the desire of appearing superior to
other people. The motive was too common to be wondered
at; but the means, however they might succeed
by establishing his superiority in ill-breeding, were not
likely to attach any one to him except his wife.
"Oh! my dearMiss Dashwood,"
said Mrs. Palmer
soon afterwards,
"I have got such a favour to ask of
you and your sister. Will you come and spend some
AusSeSe113
time at Cleveland this Christmas? Now, pray do, --
and come while the Westons are with us. You cannot
think how happy I shall be! It will be quite delightful!
---- My love,"
applying to her husband,
"don't you
long to have the Miss Dashwoods come to Cleveland?"
"Certainly," --
he replied with a sneer --
"I came into
Devonshire with no other view."
"There now" --
said his lady,
"you see Mr. Palmer
expects you; so you cannot refuse to come."
They both eagerly and resolutely declined her invitation.
"But indeed you must and shall come. I am sure
you will like it of all things. The Westons will be with
us, and it will be quite delightful. You cannot think
what a sweet place Cleveland is; and we are so gay
now, for Mr. Palmer is always going about the country
canvassing against the election; and so many people
come to dine with us that I never saw before, it is quite
charming! But, poor fellow! it is very fatiguing to
him! for he is forced to make every body like him."
Elinor could hardly keep her countenance as she
assented to the hardship of such an obligation.
"How charming it will be,"
said Charlotte,
"when he
is in Parliament! -- won't it? How I shall laugh! It
will be so ridiculous to see all his letters directed to him
with an M.P. -- But do you know, he says, he will never
frank for me? He declares he won't. Don't you,
Mr. Palmer?"
Mr. Palmer took no notice of her.
"He cannot bear writing, you know,"
she continued --
"he says it is quite shocking."
"No;"
said he,
"I never said any thing so irrational.
Don't palm all your abuses of language upon me."
"There now; you see how droll he is. This is always
the way with him! Sometimes he won't speak to me for
half a day together, and then he comes out with something
so droll -- all about any thing in the world."
She surprised Elinor very much as they returned into
AusSeSe114
the drawing-room by asking her whether she did not
like Mr. Palmer excessively.
"Certainly;"
said Elinor,
"he seems very agreeable."
"Well -- I am so glad you do. I thought you would,
he is so pleasant; and Mr. Palmer is excessively pleased
with you and your sisters I can tell you, and you can't
think how disappointed he will be if you don't come to
Cleveland. -- I can't imagine why you should object
to it."
Elinor was again obliged to decline her invitation;
and by changing the subject, put a stop to her entreaties.
She thought it probable that as they lived in the same
county, Mrs. Palmer might be able to give some more
particular account of Willoughby's general character,
than could be gathered from the Middletons' partial
acquaintance with him; and she was eager to gain from
any one, such a confirmation of his merits as might
remove the possibility of fear for Marianne. She began
by inquiring if they saw much of Mr. Willoughby at
Cleveland, and whether they were intimately acquainted
with him.
"Oh! dear, yes; I know him extremely well,"
replied Mrs. Palmer --
"Not that I ever spoke to him
indeed; but I have seen him for ever in town. Somehow
or other I never happened to be staying at Barton
while he was at Allenham. Mama saw him here once
before; -- but I was with my uncle at Weymouth.
However, I dare say we should have seen a great deal
of him in Somersetshire, if it had not happened very
unluckily that we should never have been in the country
together. He is very little at Combe, I believe; but
if he were ever so much there, I do not think Mr. Palmer
would visit him, for he is in the opposition you know,
and besides it is such a way off. I know why you
inquire about him, very well; your sister is to marry
him. I am monstrous glad of it, for then I shall have
her for a neighbour you know."
"Upon my word,"
replied Elinor,
"you know much
AusSeSe115
more of the matter than I do, if you have any reason to
expect such a match."
"Don't pretend to deny it, because you know it is
what every body talks of. I assure you I heard of it in
my way through town."
"My dearMrs. Palmer!"
"Upon my honour I did. -- I met Colonel Brandon
Monday morning in Bond-street, just before we left
town, and he told me of it directly."
"You surprise me very much. Colonel Brandon tell
you of it! Surely you must be mistaken. To give such
intelligence to a person who could not be interested in
it, even if it were true, is not what I should expect
Colonel Brandon to do."
"But I do assure you it was so, for all that, and I will
tell you how it happened. When we met him, he turned
back and walked with us; and so we began talking of
my brother and sister, and one thing and another, and
I said to him, ""So, Colonel, there is a new family come
to Barton cottage, I hear, and mama sends me word
they are very pretty, and that one of them is going to
be married to Mr. Willoughby of Combe Magna. Is it
true, pray? for of course you must know, as you have
been in Devonshire so lately."""
"And what did the Colonel say?"
"Oh! -- he did not say much; but he looked as if
he knew it to be true, so from that moment I set it down
as certain. It will be quite delightful, I declare! When
is it to take place?"
"Mr. Brandon was very well I hope."
"Oh! yes, quite well; and so full of your praises,
he did nothing but say fine things of you."
"I am flattered by his commendation. He seems
an excellent man; and I think him uncommonly
pleasing."
"So do I. -- He is such a charming man, that it is
quite a pity he should be so grave and so dull. Mama
says he was in love with your sister too. -- I assure you
AusSeSe116
it was a great compliment if he was, for he hardly ever
falls in love with any body."
"Is Mr. Willoughby much known in your part of
Somersetshire?"
said Elinor.
"Oh! yes, extremely well; that is, I do not believe
many people are acquainted with him, because Combe Magna
is so far off; but they all think him extremely
agreeable I assure you. Nobody is more liked than
Mr. Willoughby wherever he goes, and so you may tell
your sister. She is a monstrous lucky girl to get him,
upon my honour; not but that he is much more lucky
in getting her, because she is so very handsome and
agreeable, that nothing can be good enough for her.
However I don't think her hardly at all handsomer
than you, I assure you; for I think you both excessively
pretty, and so does Mr. Palmer too I am sure, though
we could not get him to own it last night."
Mrs. Palmer's information respecting Willoughby was
not very material; but any testimony in his favour,
however small, was pleasing to her.
"I am so glad we are got acquainted at last,"
continued
Charlotte. --
"And now I hope we shall always
be great friends. You can't think how much I longed
to see you! It is so delightful that you should live at
the cottage! Nothing can be like it to be sure! And
I am so glad your sister is going to be well married!
I hope you will be a great deal at Combe Magna. It is
a sweet place by all accounts."
"You have been long acquainted with Colonel Brandon,
have not you?"
"Yes, a great while; ever since my sister married. --
He was a particular friend of Sir John's. I believe,"
she added in a low voice,
"he would have been very
glad to have had me, if he could. Sir John and Lady Middleton
wished it very much. But mama did not
think the match good enough for me, otherwise Sir John
would have mentioned it to the Colonel, and we should
have been married immediately."
AusSeSe117
"Did not Colonel Brandon know of Sir John's proposal
to your mother before it was made? Had he never
owned his affection to yourself?"
"Oh! no; but if mama had not objected to it,
I dare say he would have liked it of all things. He had
not seen me then above twice, for it was before I left
school. However I am much happier as I am. Mr. Palmer
is just the kind of man I like."
AusSeSe118
The Palmers returned to Cleveland the next day, and
the two families at Barton were again left to entertain
each other. But this did not last long; Elinor had
hardly got their last visitors out of her head, had hardly
done wondering at Charlotte's being so happy without
a cause, at Mr. Palmer's acting so simply, with good
abilities, and at the strange unsuitableness which often
existed between husband and wife, before Sir John's and
Mrs. Jennings's active zeal in the cause of society, procured
her some other new acquaintance to see and observe.
In a morning's excursion to Exeter, they had met with
two young ladies, whomMrs. Jennings had the satisfaction
of discovering to be her relations, and this was
enough for Sir John to invite them directly to the park,
as soon as their present engagements at Exeter were over.
Their engagements at Exeter instantly gave way before
such an invitation, and Lady Middleton was thrown
into no little alarm on the return of Sir John, by hearing
that she was very soon to receive a visit from two girls
whom she had never seen in her life, and of whose
elegance, -- whose tolerable gentility even, she could
have no proof; for the assurances of her husband and
mother on that subject went for nothing at all. Their
being her relations too made it so much the worse; and
Mrs. Jennings's attempts at consolation were therefore
unfortunately founded, when she advised her daughter
not to care about their being so fashionable; because
they were all cousins and must put up with one another.
As it was impossible however now to prevent their
coming, Lady Middleton resigned herself to the idea of
it, with all the philosophy of a well bred woman, contenting
herself with merely giving her husband a gentle
reprimand on the subject five or six times every day.
AusSeSe119
The young ladies arrived, their appearance was by
no means ungenteel or unfashionable. Their dress was
very smart, their manners very civil, they were delighted
with the house, and in raptures with the furniture, and
they happened to be so doatingly fond of children that
Lady Middleton's good opinion was engaged in their
favour before they had been an hour at the Park. She
declared them to be very agreeable girls indeed, which
for her ladyship was enthusiastic admiration. Sir John's
confidence in his own judgment rose with this animated
praise, and he set off directly for the cottage to tell the
Miss Dashwoods of the Miss Steeles' arrival, and to
assure them of their being the sweetest girls in the world.
From such commendation as this, however, there was
not much to be learned; Elinor well knew that the
sweetest girls in the world were to be met with in every
part of England, under every possible variation of form,
face, temper, and understanding. Sir John wanted the
whole family to walk to the Park directly and look at
his guests. Benevolent, philanthropic man! It was
painful to him even to keep a third cousin to himself.
"Do come now,"
said he --
"pray come -- you must
come -- I declare you shall come -- You can't think how
you will like them. Lucy is monstrous pretty, and so good humoured
and agreeable! The children are all hanging
about her already, as if she was an old acquaintance. And
they both long to see you of all things, for they have heard
at Exeter that you are the most beautiful creatures in the
world; and I have told them it is all very true, and a great
deal more. You will be delighted with them I am sure.
They have brought the whole coach full of playthings
for the children. How can you be so cross as not to
come? Why they are your cousins, you know, after
a fashion. You are my cousins, and they are my wife's,
so you must be related."
But Sir John could not prevail. He could only obtain a
promise of their calling at the Park within a day or two,
and then left them in amazement at their indifference,
AusSeSe120
to walk home and boast anew of their attractions to
the Miss Steeles, as he had been already boasting of the
Miss Steeles to them.
When their promised visit to the Park and consequent
introduction to these young ladies took place, they
found in the appearance of the eldest, who was nearly
thirty, with a very plain and not a sensible face, nothing
to admire; but in the other, who was not more than
two or three and twenty, they acknowledged considerable
beauty; her features were pretty, and she had
a sharp quick eye, and a smartness of air, which though
it did not give actual elegance or grace, gave distinction
to her person. -- Their manners were particularly civil,
and Elinor soon allowed them credit for some kind of
sense, when she saw with what constant and judicious
attentions they were making themselves agreeable to
Lady Middleton. With her children they were in
continual raptures, extolling their beauty, courting
their notice, and humouring all their whims; and such
of their time as could be spared from the importunate
demands which this politeness made on it, was spent
in admiration of whatever her ladyship was doing, if
she happened to be doing any thing, or in taking patterns
of some elegant new dress, in which her appearance the
day before had thrown them into unceasing delight.
Fortunately for those who pay their court through such
foibles, a fond mother, though, in pursuit of praise for
her children, the most rapacious of human beings, is
likewise the most credulous; her demands are exorbitant;
but she will swallow any thing; and the excessive
affection and endurance of the Miss Steeles towards
her offspring, were viewed therefore by Lady Middleton
without the smallest surprise or distrust. She saw with
maternal complacency all the impertinent incroachments
and mischievous tricks to which her cousins submitted.
She saw their sashes untied, their hair pulled about their
ears, their work-bags searched, and their knives and
scissars stolen away, and felt no doubt of its being
AusSeSe121
a reciprocal enjoyment. It suggested no other surprise
than that Elinor and Marianne should sit so composedly
by, without claiming a share in what was passing.
"John is in such spirits to-day!"
said she, on his
taking Miss Steele's pocket handkerchief, and throwing
it out of the window --
"He is full of monkey tricks."
And soon afterwards, on the second boy's violently
pinching one of the same lady's fingers, she fondly
observed,
"How playful William is!"
"And here is my sweet little Annamaria,"
she added,
tenderly caressing a little girl of three years old, who had
not made a noise for the last two minutes;
"And she
is always so gentle and quiet -- Never was there such
a quiet little thing!"
But unfortunately in bestowing these embraces, a pin
in her ladyship's head dress slightly scratching the child's
neck, produced from this pattern of gentleness, such
violent screams, as could hardly be outdone by any
creature professedly noisy. The mother's consternation
was excessive; but it could not surpass the alarm of
the Miss Steeles, and every thing was done by all three,
in so critical an emergency, which affection could suggest
as likely to assuage the agonies of the little sufferer.
She was seated in her mother's lap, covered with kisses,
her wound bathed with lavender-water, by one of the
Miss Steeles, who was on her knees to attend her, and her
mouth stuffed with sugar plums by the other. With
such a reward for her tears, the child was too wise to
cease crying. She still screamed and sobbed lustily,
kicked her two brothers for offering to touch her, and all
their united soothings were ineffectual till Lady Middleton
luckily remembering that in a scene of similar distress
last week, some apricot marmalade had been successfully
applied for a bruised temple, the same remedy was
eagerly proposed for this unfortunate scratch, and a
slight intermission of screams in the young lady on
hearing it, gave them reason to hope that it would not
be rejected. -- She was carried out of the room therefore
AusSeSe122
in her mother's arms, in quest of this medicine, and as
the two boys chose to follow, though earnestly entreated
by their mother to stay behind, the four young ladies
were left in a quietness which the room had not known
for many hours.
"Poor little creature!"
said Miss Steele, as soon as they
were gone.
"It might have been a very sad accident."
"Yet I hardly know how,"
cried Marianne,
"unless
it had been under totally different circumstances. But
this is the usual way of heightening alarm, where there
is nothing to be alarmed at in reality."
"What a sweet woman Lady Middleton is!"
said
Lucy Steele.
Marianne was silent; it was impossible for her to
say what she did not feel, however trivial the occasion;
and upon Elinor therefore the whole task of telling lies
when politeness required it, always fell. She did her
best when thus called on, by speaking of Lady Middleton
with more warmth than she felt, though with far less
than Miss Lucy.
"And Sir John too,"
cried the elder sister,
"what
a charming man he is!"
Here tooMiss Dashwood's commendation, being
only simple and just, came in without any eclat. She
merely observed that he was perfectly good humoured
and friendly.
"And what a charming little family they have!
I never saw such fine children in my life. -- I declare
I quite doat upon them already, and indeed I am always
distractedly fond of children."
"I should guess so,"
said Elinor with a smile,
"from
what I have witnessed this morning."
"I have a notion,"
said Lucy,
"you think the little
Middletons rather too much indulged; perhaps they may
be the outside of enough; but it is so natural in Lady Middleton;
and for my part, I love to see children full
of life and spirits; I cannot bear them if they are tame
and quiet."
AusSeSe123
"I confess,"
replied Elinor,
"that while I am at
Barton Park, I never think of tame and quiet children
with any abhorrence."
A short pause succeeded this speech, which was first
broken by Miss Steele, who seemed very much disposed
for conversation, and who now said rather abruptly,
"And how do you like Devonshire, Miss Dashwood?
I suppose you were very sorry to leave Sussex."
In some surprise at the familiarity of this question,
or at least of the manner in which it was spoken, Elinor
replied that she was.
"Norland is a prodigious beautiful place, is not it?"
added Miss Steele.
"We have heard Sir John admire it excessively,"
said Lucy, who seemed to think some apology necessary
for the freedom of her sister.
"I think every one must admire it,"
replied Elinor,
"who ever saw the place; though it is not to be supposed
that any one can estimate its beauties as we do."
"And had you a great many smart beaux there?
I suppose you have not so many in this part of the world;
for my part, I think they are a vast addition always."
"But why should you think,"
said Lucy, looking
ashamed of her sister,
"that there are not as many
genteel young men in Devonshire as Sussex?"
"Nay, my dear, I'm sure I don't pretend to say that
there an't. I'm sure there's a vast many smart beaux
in Exeter; but you know, how could I tell what smart
beaux there might be about Norland; and I was only
afraid the Miss Dashwoods might find it dull at Barton,
if they had not so many as they used to have. But
perhaps you young ladies may not care about the
beaux, and had as lief be without them as with them.
For my part, I think they are vastly agreeable, provided
they dress smart and behave civil. But I can't bear to
see them dirty and nasty. Now there's Mr. Rose at
Exeter, a prodigious smart young man, quite a beau,
clerk to Mr. Simpson you know, and yet if you do but
AusSeSe124
meet him of a morning, he is not fit to be seen. -- I
suppose your brother was quite a beau, Miss Dashwood,
before he married, as he was so rich?"
"Upon my word,"
replied Elinor,
"I cannot tell
you, for I do not perfectly comprehend the meaning
of the word. But this I can say, that if he ever was a
beau before he married, he is one still, for there is not the
smallest alteration in him."
"Oh! dear! one never thinks of married mens'
being beaux -- they have something else to do."
"Lord! Anne,"
cried her sister,
"you can talk of
nothing but beaux; -- you will make Miss Dashwood
believe you think of nothing else."
And then to turn
the discourse, she began admiring the house and the
furniture.
This specimen of the Miss Steeles was enough. The
vulgar freedom and folly of the eldest left her no recommendation,
and as Elinor was not blinded by the beauty,
or the shrewd look of the youngest, to her want of real
elegance and artlessness, she left the house without any
wish of knowing them better.
Not so, the Miss Steeles. -- They came from Exeter,
well provided with admiration for the use of Sir John Middleton,
his family, and all his relations, and no
niggardly proportion was now dealt out to his fair
cousins, whom they declared to be the most beautiful,
elegant, accomplished and agreeable girls they had
ever beheld, and with whom they were particularly
anxious to be better acquainted. -- And to be better
acquainted therefore, Elinor soon found was their
inevitable lot, for as Sir John was entirely on the side
of the Miss Steeles, their party would be too strong for
opposition, and that kind of intimacy must be submitted
to, which consists of sitting an hour or two together in
the same room almost every day. Sir John could do not
more; but he did not know that any more was required;
to be together was, in his opinion, to be intimate, and
while his continual schemes for their meeting were
AusSeSe125
effectual, he had not a doubt of their being established
friends.
To do him justice, he did every thing in his power
to promote their unreserve, by making the Miss Steeles
acquainted with whatever he knew or supposed of his
cousins' situations in the most delicate particulars, --
and Elinor had not seen them more than twice, before
the eldest of them wished her joy on her sister's having
been so lucky as to make a conquest of a very smart
beau since she came to Barton.
"'Twill be a fine thing to have her married so young
to be sure,"
said she,
"and I hear he is quite a beau,
and prodigious handsome. And I hope you may have
as good luck yourself soon, -- but perhaps you may have
a friend in the corner already."
Elinor could not suppose that Sir John would be more
nice in proclaiming his suspicions of her regard for
Edward, than he had been with respect to Marianne;
indeed it was rather his favourite joke of the two, as
being somewhat newer and more conjectural; and since
Edward's visit, they had never dined together, without
his drinking to her best affections with so much significancy
and so many nods and winks, as to excite general
attention. The letter F-- had been likewise invariably
brought forward, and found productive of such countless
jokes, that its character as the wittiest letter in the
alphabet had been long established with Elinor.
The Miss Steeles, as she expected, had now all the
benefit of these jokes, and in the eldest of them they
raised a curiosity to know the name of the gentleman
alluded to, which, though often impertinently expressed,
was perfectly of a piece with her general inquisitiveness
into the concerns of their family. But Sir John did not
sport long with the curiosity which he delighted to
raise, for he had at least as much pleasure in telling
the name, as Miss Steele had in hearing it.
"His name is Ferrars,"
said he, in a very audible
whisper;
"but pray do not tell it, for it's a great secret."
AusSeSe126
"Ferrars!"
repeated Miss Steele;
"Mr. Ferrars is
the happy man, is he? What! your sister-in-law's
brother, Miss Dashwood? a very agreeable young man
to be sure; I know him very well."
"How can you say soAnne?"
cried Lucy, who
generally made an amendment to all her sister's assertions.
"Though we have seen him once or twice at
my uncle's, it is rather too much to pretend to know him
very well."
Elinor heard all this with attention and surprise.
"And who was this uncle? Where did he live? How
came they acquainted?"
She wished very much to
have the subject continued, though she did not chuse
to join in it herself; but nothing more of it was said,
and for the first time in her life, she thought Mrs. Jennings
deficient either in curiosity after petty information,
or in a disposition to communicate it. The manner
in whichMiss Steele had spoken of Edward, increased
her curiosity; for it struck her as being rather ill-natured,
and suggested the suspicion of that lady's
knowing, or fancying herself to know something to
his disadvantage. -- But her curiosity was unavailing,
for no farther notice was taken of Mr. Ferrars's name by
Miss Steele when alluded to, or even openly mentioned
by Sir John.
AusSeSe127
Marianne, who had never much toleration for any thing
like impertinence, vulgarity, inferiority of parts,
or even difference of taste from herself, was at this time
particularly ill-disposed, from the state of her spirits,
to be pleased with the Miss Steeles, or to encourage
their advances; and to the invariable coldness of her
behaviour towards them, which checked every endeavour
at intimacy on their side, Elinor principally attributed
that preference of herself which soon became evident
in the manners of both, but especially of Lucy, who
missed no opportunity of engaging her in conversation,
or of striving to improve their acquaintance by an easy
and frank communication of her sentiments.
Lucy was naturally clever; her remarks were often
just and amusing; and as a companion for half an hour
Elinor frequently found her agreeable; but her powers
had received no aid from education, she was ignorant
and illiterate, and her deficiency of all mental improvement,
her want of information in the most common
particulars, could not be concealed from Miss Dashwood,
in spite of her constant endeavour to appear to advantage.
Elinor saw, and pitied her for, the neglect of
abilities which education might have rendered so respectable;
but she saw, with less tenderness of feeling,
the thorough want of delicacy, of rectitude, and integrity
of mind, which her attentions, her assiduities, her
flatteries at the Park betrayed; and she could have no
lasting satisfaction in the company of a person who
joined insincerity with ignorance; whose want of
instruction prevented their meeting in conversation on
terms of equality, and whose conduct towards others,
made every shew of attention and deference towards
herself perfectly valueless.
AusSeSe128
"You will think my question an odd one, I dare say,"
said Lucy to her one day as they were walking together
from the park to the cottage --
"but, pray, are you
personally acquainted with your sister-in-law's mother,
Mrs. Ferrars?"
Elinor did think the question a very odd one, and her
countenance expressed it, as she answered that she had
never seen Mrs. Ferrars.
"Indeed!"
replied Lucy;
"I wonder at that, for
I thought you must have seen her at Norland sometimes.
Then perhaps you cannot tell me what sort of a woman
she is?"
"No;"
returned Elinor, cautious of giving her real
opinion of Edward's mother, and not very desirous of
satisfying, what seemed impertinent curiosity --
"I know
nothing of her."
"I am sure you think me very strange, for inquiring
about her in such a way;"
said Lucy, eyeing Elinor
attentively as she spoke;
"but perhaps there may be
reasons -- I wish I might venture; but however I hope
you will do me the justice of believing that I do not
mean to be impertinent."
Elinor made her a civil reply, and they walked on
for a few minutes in silence. It was broken by Lucy,
who renewed the subject again by saying with some
hesitation.
"I cannot bear to have you think me impertinently
curious. I am sure I would rather do any thing in the
world than be thought so by a person whose good opinion
is so well worth having as yours. And I am sure I
should not have the smallest fear of trusting you;
indeed I should be very glad of your advice how to
manage in such an uncomfortable situation as I am;
but however there is no occasion to trouble you. I am
sorry you do not happen to know Mrs. Ferrars."
"I am sorry I do not,"
said Elinor, in great astonishment,
"if it could be of any use to you to know my
opinion of her. But really, I never understood that you
AusSeSe129
were at all connected with that family, and therefore
I am a little surprised, I confess, at so serious an inquiry
into her character."
"I dare say you are, and I am sure I do not at all
wonder at it. But if I dared tell you all, you would not
be so much surprised. Mrs. Ferrars is certainly nothing
to me at present, -- but the time may come -- how soon
it will come must depend upon herself -- when we may
be very intimately connected."
She looked down as she said this, amiably bashful,
with only one side glance at her companion to observe
its effect on her.
"Good heavens!"
cried Elinor,
"what do you mean?
Are you acquainted with Mr. Robert Ferrars? Can you
be ----?"
And she did not feel much delighted with
the idea of such a sister-in-law.
"No;"
replied Lucy,
"not to Mr. Robert Ferrars --
I never saw him in my life; but,"
fixing her eyes upon
Elinor,
"to his elder brother."
What felt Elinor at that moment? Astonishment,
that would have been as painful as it was strong, had
not an immediate disbelief of the assertion attended it.
She turned towards Lucy in silent amazement, unable
to divine the reason or object of such a declaration, and
though her complexion varied, she stood firm in
incredulity and felt in no danger of an hysterical fit,
or a swoon.
"You may well be surprised,"
continued Lucy;
"for
to be sure you could have had no idea of it before; for
I dare say he never dropped the smallest hint of it to
you or any of your family; because it was always
meant to be a great secret, and I am sure has been
faithfully kept so by me to this hour. Not a soul of
all my relations know of it but Anne, and I never should
have mentioned it to you, if I had not felt the greatest
dependance in the world upon your secrecy; and I really
thought my behaviour in asking so many questions
about Mrs. Ferrars, must seem so odd, that it ought to
AusSeSe130
be explained. And I do not think Mr. Ferrars can be
displeased, when he knows I have trusted you, because
I know he has the highest opinion in the world of all
your family, and looks upon yourself and the other
Miss Dashwoods, quite as his own sisters." --
She paused.
Elinor for a few moments remained silent. Her
astonishment at what she heard was at first too great
for words; but at length forcing herself to speak, and
to speak cautiously, she said with a calmness of manner,
which tolerably well concealed her surprise and solicitude
-- "May I ask if your engagement is of long standing?"
"We have been engaged these four years."
"Four years!"
"Yes."
Elinor, though greatly shocked, still felt unable to
believe it.
"I did not know,"
said she,
"that you were even
acquainted till the other day."
"Our acquaintance, however, is of many years date.
He was under my uncle's care, you know, a considerable
while."
"Your uncle!"
"Yes; Mr. Pratt. Did you never hear him talk of
Mr. Pratt?"
"I think I have,"
replied Elinor, with an exertion
of spirits, which increased with her increase of emotion.
"He was four years with my uncle, who lives at
Longstaple, near Plymouth. It was there our acquaintance
begun, for my sister and me was often staying
with my uncle, and it was there our engagement was
formed, though not till a year after he had quitted as
a pupil; but he was almost always with us afterwards.
I was very unwilling to enter into it, as you may
imagine, without the knowledge and approbation
of his mother; but I was too young and loved
him too well to be so prudent as I ought to have
been. -- Though you do not know him so well as me,
Miss Dashwood, you must have seen enough of him to
AusSeSe131
be sensible he is very capable of making a woman
sincerely attached to him."
"Certainly,"
answered Elinor, without knowing what
she said; but after a moment's reflection, she added
with revived security of Edward's honour and love,
and her companion's falsehood --
"Engaged to Mr. Edward Ferrars!
-- I confess myself so totally surprised
at what you tell me, that really -- I beg your pardon;
but surely there must be some mistake of person or
name. We cannot mean the same Mr. Ferrars."
"We can mean no other,"
cried Lucy smiling.
"Mr. Edward Ferrars, the eldest son of Mrs. Ferrars of
Park-street, and brother of your sister-in-law, Mrs. John Dashwood,
is the person I mean; you must allow that
I am not likely to be deceived, as to the name of the man
on who all my happiness depends."
"It is strange,"
replied Elinor in a most painful
perplexity,
"that I should never have heard him even
mention your name."
"No; considering our situation, it was not strange.
Our first care has been to keep the matter secret. -- You
knew nothing of me, or my family, and therefore there
could be no occasion for ever mentioning my name to
you, and as he was always particularly afraid of his
sister's suspecting any thing, that was reason enough
for his not mentioning it."
She was silent. -- Elinor's security sunk; but her self-command
did not sink with it.
"Four years you have been engaged,"
said she with
a firm voice.
"Yes; and heaven knows how much longer we may
have to wait. Poor Edward! It puts him quite out
of heart."
Then taking a small miniature from her
pocket, she added,
"To prevent the possibility of
mistake, be so good as to look at this face. It does not
do him justice to be sure, but yet I think you cannot be
deceived as to the person it was drew of. -- I have had
it above these three years."
AusSeSe132
She put it into her hands as she spoke, and when
Elinor saw the painting, whatever other doubts her fear
of a too hasty decision, or her wish of detecting falsehood
might suffer to linger in her mind, she could have none
of its being Edward's face. She returned it almost
instantly, acknowledging the likeness.
"I have never been able,"
continued Lucy,
"to give
him my picture in return, which I am very much
vexed at, for he has been always so anxious to get it!
But I am determined to set for it the very first opportunity."
"You are quite in the right;"
replied Elinor calmly.
They then proceeded a few paces in silence. Lucy
spoke first.
"I am sure,"
said she,
"I have no doubt in the world
of your faithfully keeping this secret, because you must
know of what importance it is to us, not to have it
reach his mother; for she would never approve of it,
I dare say. I shall have no fortune, and I fancy she is
an exceeding proud woman."
"I certainly did not seek your confidence,"
said
Elinor;
"but you do me no more than justice in
imagining that I may be depended on. Your secret
is safe with me; but pardon me if I express some
surprise at so unnecessary a communication. You must
at least have felt that my being acquainted with it
could not add to its safety."
As she said this, she looked earnestly at Lucy, hoping
to discover something in her countenance; perhaps the
falsehood of the greatest part of what she had been
saying; but Lucy's countenance suffered no change.
"I was afraid you would think I was taking a great
liberty with you,"
said she,
"in telling you all this.
I have not known you long to be sure, personally at
least, but I have known you and all your family by
description a great while; and as soon as I saw you,
I felt almost as if you was an old acquaintance. Besides
in the present case, I really thought some explanation
AusSeSe133
was due to you after my making such particular inquiries
about Edward's mother; and I am so unfortunate,
that I have not a creature whose advice I can ask. Anne
is the only person that knows of it, and she has no
judgment at all; indeed she does me a great deal more
harm than good, for I am in constant fear of her betraying
me. She does not know how to hold her tongue,
as you must perceive, and I am sure I was in the greatest
fright in the world t'other day, when Edward's name
was mentioned by Sir John, lest she should out with it
all. You can't think how much I go through in my mind
from it altogether. I only wonder that I am alive after
what I have suffered for Edward's sake these last four
years. Every thing in such suspense and uncertainty;
and seeing him so seldom -- we can hardly meet above
twice a-year. I am sure I wonder my heart is not quite
broke."
Here she took out her handkerchief; but Elinor did
not feel very compassionate.
"Sometimes,"
continued Lucy, after wiping her eyes,
"I think whether it would not be better for us both, to
break off the matter entirely."
As she said this, she
looked directly at her companion.
"But then at other
times I have not resolution enough for it. -- I cannot
bear the thoughts of making him so miserable, as I
know the very mention of such a thing would do. And
on my own account too -- so dear as he is to me -- I
don't think I could be equal to it. What would you
advise me to do in such a case, Miss Dashwood? What
would you do yourself?"
"Pardon me,"
replied Elinor, startled by the question;
"but I can give you no advice under such circumstances.
Your own judgment must direct you."
"To be sure,"
continued Lucy, after a few minutes
silence on both sides,
"his mother must provide for
him sometime or other; but poor Edward is so cast
down about it! Did not you think him dreadful low-spirited
when he was at Barton? He was so miserable
AusSeSe134
when he left us at Longstaple, to go to you, that I was
afraid you would think him quite ill."
"Did he come from your uncle's then, when he
visited us?"
"Oh! yes; he had been staying a fortnight with us.
Did you think he came directly from town?"
"No,"
replied Elinor, most feelingly sensible of every
fresh circumstance in favour of Lucy's veracity;
"I
remember he told us, that he had been staying a fortnight
with some friends near Plymouth."
She remembered
too, her own surprise at the time, at his mentioning
nothing farther of those friends, at his total silence with
respect even to their names.
"Did not you think him sadly out of spirits?"
repeated Lucy.
"We did indeed, particularly so when he first arrived."
"I begged him to exert himself for fear you should
suspect what was the matter; but it made him so
melancholy, not being able to stay more than a fortnight
with us, and seeing me so much affected. -- Poor fellow!
-- I am afraid it is just the same with him now; for he
writes in wretched spirits. I heard from him just before
I left Exeter;"
taking a letter from her pocket and
carelessly shewing the direction to Elinor.
"You know
his hand, I dare say, a charming one it is; but that is
not written so well as usual. -- He was tired, I dare say,
for he had just filled the sheet to me as full as possible."
Elinor saw that it was his hand, and she could doubt
no longer. The picture, she had allowed herself to
believe, might have been accidentally obtained; it
might not have been Edward's gift; but a correspondence
between them by letter, could subsist only under
a positive engagement, could be authorised by nothing
else; for a few moments, she was almost overcome -- her
heart sunk within her, and she could hardly stand; but
exertion was indispensably necessary, and she struggled
so resolutely against the oppression of her feelings, that
her success was speedy, and for the time complete.
AusSeSe135
"Writing to each other,"
said Lucy, returning the
letter into her pocket,
"is the only comfort we have in
such long separations. Yes, I have one other comfort
in his picture; but poor Edward has not even that.
If he had but my picture, he says he should be easy.
I gave him a lock of my hair set in a ring when he was
at Longstaple last, and that was some comfort to him,
he said, but not equal to a picture. Perhaps you might
notice the ring when you saw him?"
"I did;"
said Elinor, with a composure of voice,
under which was concealed an emotion and distress
beyond any thing she had ever felt before. She was
mortified, shocked, confounded.
Fortunately for her, they had now reached the
cottage, and the conversation could be continued no
farther. After sitting with them a few minutes, the
Miss Steeles returned to the Park, and Elinor was then
at liberty to think and be wretched.
AusSeSe139
However small Elinor's general dependance on Lucy's
veracity might be, it was impossible for her on serious
reflection to suspect it in the present case, where no
temptation could be answerable to the folly of inventing
a falsehood of such a description. WhatLucy had
asserted to be true, therefore, Elinor could not, dared
not longer doubt; supported as it was too on every side
by such probabilities and proofs, and contradicted by
nothing but her own wishes.
Their opportunity of
acquaintance in the house of Mr. Pratt was a foundation
for the rest, at once indisputable and alarming; and
Edward's visit near Plymouth, his melancholy state of
mind, his dissatisfaction at his own prospects, his uncertain
behaviour towards herself, the intimate knowledge
of the Miss Steeles as to Norland and their family connections,
which had often surprised her, the picture, the
letter, the ring, formed altogether such a body of
evidence, as overcame every fear of condemning him
unfairly, and established as a fact, which no partiality
could set aside, his ill-treatment of herself. --
Her resentment
of such behaviour, her indignation at having been
its dupe, for a short time made her feel only for herself;
but other ideas, other considerations soon arose.
Had
Edward been intentionally deceiving her? Had he
feigned a regard for her which he did not feel? Was
his engagement to Lucy, an engagement of the heart?
No; whatever it might once have been, she could not
believe it such at present. His affection was all her
own. She could not be deceived in that. Her mother,
sisters, Fanny, all had been conscious of his regard for
her at Norland; it was not an illusion of her own vanity.
AusSeSe140
He certainly loved her. What a softener of the heart
was this persuasion! How much could it not tempt her
to forgive! He had been blameable, highly blameable,
in remaining at Norland after he felt her influence
over him to be more than it ought to be. In that, he
could not be defended; but if he had injured her, how
much more had he injured himself; if her case were
pitiable, his was hopeless. His imprudence had made
her miserable for a while; but it seemed to have deprived
himself of all chance of ever being otherwise. She might
in time regain tranquillity; but he, what had he to look
forward to? Could he ever be tolerably happy with
Lucy Steele; could he, were his affection for herself out
of the question, with his integrity, his delicacy, and
well-informed mind, be satisfied with a wife like her --
illiterate, artful, and selfish?
The youthful infatuation of nineteen would naturally
blind him to every thing but her beauty and good nature;
but the four succeeding years -- years, which if
rationally spent, give such improvement to the understanding,
must have opened his eyes to her defects of
education, while the same period of time, spent on her
side in inferior society and more frivolous pursuits, had
perhaps robbed her of that simplicity, which might once
have given an interesting character to her beauty.
If in the supposition of his seeking to marry herself,
his difficulties from his mother had seemed great, how
much greater were they now likely to be, when the
object of his engagement was undoubtedly inferior in
connections, and probably inferior in fortune to herself.
These difficulties, indeed, with an heart so alienated
from Lucy, might not press very hard upon his patience;
but melancholy was the state of the person, by whom
the expectation of family opposition and unkindness,
could be felt as a relief!
As these considerations occurred to her in painful
succession, she wept for him, more than for herself.
Supported by the conviction of having done nothing to
AusSeSe141
merit her present unhappiness, and consoled by the
belief that Edward had done nothing to forfeit her
esteem, she thought she could even now, under the first
smart of the heavy blow, command herself enough to
guard every suspicion of the truth from her mother and
sisters. And so well was she able to answer her own
expectations, that when she joined them at dinner only
two hours after she had first suffered the extinction of
all her dearest hopes, no one would have supposed from
the appearance of the sisters, that Elinor was mourning
in secret over obstacles which must divide her for ever from
the object of her love, and that Marianne was internally
dwelling on the perfections of a man, of whose whole heart
she felt thoroughly possessed, and whom she expected
to see in every carriage which drove near their house.
The necessity of concealing from her mother and
Marianne, what had been entrusted in confidence to
herself, though it obliged her to unceasing exertion, was
no aggravation of Elinor's distress. On the contrary it
was a relief to her, to be spared the communication of
what would give such affliction to them, and to be saved
likewise from hearing that condemnation of Edward,
which would probably flow from the excess of their
partial affection for herself, and which was more than
she felt equal to support.
From their counsel, or their conversation she knew
she could receive no assistance, their tenderness and
sorrow must add to her distress, while her self-command
would neither receive encouragement from their example
nor from their praise. She was stronger alone, and her
own good sense so well supported her, that her firmness
was as unshaken, her appearance of cheerfulness as
invariable, as with regrets so poignant and so fresh, it
was possible for them to be.
Much as she had suffered from her first conversation
with Lucy on the subject, she soon felt an earnest wish
of renewing it; and this for more reasons than one.
She wanted to hear many particulars of their engagement
AusSeSe142
repeated again, she wanted more clearly to understand
whatLucy really felt for Edward, whether there were
any sincerity in her declaration of tender regard for
him, and she particularly wanted to convince Lucy, by
her readiness to enter on the matter again, and her calmness
in conversing on it, that she was no otherwise interested
in it than as a friend, which she very much feared her
involuntary agitation, in their morning discourse, must
have left at least doubtful.
That Lucy was disposed to
be jealous of her, appeared very probable; it was plain
that Edward had always spoken highly in her praise,
not merely from Lucy's assertion, but from her venturing
to trust her on so short a personal acquaintance, with
a secret, so confessedly and evidently important. And
even Sir John's joking intelligence must have had some
weight.
But indeed, while Elinor remained so well
assured within herself of being really beloved by Edward,
it required no other consideration of probabilities to
make it natural that Lucy should be jealous; and that
she was so, her very confidence was a proof. What
other reason for the disclosure of the affair could there
be, but that Elinor might be informed by it of Lucy's
superior claims on Edward, and be taught to avoid him
in future? She had little difficulty in understanding
thus much of her rival's intentions, and while she was
firmly resolved to act by her as every principle of honour
and honesty directed, to combat her own affection for
Edward and to see him as little as possible; she could
not deny herself the comfort of endeavouring to convince
Lucy that her heart was unwounded. And as she could
now have nothing more painful to hear on the subject
than had already been told, she did not mistrust her
own ability of going through a repetition of particulars
with composure.
But it was not immediately that an opportunity of
doing so could be commanded, though Lucy was as well
disposed as herself to take advantage of any that
occurred; for the weather was not often fine enough
AusSeSe143
to allow of their joining in a walk, where they might
most easily separate themselves from the others; and
though they met at least every other evening either at
the park or cottage, and chiefly at the former, they
could not be supposed to meet for the sake of conversation.
Such a thought would never enter either Sir John
or Lady Middleton's head, and therefore very little
leisure was ever given for general chat, and none at all for
particular discourse. They met for the sake of eating,
drinking, and laughing together, playing at cards,or consequences,
or any other game that was sufficiently noisy.
One or two meetings of this kind had taken place,
without affording Elinor any chance of engaging Lucy
in private, when Sir John called at the cottage one
morning, to beg in the name of charity, that they would
all dine with Lady Middleton that day, as he was obliged
to attend the club at Exeter, and she would otherwise
be quite alone, except her mother and the two Miss Steeles.
Elinor, who foresaw a fairer opening for the
point she had in view, in such a party as this was likely
to be, more at liberty among themselves under the
tranquil and well-bred direction of Lady Middleton than
when her husband united them together in one noisy
purpose, immediately accepted the invitation; Margaret,
with her mother's permission, was equally compliant,
and Marianne, though always unwilling to join
any of their parties, was persuaded by her mother, who
could not bear to have her seclude herself from any
chance of amusement, to go likewise.
The young ladies went, and Lady Middleton was
happily preserved from the frightful solitude which had
threatened her. The insipidity of the meeting was
exactly such as Elinor had expected; it produced not
one novelty of thought or expression, and nothing could
be less interesting than the whole of their discourse both
in the dining parlour and drawing room: to the latter,
the children accompanied them, and while they remained
there, she was too well convinced of the impossibility
AusSeSe144
of engaging Lucy's attention to attempt it. They
quitted it only with the removal of the tea-things. The
card-table was then placed, and Elinor began to wonder
at herself for having ever entertained a hope of finding
time for conversation at the park. They all rose up in
preparation for a round game.
"I am glad,"
said Lady Middleton to Lucy,
"you
are not going to finish poor little Annamaria's basket
this evening; for I am sure it must hurt your eyes to
work fillagree by candlelight. And we will make the
dear little love some amends for her disappointment
to-morrow, and then I hope she will not much mind it."
This hint was enough, Lucy recollected herself instantly
and replied,
"Indeed you are very much mistaken,
Lady Middleton; I am only waiting to know
whether you can make your party without me, or
I should have been at my fillagree already. I would
not disappoint the little angel for all the world, and if
you want me at the card-table now, I am resolved to
finish the basket after supper."
"You are very good, I hope it won't hurt your eyes --
will you ring the bell for some working candles? My
poor little girl would be sadly disappointed, I know, if
the basket was not finished to-morrow, for though I told
her it certainly would not, I am sure she depends upon
having it done."
Lucy directly drew her work table near her and
reseated herself with an alacrity and cheerfulness which
seemed to infer that she could taste no greater delight
than in making a fillagree basket for a spoilt child.
Lady Middleton proposed a rubber of Casino to the
others. No one made any objection but Marianne, who,
with her usual inattention to the forms of general
civility, exclaimed,
"Your ladyship will have the goodness
to excuse me -- you know I detest cards. I shall go
to the piano-forte=; I have not touched it since it was
tuned."
And without farther ceremony, she turned
away and walked to the instrument.
AusSeSe145
Lady Middleton looked as if she thanked heaven that
she had never made so rude a speech.
"Marianne can never keep long from that instrument
you know, ma'am,"
said Elinor, endeavouring to smooth
away the offence;
"and I do not much wonder at it;
for it is the very best toned piano-forte=I ever heard."
The remaining five were now to draw their cards.
"Perhaps,"
continued Elinor,
"if I should happen to
cut out, I may be of some use to Miss Lucy Steele, in
rolling her papers for her; and there is so much still
to be done to the basket, that it must be impossible
I think for her labour singly, to finish it this evening.
I should like the work exceedingly, if she would allow
me a share in it."
"Indeed I shall be very much obliged to you for your
help,"
cried Lucy,
"for I find there is more to be done to
it than I thought there was; and it would be a shocking
thing to disappoint dearAnnamaria after all."
"Oh! that would be terrible indeed,"
said Miss Steele --
"Dear little soul, how I do love her!"
"You are very kind,"
said Lady Middleton to Elinor:
"and as you really like the work, perhaps you will be
as well pleased not to cut in till another rubber, or will
you take your chance now?"
Elinor joyfully profited by the first of these proposals,
and thus by a little of that address, whichMarianne
could never condescend to practise, gained her own end,
and pleased Lady Middleton at the same time. Lucy
made room for her with ready attention, and the two
fair rivals were thus seated side by side at the same
table, and with the utmost harmony engaged in forwarding
the same work. The piano-forte=, at which
Marianne, wrapt up in her own music and her own
thoughts, had by this time forgotten that any body was
in the room besides herself, was luckily so near them
that Miss Dashwood now judged, she might safely, under
the shelter of its noise, introduce the interesting subject,
without any risk of being heard at the card-table.
AusSeSe146
In a firm, though cautious tone, Elinor thus began.
"I should be undeserving of the confidence you have
honoured me with, if I felt no desire for its continuance,
or no farther curiosity on its subject. I will not apologize
therefore for bringing it forward again."
"Thank you,"
cried Lucy warmly,
"for breaking the
ice; you have set my heart at ease by it; for I was
somehow or other afraid I had offended you by what
I told you that Monday."
"Offended me! How could you suppose so? Believe
me,"
and Elinor spoke it with the truest sincerity,
"nothing could be farther from my intention, than to
give you such an idea. Could you have a motive for
the trust, that was not honourable and flattering to
me?"
"And yet I do assure you,"
replied Lucy, her little
sharp eyes full of meaning,
"there seemed to me to be
a coldness and displeasure in your manner, that made
me quite uncomfortable. I felt sure that you was angry
with me; and have been quarrelling with myself ever
since, for having took such a liberty as to trouble you
with my affairs. But I am very glad to find it was only
my own fancy, and that you do not really blame me.
If you knew what a consolation it was to me to relieve
my heart by speaking to you of what I am always
thinking of every moment of my life, your compassion
would make you overlook every thing else I am sure."
"Indeed I can easily believe that it was a very great
relief to you, to acknowledge your situation to me, and
be assured that you shall never have reason to repent
it. Your case is a very unfortunate one; you seem to
me to be surrounded with difficulties, and you will have
need of all your mutual affection to support you under
AusSeSe147
them. Mr. Ferrars, I believe, is entirely dependent on
his mother."
"He has only two thousand pounds of his own; it
would be madness to marry upon that, though for my
own part, I could give up every prospect of more without
a sigh. I have been always used to a very small income,
and could struggle with any poverty for him; but I love
him too well to be the selfish means of robbing him,
perhaps, of all that his mother might give him if he
married to please her. We must wait, it may be for
many years. With almost every other man in the world,
it would be an alarming prospect; but Edward's
affection and constancy nothing can deprive me of
I know."
"That conviction must be every thing to you; and
he is undoubtedly supported by the same trust in your's.
If the strength of your reciprocal attachment had failed,
as between many people and under many circumstances
it naturally would during a four years' engagement, your
situation would have been pitiable indeed."
Lucy here looked up; but Elinor was careful in
guarding her countenance from every expression that
could give her words a suspicious tendency.
"Edward's love for me,"
said Lucy,
"has been pretty
well put to the test, by our long, very long absence
since we were first engaged, and it has stood the trial
so well, that I should be unpardonable to doubt it now.
I can safely say that he has never gave me one moment's
alarm on that account from the first."
Elinor hardly knew whether to smile or sigh at this
assertion.
Lucy went on.
"I am rather of a jealous temper too
by nature, and from our different situations in life, from
his being so much more in the world than me, and our
continual separation, I was enough inclined for suspicion,
to have found out the truth in an instant, if there had
been the slightest alteration in his behaviour to me when
we met, or any lowness of spirits that I could not account
AusSeSe148
for, or if he had talked more of one lady than another,
or seemed in any respect less happy at Longstaple than
he used to be. I do not mean to say that I am particularly
observant or quick-sighted in general, but in
such a case I am sure I could not be deceived."
"All this,"
thought Elinor,
"is very pretty; but it
can impose upon neither of us."
"But what,"
said she after a short silence,
"are your
views? or have you none but that of waiting for
Mrs. Ferrars's death, which is a melancholy and shocking
extremity? -- Is her son determined to submit to this,
and to all the tediousness of the many years of suspense
in which it may involve you, rather than run the risk
of her displeasure for a while by owning the truth?"
"If we could be certain that it would be only for
a while! But Mrs. Ferrars is a very headstrong proud
woman, and in her first fit of anger upon hearing it,
would very likely secure every thing to Robert, and the
idea of that, for Edward's sake, frightens away all my
inclination for hasty measures."
"And for your own sake too, or you are carrying
your disinterestedness beyond reason."
Lucy looked at Elinor again, and was silent.
"Do you know Mr. Robert Ferrars?"
asked Elinor.
"Not at all -- I never saw him; but I fancy he is
very unlike his brother -- silly and a great coxcomb."
"A great coxcomb!"
repeated Miss Steele, whose ear
had caught those words by a sudden pause in Marianne's
music. --
"Oh! they are talking of their favourite beaux,
I dare say."
"No, sister,"
cried Lucy,
"you are mistaken there,
our favourite beaux are not great coxcombs."
"I can answer for it that Miss Dashwood's is not,"
said Mrs. Jennings, laughing heartily;
"for he is one
of the modestest, prettiest behaved young men I ever
saw; but as for Lucy, she is such a sly little creature,
there is no finding out who she likes."
"Oh!"
cried Miss Steele, looking significantly round
AusSeSe149
at them,
"I dare say Lucy's beau is quite as modest
and pretty behaved as Miss Dashwood's."
Elinor blushed in spite of herself. Lucy bit her lip,
and looked angrily at her sister. A mutual silence took
place for some time. Lucy first put an end to it by
saying in a lower tone, though Marianne was then giving
them the powerful protection of a very magnificent
concerto --
"I will honestly tell you of one scheme which has
lately come into my head, for bringing matters to bear;
indeed I am bound to let you into the secret, for you
are a party concerned. I dare say you have seen enough
of Edward to know that he would prefer the church to
every other profession; now my plan is that he should
take orders as soon as he can, and then through your
interest, which I am sure you would be kind enough to
use out of friendship for him, and I hope out of some
regard to me, your brother might be persuaded to give
him Norland living; which I understand is a very good
one, and the present incumbent not likely to live a great
while. That would be enough for us to marry upon,
and we might trust to time and chance for the rest."
"I should be always happy,"
replied Elinor,
"to shew
any mark of my esteem and friendship for Mr. Ferrars;
but do not you perceive that my interest on such an
occasion would be perfectly unnecessary? He is brother
to Mrs. John Dashwood -- that must be recommendation
enough to her husband."
"But Mrs. John Dashwood would not much approve
of Edward's going into orders."
"Then I rather suspect that my interest would do
very little."
They were again silent for many minutes. At length
Lucy exclaimed with a deep sigh,
"I believe it would be the wisest way to put an end
to the business at once by dissolving the engagement.
We seem so beset with difficulties on every side, that
though it would make us miserable for a time, we should
AusSeSe150
be happier perhaps in the end. But you will not give
me your advice, Miss Dashwood?"
"No;"
answered Elinor, with a smile, which concealed
very agitated feelings,
"on such a subject I certainly
will not. You know very well that my opinion
would have no weight with you, unless it were on the
side of your wishes."
"Indeed you wrong me,"
replied Lucy with great
solemnity;
"I know nobody of whose judgment I think
so highly as I do of yours; and I do really believe, that
if you was to say to me, ""I advise you by all means to
put an end to your engagement with Edward Ferrars,
it will be more for the happiness of both of you,"" I should
resolve upon doing it immediately."
Elinor blushed for the insincerity of Edward's future
wife, and replied,
"this compliment would effectually
frighten me from giving any opinion on the subject had
I formed one. It raises my influence much too high;
the power of dividing two people so tenderly attached
is too much for an indifferent person."
"'Tis because you are an indifferent person,"
said
Lucy, with some pique, and laying a particular stress
on those words,
"that your judgment might justly have
such weight with me. If you could be supposed to be
biassed in any respect by your own feelings, your opinion
would not be worth having."
Elinor thought it wisest to make no answer to this,
lest they might provoke each other to an unsuitable
increase of ease and unreserve; and was even partly
determined never to mention the subject again. Another
pause therefore of many minutes' duration, succeeded
this speech, and Lucy was still the first to end it.
"Shall you be in town this winter, Miss Dashwood?"
said she with all her accustomary complacency.
"Certainly not."
"I am sorry for that,"
returned the other, while her
eyes brightened at the information,
"it would have gave
me such pleasure to meet you there! But I dare say
AusSeSe151
you will go for all that. To be sure, your brother and
sister will ask you to come to them."
"It will not be in my power to accept their invitation
if they do."
"How unlucky that is! I had quite depended upon
meeting you there. Anne and me are to go the latter
end of January to some relations who have been wanting
us to visit them these several years! But I only go for
the sake of seeing Edward. He will be there in February,
otherwise London would have no charms for me; I have
not spirits for it."
Elinor was soon called to the card-table by the conclusion
of the first rubber, and the confidential discourse
of the two ladies was therefore at an end, to which both
of them submitted without any reluctance, for nothing
had been said on either side, to make them dislike each
other less than they had done before; and Elinor sat
down to the card table with the melancholy persuasion
that Edward was not only without affection for the
person who was to be his wife; but that he had not
even the chance of being tolerably happy in marriage,
which sincere affection on her side would have given,
for self-interest alone could induce a woman to keep
a man to an engagement, of which she seemed so
thoroughly aware that he was weary.
From this time the subject was never revived by
Elinor, and when entered on by Lucy, who seldom
missed an opportunity of introducing it, and was particularly
careful to inform her confidante, of her happiness
whenever she received a letter from Edward, it was
treated by the former with calmness and caution, and
dismissed as soon as civility would allow; for she felt
such conversations to be an indulgence whichLucy did
not deserve, and which were dangerous to herself.
The visit of the Miss Steeles at Barton Park was
lengthened far beyond what the first invitation implied.
Their favour increased, they could not be spared; Sir John
would not hear of their going; and in spite of their
AusSeSe152
numerous and long arranged engagements in Exeter, in
spite of the absolute necessity of their returning to fulfil
them immediately, which was in full force at the end of
every week, they were prevailed on to stay nearly two
months at the park, and to assist in the due celebration
of that festival which requires a more than ordinary
share of private balls and large dinners to proclaim its
importance.
AusSeSe153
Though Mrs. Jennings was in the habit of spending
a large portion of the year at the houses of her children
and friends, she was not without a settled habitation of
her own. Since the death of her husband, who had
traded with success in a less elegant part of town,
she had resided every winter in a house in one of the
streets near Portman-square. Towards this home, she
began on the approach of January to turn her thoughts,
and thither she one day abruptly, and very unexpectedly
by them, asked the elder Miss Dashwoods to accompany
her. Elinor, without observing the varying complexion
of her sister, and the animated look which spoke no
indifference to the plan, immediately gave a grateful
but absolute denial for both, in which she believed herself
to be speaking their united inclinations. The reason
alleged was their determined resolution of not leaving
their mother at that time of year. Mrs. Jennings
received the refusal with some surprize, and repeated
her invitation immediately.
"Oh! Lord, I am sure your mother can spare you
very well, and I do beg you will favour me with your
company, for I've quite set my heart upon it. Don't
fancy that you will be any inconvenience to me, for
I shan't put myself at all out of my way for you. It
will only be sending Betty by the coach, and I hope
I can afford that. We three shall be able to go very
well in my chaise; and when we are in town, if you do
not like to go wherever I do, well and good, you may
always go with one of my daughters. I am sure your
mother will not object to it; for I have had such good
luck in getting my own children off my hands, that she
will think me a very fit person to have the charge of
you; and if I don't get one of you at least well married
AusSeSe154
before I have done with you, it shall not be my fault.
I shall speak a good word for you to all the young men,
you may depend upon it."
"I have a notion,"
said Sir John,
"that Miss Marianne
would not object to such a scheme, if her elder sister
would come into it. It is very hard indeed that she
should not have a little pleasure, because Miss Dashwood
does not wish it. So I would advise you two, to set off
for town, when you are tired of Barton, without saying
a word to Miss Dashwood about it."
"Nay,"
cried Mrs. Jennings,
"I am sure I shall be
monstrous glad of Miss Marianne's company, whether
Miss Dashwood will go or not, only the more the merrier
say I, and I thought it would be more comfortable for
them to be together; because if they got tired of me,
they might talk to one another, and laugh at my odd
ways behind my back. But one or the other, if not
both of them, I must have. Lord bless me! how do
you think I can live poking by myself, I who have been
always used till this winter to have Charlotte with me.
Come, Miss Marianne, let us strike hands upon the
bargain, and if Miss Dashwood will change her mind
by and bye, why so much the better."
"I thank you, ma'am, sincerely thank you,"
said
Marianne, with warmth;
"your invitation has insured
my gratitude for ever, and it would give me such happiness,
yes almost the greatest happiness I am capable of,
to be able to accept it. But my mother, my dearest,
kindest mother, -- I feel the justice of whatElinor has
urged, and if she were to be made less happy, less comfortable
by our absence -- Oh! no, nothing should tempt
me to leave her. It should not, must not be a struggle."
Mrs. Jennings repeated her assurance that Mrs. Dashwood
could spare them perfectly well; and Elinor, who
now understood her sister, and saw to what indifference
to almost every thing else, she was carried by her eagerness
to be with Willoughby again, made no farther direct
opposition to the plan, and merely referred it to her
AusSeSe155
mother's decision, from whom however she scarcely
expected to receive any support in her endeavour to
prevent a visit, which she could not approve of for
Marianne, and which on her own account she had
particular reasons to avoid.
Whatever Marianne was
desirous of, her mother would be eager to promote --
she could not expect to influence the latter to cautiousness
of conduct in an affair, respecting which she had
never been able to inspire her with distrust; and she
dared not explain the motive of her own disinclination
for going to London.
That Marianne, fastidious as she
was, thoroughly acquainted with Mrs. Jennings' manners,
and invariably disgusted by them, should overlook every
inconvenience of that kind, should disregard whatever
must be most wounding to her irritable feelings, in her
pursuit of one object, was such a proof, so strong, so
full, of the importance of that object to her, as Elinor,
in spite of all that had passed, was not prepared to
witness.
On being informed of the invitation, Mrs. Dashwood,
persuaded that such an excursion would be productive
of much amusement to both her daughters, and perceiving
through all her affectionate attention to herself,
how much the heart of Marianne was in it, would not
hear of their declining the offer upon her account;
insisted on their both accepting it directly, and then
began to foresee with her usual cheerfulness, a variety
of advantages that would accrue to them all, from this
separation.
"I am delighted with the plan,"
she cried,
"it is
exactly what I could wish. Margaret and I shall be as
much benefited by it as yourselves. When you and the
Middletons are gone, we shall go on so quietly and
happily together with our books and our music! You
will find Margaret so improved when you come back
again! And I have a little plan of alteration for your
bedrooms too, which may now be performed without
inconvenience to any one. It is very right that you
AusSeSe156
should go to town; I would have every young woman
of your condition in life, acquainted with the manners
and amusements of London. You will be under the
care of a motherly good sort of woman, of whose
kindness to you I can have no doubt. And in all
probability you will see your brother, and whatever
may be his faults, or the faults of his wife, when I consider
whose son he is, I cannot bear to have you so
wholly estranged from each other."
"Though with your usual anxiety for our happiness,"
said Elinor,
"you have been obviating every impediment
to the present scheme which occurred to you, there is
still one objection which, in my opinion, cannot be so
easily removed."
Marianne's countenance sunk.
"And what,"
said Mrs. Dashwood,
"is my dear
prudent Elinor going to suggest? What formidable
obstacle is she now to bring forward? Do not let me
hear a word about the expense of it."
"My objection is this; though I think very well of
Mrs. Jennings' heart, she is not a woman whose society
can afford us pleasure, or whose protection will give us
consequence."
"That is very true,"
replied her mother;
"but of
her society, separately from that of other people, you
will scarcely have any thing at all, and you will almost
always appear in public with Lady Middleton."
"If Elinor is frightened away by her dislike of
Mrs. Jennings,"
said Marianne,
"at least it need not
prevent my accepting her invitation. I have no such
scruples, and I am sure, I could put up with every
unpleasantness of that kind with very little effort."
Elinor could not help smiling at this display of
indifference towards the manners of a person, to whom
she had often had difficulty in persuading Marianne to
behave with tolerable politeness: and resolved within
herself, that if her sister persisted in going, she would
go likewise, as she did not think it proper that Marianne
AusSeSe157
should be left to the sole guidance of her own judgment,
or that Mrs. Jennings should be abandoned to the mercy
of Marianne for all the comfort of her domestic hours.
To this determination she was the more easily reconciled,
by recollecting, that Edward Ferrars, by Lucy's account,
was not to be in town before February; and that their
visit, without any unreasonable abridgment, might be
previously finished.
"I will have you both go,"
said Mrs. Dashwood;
"these objections are nonsensical. You will have much
pleasure in being in London, and especially in being
together; and if Elinor would ever condescend to anticipate
enjoyment, she would foresee it there from
a variety of sources; she would perhaps expect some
from improving her acquaintance with her sister-in-law's
family."
Elinor had often wished for an opportunity of attempting
to weaken her mother's dependence on the attachment
of Edward and herself, that the shock might be
the less when the whole truth were revealed, and now
on this attack, though almost hopeless of success, she
forced herself to begin her design by saying, as calmly
as she could,
"I like Edward Ferrars very much, and
shall always be glad to see him; but as to the rest of
the family, it is a matter of perfect indifference to me,
whether I am ever known to them or not."
Mrs. Dashwood smiled and said nothing. Marianne
lifted up her eyes in astonishment, and Elinor conjectured
that she might as well have held her tongue.
After very little farther discourse, it was finally settled
that the invitation should be fully accepted. Mrs. Jennings
received the information with a great deal of joy,
and many assurances of kindness and care; nor was it
a matter of pleasure merely to her. Sir John was
delighted; for to a man, whose prevailing anxiety was
the dread of being alone, the acquisition of two, to the
number of inhabitants in London, was something. Even
Lady Middleton took the trouble of being delighted,
AusSeSe158
which was putting herself rather out of her way; and
as for the Miss Steeles, especially Lucy, they had never
been so happy in their lives as this intelligence made
them.
Elinor submitted to the arrangement which counteracted
her wishes, with less reluctance than she had
expected to feel. With regard to herself, it was now
a matter of unconcern whether she went to town or not,
and when she saw her mother so thoroughly pleased
with the plan, and her sister exhilarated by it in look,
voice, and manner, restored to all her usual animation,
and elevated to more than her usual gaiety, she could
not be dissatisfied with the cause, and would hardly
allow herself to distrust the consequence.
Marianne's joy was almost a degree beyond happiness,
so great was the perturbation of her spirits and her
impatience to be gone. Her unwillingness to quit her
mother was her only restorative to calmness; and at
the moment of parting, her grief on that score was
excessive. Her mother's affliction was hardly less, and
Elinor was the only one of the three, who seemed to
consider the separation as any thing short of eternal.
Their departure took place in the first week in January.
The Middletons were to follow in about a week. The
Miss Steeles kept their station at the park, and were to
quit it only with the rest of the family.
AusSeSe159
Elinor could not find herself in the carriage with
Mrs. Jennings, and beginning a journey to London under
her protection, and as her guest, without wondering at
her own situation, so short had their acquaintance with
that lady been, so wholly unsuited were they in age and
disposition, and so many had been her objections against
such a measure only a few days before! But these
objections had all, with that happy ardour of youth
whichMarianne and her mother equally shared, been
overcome or overlooked; and Elinor, in spite of every
occasional doubt of Willoughby's constancy, could not
witness the rapture of delightful expectation which filled
the whole soul and beamed in the eyes of Marianne,
without feeling how blank was her own prospect, how
cheerless her own state of mind in the comparison, and
how gladly she would engage in the solicitude of Marianne's
situation to have the same animating object in
view, the same possibility of hope.
A short, a very
short time however must now decide whatWilloughby's
intentions were; in all probability he was already in
town. Marianne's eagerness to be gone declared her
dependance on finding him there;
and Elinor was
resolved not only upon gaining every new light as to his
character which her own observation or the intelligence
of others could give her, but likewise upon watching his
behaviour to her sister with such zealous attention, as
to ascertain what he was and what he meant, before
many meetings had taken place. Should the result of
her observations be unfavourable, she was determined
at all events to open the eyes of her sister; should it
be otherwise, her exertions would be of a different
nature -- she must then learn to avoid every selfish comparison,
and banish every regret which might lessen her
satisfaction in the happiness of Marianne.
AusSeSe160
They were three days on their journey, and Marianne's
behaviour as they travelled was a happy specimen of
what her future complaisance and companionableness
to Mrs. Jennings might be expected to be. She sat in
silence almost all the way, wrapt in her own meditations,
and scarcely ever voluntarily speaking, except when any
object of picturesque beauty within their view drew from
her an exclamation of delight exclusively addressed to
her sister. To atone for this conduct therefore, Elinor
took immediate possession of the post of civility which
she had assigned herself, behaved with the greatest
attention to Mrs. Jennings, talked with her, laughed
with her, and listened to her whenever she could; and
Mrs. Jennings on her side treated them both with all
possible kindness, was solicitous on every occasion for
their ease and enjoyment, and only disturbed that she
could not make them choose their own dinners at the
inn, nor extort a confession of their preferring salmon
to cod, or boiled fowls to veal cutlets. They reached
town by three o'clock the third day, glad to be released,
after such a journey, from the confinement of a carriage,
and ready to enjoy all the luxury of a good fire.
The house was handsome and handsomely fitted up,
and the young ladies were immediately put in possession
of a very comfortable apartment. It had formerly been
Charlotte's, and over the mantlepiece still hung a landscape
in coloured silks of her performance, in proof of
her having spent seven years at a great school in town
to some effect.
As dinner was not to be ready in less than two hours
from their arrival, Elinor determined to employ the
interval in writing to her mother, and sat down for that
purpose. In a few moments Marianne did the same.
"I am writing home, Marianne,"
said Elinor;
"had
not you better defer your letter for a day or two?"
"I am not going to write to my mother,"
replied
Marianne hastily, and as if wishing to avoid any farther
inquiry. Elinor said no more; it immediately struck
AusSeSe161
her that she must then be writing to Willoughby, and
the conclusion which as instantly followed was, that
however mysteriously they might wish to conduct the
affair, they must be engaged. This conviction, though
not entirely satisfactory, gave her pleasure, and she
continued her letter with greater alacrity. Marianne's
was finished in a very few minutes; in length it could
be no more than a note: it was then folded up, sealed
and directed with eager rapidity. Elinor thought she
could distinguish a large W. in the direction, and no
sooner was it complete than Marianne, ringing the bell,
requested the footman who answered it, to get that
letter conveyed for her to the two-penny post. This
decided the matter at once.
Her spirits still continued very high, but there was
a flutter in them which prevented their giving much
pleasure to her sister, and this agitation increased as
the evening drew on. She could scarcely eat any dinner,
and when they afterwards returned to the drawing room,
seemed anxiously listening to the sound of every carriage.
It was a great satisfaction to Elinor that Mrs. Jennings,
by being much engaged in her own room, could see little
of what was passing. The tea things were brought in,
and already had Marianne been disappointed more than
once by a rap at a neighbouring door, when a loud one
was suddenly heard which could not be mistaken for one
at any other house. Elinor felt secure of its announcing
Willoughby's approach, and Marianne starting up moved
towards the door. Every thing was silent; this could
not be borne many seconds, she opened the door,
advanced a few steps towards the stairs, and after
listening half a minute, returned into the room in all
the agitation which a conviction of having heard him
would naturally produce; in the extasy of her feelings
at that instant she could not help exclaiming,
"Oh!
Elinor, it is Willoughby, indeed it is!"
and seemed
almost ready to throw herself into his arms, when
Colonel Brandon appeared.
AusSeSe162
It was too great a shock to be borne with calmness,
and she immediately left the room. Elinor was disappointed
too; but at the same time her regard for
Colonel Brandon ensured his welcome with her, and she
felt particularly hurt that a man so partial to her sister
should perceive that she experienced nothing but grief
and disappointment in seeing him. She instantly saw
that it was not unnoticed by him, that he even observed
Marianne as she quitted the room, with such astonishment
and concern, as hardly left him the recollection of
what civility demanded towards herself.
"Is your sister ill?"
said he.
Elinor answered in some distress that she was, and
then talked of head-aches, low spirits, and over fatigues;
and of every thing to which she could decently attribute
her sister's behaviour.
He heard her with the most earnest attention, but
seeming to recollect himself, said no more on the subject,
and began directly to speak of his pleasure at seeing
them in London, making the usual inquiries about their
journey and the friends they had left behind.
In this calm kind of way, with very little interest on
either side, they continued to talk, both of them out of
spirits, and the thoughts of both engaged elsewhere.
Elinor wished very much to ask whether Willoughby
were then in town, but she was afraid of giving him
pain by any inquiry after his rival; and at length by
way of saying something, she asked if he had been in
London ever since she had seen him last.
"Yes,"
he
replied, with some embarrassment,
"almost ever since;
I have been once or twice at Delaford for a few days,
but it has never been in my power to return to Barton."
This, and the manner in which it was said, immediately
brought back to her remembrance, all the circumstances
of his quitting that place, with the uneasiness and
suspicions they had caused to Mrs. Jennings, and she
was fearful that her question had implied much more
curiosity on the subject than she had ever felt.
AusSeSe163
Mrs. Jennings soon came in.
"Oh! Colonel,"
said
she, with her usual noisy cheerfulness,
"I am monstrous
glad to see you -- sorry I could not come before -- beg
your pardon, but I have been forced to look about me
a little, and settle my matters; for it is a long while
since I have been at home, and you know one has always
a world of little odd things to do after one has been
away for any time; and then I have had Cartwright
to settle with -- Lord, I have been as busy as a bee ever
since dinner! But pray, Colonel, how came you to
conjure out that I should be in town to-day?"
"I had the pleasure of hearing it at Mr. Palmer's,
where I have been dining."
"Oh! you did; well, and how do they all do at
their house? How does Charlotte do? I warrant you
she is a fine size by this time."
"Mrs. Palmer appeared quite well, and I am commissioned
to tell you, that you will certainly see her
to-morrow."
"Aye, to be sure, I thought as much. Well, Colonel,
I have brought two young ladies with me, you see --
that is, you see but one of them now, but there is another
somewhere. Your friend Miss Marianne, too -- which you
will not be sorry to hear. I do not know what you and
Mr. Willoughby will do between you about her. Aye,
it is a fine thing to be young and handsome. Well!
I was young once, but I never was very handsome --
worse luck for me. However I got a very good husband,
and I don't know what the greatest beauty can do more.
Ah! poor man! he has been dead these eight years
and better. But Colonel, where have you been to since
we parted? And how does your business go on? Come,
come, let's have no secrets among friends."
He replied with his accustomary mildness to all her
inquiries, but without satisfying her in any. Elinor now
began to make the tea, and Marianne was obliged to
appear again.
After her entrance, Colonel Brandon became more
AusSeSe164
thoughtful and silent than he had been before, and
Mrs. Jennings could not prevail on him to stay long.
No other visitor appeared that evening, and the ladies
were unanimous in agreeing to go early to bed.
Marianne rose the next morning with recovered spirits
and happy looks. The disappointment of the evening
before seemed forgotten in the expectation of what was
to happen that day. They had not long finished their
breakfast before Mrs. Palmer's barouche stopt at the
door, and in few minutes she came laughing into
the room; so delighted to see them all, that it was
hard to say whether she received most pleasure from
meeting her mother or the Miss Dashwoods again. So
surprised at their coming to town, though it was what
she had rather expected all along; so angry at their
accepting her mother's invitation after having declined
her own, though at the same time she would never have
forgiven them if they had not come!
"Mr. Palmer will be so happy to see you,"
said she;
"what do you think he said when he heard of your
coming with mama? I forget what it was now, but it
was something so droll!"
After an hour or two spent in what her mother
called comfortable chat, or in other words, in every
variety of inquiry concerning all their acquaintance on
Mrs. Jennings's side, and in laughter without cause on
Mrs. Palmer's, it was proposed by the latter that they
should all accompany her to some shops where she had
business that morning, to whichMrs. Jennings and
Elinor readily consented, as having likewise some purchases
to make themselves; and Marianne, though
declining it at first, was induced to go likewise.
Wherever they went, she was evidently always on the
watch. In Bond-street especially, where much of their
business lay, her eyes were in constant inquiry; and in
whatever shop the party were engaged, her mind was
equally abstracted from every thing actually before
them, from all that interested and occupied the others.
AusSeSe165
Restless and dissatisfied every where, her sister could
never obtain her opinion of any article of purchase,
however it might equally concern them both; she
received no pleasure from any thing; was only impatient
to be at home again, and could with difficulty govern
her vexation at the tediousness of Mrs. Palmer, whose
eye was caught by every thing pretty, expensive, or
new; who was wild to buy all, could determine on none,
and dawdled away her time in rapture and indecision.
It was late in the morning before they returned home;
and no sooner had they entered the house than Marianne
flew eagerly up stairs, and when Elinor followed, she
found her turning from the table with a sorrowful
countenance, which declared that no Willoughby had
been there.
"Has no letter been left here for me since we went
out?"
said she to the footman who then entered with
the parcels. She was answered in the negative.
"Are
you quite sure of it?"
she replied.
"Are you certain
that no servant, no porter has left any letter or note?"
The man replied that none had.
"How very odd!"
said she in a low and disappointed
voice, as she turned away to the window.
"How odd indeed!"
repeated Elinor within herself,
regarding her sister with uneasiness.
"If she had not
known him to be in town she would not have written
to him, as she did; she would have written to Combe Magna;
and if he is in town, how odd that he should
neither come nor write! Oh! my dear mother, you
must be wrong in permitting an engagement between
a daughter so young, a man so little known, to be carried
on in so doubtful, so mysterious a manner! I long to
inquire; but how will my interference be borne!"
She determined after some consideration, that if
appearances continued many days longer, as unpleasant
as they now were, she would represent in the strongest
manner to her mother the necessity of some serious
inquiry into the affair.
AusSeSe166
Mrs. Palmer and two elderly ladies of Mrs. Jennings's
intimate acquaintance, whom she had met and invited
in the morning, dined with them. The former left them
soon after tea to fulfil her evening engagements; and
Elinor was obliged to assist in making a whist-table for
the others. Marianne was of no use on these occasions,
as she would never learn the game, but though her time
was therefore at her own disposal, the evening was by
no means more productive of pleasure to her than to
Elinor, for it was spent in all the anxiety of expectation
and the pain of disappointment. She sometimes
endeavoured for a few minutes to read; but the book
was soon thrown aside, and she returned to the more
interesting employment of walking backwards and forwards
across the room, pausing for a moment whenever
she came to the window, in hopes of distinguishing the
long-expected rap.
AusSeSe167
"If this open weather holds much longer,"
said
Mrs. Jennings, when they met at breakfast the following
morning.
"Sir John will not like leaving Barton next
week; 'tis a sad thing for sportsmen to lose a day's
pleasure. Poor souls! I always pity them when they
do; they seem to take it so much to heart."
"That is true,"
cried Marianne in a cheerful voice,
and walking to the window as she spoke, to examine
the day.
"I had not thought of that. This weather
will keep many sportsmen in the country."
It was a lucky recollection, all her good spirits were
restored by it.
"It is charming weather for them
indeed,"
she continued, as she sat down to the breakfast table
with a happy countenance.
"How much they
must enjoy it! But"
(with a little return of anxiety)
"it cannot be expected to last long. At this time of
year, and after such a series of rain, we shall certainly
have very little more of it. Frosts will soon set in, and
in all probability with severity. In another day or two
perhaps; this extreme mildness can hardly last longer --
nay, perhaps it may freeze to-night!"
"At any rate,"
said Elinor, wishing to prevent
Mrs. Jennings from seeing her sister's thoughts as clearly
as she did,
"I dare say we shall have Sir John and
Lady Middleton in town by the end of next week."
"Aye, my dear, I'll warrant you we do. Mary always
has her own way."
"And now,"
silently conjectured Elinor,
"she will
write to Combe by this day's post."
But if she did, the letter was written and sent away
with a privacy which eluded all her watchfulness to
ascertain the fact. Whatever the truth of it might be,
and far as Elinor was from feeling thorough contentment
AusSeSe168
about it, yet while she saw Marianne in spirits, she could
not be very uncomfortable herself. And Marianne was
in spirits; happy in the mildness of the weather, and
still happier in her expectation of a frost.
The morning was chiefly spent in leaving cards at the
houses of Mrs. Jennings's acquaintance to inform them
of her being in town; and Marianne was all the time
busy in observing the direction of the wind, watching
the variations of the sky and imagining an alteration in
the air.
"Don't you find it colder than it was in the morning,
Elinor? There seems to me a very decided difference.
I can hardly keep my hands warm even in my muff.
It was not so yesterday, I think. The clouds seem
parting too, the sun will be out in a moment; and we
shall have a clear afternoon."
Elinor was alternately diverted and pained; but
Marianne persevered, and saw every night in the brightness
of the fire, and every morning in the appearance
of the atmosphere, the certain symptoms of approaching
frost.
The Miss Dashwoods had no greater reason to be
dissatisfied with Mrs. Jennings's style of living, and set
of acquaintance, than with her behaviour to themselves,
which was invariably kind. Every thing in her household
arrangements was conducted on the most liberal
plan, and excepting a few old city friends, whom, to
Lady Middleton's regret, she had never dropped, she
visited no one, to whom an introduction could at all
discompose the feelings of her young companions.
Pleased to find herself more comfortably situated in
that particular than she had expected, Elinor was very
willing to compound for the want of much real enjoyment
from any of their evening parties, which, whether
at home or abroad, formed only for cards, could have
little to amuse her.
Colonel Brandon, who had a general invitation to the
house, was with them almost every day; he came to
AusSeSe169
look at Marianne and talk to Elinor, who often derived
more satisfaction from conversing with him than from
any other daily occurrence, but who saw at the same
time with much concern his continued regard for her
sister. She feared it was a strengthening regard. It
grieved her to see the earnestness with which he often
watched Marianne, and his spirits were certainly worse
than when at Barton.
About a week after their arrival it became certain
that Willoughby was also arrived. His card was on the
table, when they came in from the morning's drive.
"Good God!"
cried Marianne,
"he has been here
while we were out."
Elinor, rejoiced to be assured of
his being in London, now ventured to say,
"depend
upon it he will call again to-morrow."
But Marianne
seemed hardly to hear her, and on Mrs. Jennings's
entrance, escaped with the precious card.
This event, while it raised the spirits of Elinor, restored
to those of her sister, all, and more than all, their former
agitation. From this moment her mind was never quiet;
the expectation of seeing him every hour of the day,
made her unfit for anything. She insisted on being left
behind, the next morning, when the others went out.
Elinor's thoughts were full of what might be passing
in Berkeley-street during their absence; but a moment's
glance at her sister when they returned was enough to
inform her, that Willoughby had paid no second visit
there. A note was just then brought in, and laid on
the table.
"For me?"
cried Marianne, stepping hastily forward.
"No, ma'am, for my mistress."
But Marianne, not convinced, took it instantly up.
"It is indeed for Mrs. Jennings; how provoking!"
"You are expecting a letter then?"
said Elinor,
unable to be longer silent.
"Yes, a little -- not much."
After a short pause,
"you have no confidence in me,
Marianne."
AusSeSe170
"Nay, Elinor, this reproach from you -- you who have
confidence in no one!"
"Me!"
returned Elinor in some confusion;
"indeed,
Marianne, I have nothing to tell."
"Nor I,"
answered Marianne with energy,
"our situations
then are alike. We have neither of us any thing
to tell; you, because you communicate, and I, because
I conceal nothing."
Elinor, distressed by this charge of reserve in herself,
which she was not at liberty to do away, knew not how,
under such circumstances, to press for greater openness
in Marianne.
Mrs. Jennings soon appeared, and the note being given
her, she read it aloud. It was from Lady Middleton,
announcing their arrival in Conduit-street the night
before, and requesting the company of her mother and
cousins the following evening. Business on Sir John's
part, and a violent cold on her own, prevented their
calling in Berkeley-street. The invitation was accepted:
but when the hour of appointment drew near, necessary
as it was in common civility to Mrs. Jennings, that they
should both attend her on such a visit, Elinor had
some difficulty in persuading her sister to go, for still
she had seen nothing of Willoughby; and therefore
was not more indisposed for amusement abroad, than
unwilling to run the risk of his calling again in her
absence.
Elinor found, when the evening was over, that disposition
is not materially altered by a change of abode,
for although scarcely settled in town, Sir John had contrived
to collect around him, nearly twenty young people,
and to amuse them with a ball. This was an affair,
however, of whichLady Middleton did not approve. In
the country, an unpremeditated dance was very allowable;
but in London, where the reputation of elegance
was more important and less easily attained, it was
risking too much for the gratification of a few girls, to
have it known that Lady Middleton had given a small
AusSeSe171
dance of eight or nine couple, with two violins, and
a mere side-board collation.
Mr. and Mrs. Palmer were of the party; from the
former, whom they had not seen before since their
arrival in town, as he was careful to avoid the appearance
of any attention to his mother-in-law, and therefore
never came near her, they received no mark of recognition
on their entrance. He looked at them slightly,
without seeming to know who they were, and merely
nodded to Mrs. Jennings from the other side of the
room. Marianne gave one glance round the apartment
as she entered; it was enough, he was not there -- and
she sat down, equally ill-disposed to receive or communicate
pleasure. After they had been assembled
about an hour, Mr. Palmer sauntered towards the Miss Dashwoods
to express his surprise on seeing them in
town, though Colonel Brandon had been first informed
of their arrival at his house, and he had himself said
something very droll on hearing that they were to come.
"I thought you were both in Devonshire,"
said he.
"Did you?"
replied Elinor.
"When do you go back again?"
"I do not know."
And thus ended their discourse.
Never had Marianne been so unwilling to dance in
her life, as she was that evening, and never so much
fatigued by the exercise. She complained of it as they
returned to Berkeley-street.
"Aye, aye,"
said Mrs. Jennings,
"we know the reason
of all that very well; if a certain person who shall be
nameless, had been there, you would not have been
a bit tired: and to say the truth it was not very pretty
of him not to give you the meeting when he was invited."
"Invited!"
cried Marianne.
"So my daughter Middleton told me, for it seems
Sir John met him somewhere in the street this morning."
Marianne said no more, but looked exceedingly hurt.
Impatient in this situation to be doing something that
might lead to her sister's relief, Elinor resolved to write
AusSeSe172
the next morning to her mother, and hoped by awakening
her fears for the health of Marianne, to procure those
inquiries which had been so long delayed; and she was
still more eagerly bent on this measure by perceiving
after breakfast on the morrow, that Marianne was again
writing to Willoughby, for she could not suppose it to
be to any other person.
About the middle of the day, Mrs. Jennings went out
by herself on business, and Elinor began her letter
directly, while Marianne, too restless for employment,
too anxious for conversation, walked from one window
to the other, or sat down by the fire in melancholy
meditation. Elinor was very earnest in her application
to her mother, relating all that had passed, her suspicions
of Willoughby's inconstancy, urging her by every plea
of duty and affection to demand from Marianne, an
account of her real situation with respect to him.
Her letter was scarcely finished, when a rap foretold
a visitor, and Colonel Brandon was announced. Marianne,
who had seen him from the window, and who
hated company of any kind, left the room before he
entered it. He looked more than usually grave, and
though expressing satisfaction at finding Miss Dashwood
alone, as if he had somewhat in particular to tell her,
sat for some time without saying a word. Elinor, persuaded
that he had some communication to make in
which her sister was concerned, impatiently expected its
opening. It was not the first time of her feeling the
same kind of conviction; for more than once before,
beginning with the observation of
"your sister looks
unwell to-day,"
or
"your sister seems out of spirits,"
he had appeared on the point, either of disclosing, or
of inquiring, something particular about her. After
a pause of several minutes, their silence was broken, by
his asking her in a voice of some agitation,
when he was
to congratulate her on the acquisition of a brother?
Elinor was not prepared for such a question, and having
no answer ready, was obliged to adopt the simple and
AusSeSe173
common expedient, of asking what he meant? He tried
to smile as he replied,
"your sister's engagement to
Mr. Willoughby is very generally known."
"It cannot be generally known,"
returned Elinor,
"for her own family do not know it."
He looked surprised and said,
"I beg your pardon,
I am afraid my inquiry has been impertinent; but I had
not supposed any secrecy intended, as they openly correspond,
and their marriage is universally talked of."
"How can that be? By whom can you have heard
it mentioned?"
"By many -- by some of whom you know nothing, by
others with whom you are most intimate, Mrs. Jennings,
Mrs. Palmer, and the Middletons. But still I might not
have believed it, for where the mind is perhaps rather
unwilling to be convinced, it will always find something
to support its doubts, if I had not, when the servant
let me in to-day, accidentally seen a letter in his hand,
directed to Mr. Willoughby in your sister's writing.
I came to inquire, but I was convinced before I could
ask the question. Is every thing finally settled? Is it
impossible to --? But I have no right, and I could
have no chance of succeeding. Excuse me, Miss Dashwood.
I believe I have been wrong in saying so much,
but I hardly know what to do, and on your prudence
I have the strongest dependence. Tell me that it is all
absolutely resolved on, that any attempt, that in short
concealment, if concealment be possible, is all that
remains."
These words, which conveyed to Elinor a direct avowal
of his love for her sister, affected her very much. She
was not immediately able to say anything, and even
when her spirits were recovered, she debated for a short
time, on the answer it would be most proper to give.
The real state of things between Willoughby and her
sister was so little known to herself, that in endeavouring
to explain it, she might be as liable to say too much as
too little. Yet as she was convinced that Marianne's
AusSeSe174
affection for Willoughby, could leave no hope of Colonel Brandon's
success, whatever the event of that affection
might be, and at the same time wished to shield her
conduct from censure, she thought it most prudent and
kind, after some consideration, to say more than she
really knew or believed. She acknowledged, therefore,
that
though she had never been informed by themselves
of the terms on which they stood with each other, of
their mutual affection she had no doubt, and of their
correspondence she was not astonished to hear.
He listened to her with silent attention, and on her
ceasing to speak, rose directly from his seat, and after
saying in a voice of emotion,
"to your sister I wish all
imaginable happiness; to Willoughby that he may
endeavour to deserve her," --
took leave, and went away.
Elinor derived no comfortable feelings from this conversation,
to lessen the uneasiness of her mind on other
points; she was left, on the contrary, with a melancholy
impression of Colonel Brandon's unhappiness, and was
prevented even from wishing it removed, by her anxiety
for the very event that must confirm it.
AusSeSe175
Nothing occurred during the next three or four days,
to make Elinor regret what she had done, in applying
to her mother; for Willoughby neither came nor wrote.
The were engaged about the end of that time to attend
Lady Middleton to a party, from whichMrs. Jennings
was kept away by the indisposition of her youngest
daughter; and for this party, Marianne, wholly
dispirited, careless of her appearance, and seeming
equally indifferent whether she went or staid, prepared,
without one look of hope, or one expression of pleasure.
She sat by the drawing room fire after tea, till the
moment of Lady Middleton's arrival, without once
stirring from her seat, or altering her attitude, lost in
her own thoughts and insensible of her sister's presence;
and when at last they were told that Lady Middleton
waited for them at the door, she started as if she had
forgotten that any one was expected.
They arrived in due time at the place of destination,
and as soon as the string of carriages before them would
allow, alighted, ascended the stairs, heard their names
announced from one landing-place to another in an
audible voice, and entered a room splendidly lit up,
quite full of company, and insufferably hot. When they
had paid their tribute of politeness by curtesying to the
lady of the house, they were permitted to mingle in
the croud, and take their share of the heat and inconvenience,
to which their arrival must necessarily add.
After some time spent in saying little and doing less,
Lady Middleton sat down to Casino, and as Marianne
was not in spirits for moving about, she and Elinor
luckily succeeding to chairs, placed themselves at no
great distance from the table.
They had not remained in this manner long, before
AusSeSe176
Elinor perceived Willoughby, standing within a few
yards of them, in earnest conversation with a very
fashionable looking young woman. She soon caught his
eye, and he immediately bowed, but without attempting
to speak to her, or to approach Marianne, though he
could not but see her; and then continued his discourse
with the same lady. Elinor turned involuntarily to
Marianne, to see whether it could be unobserved by her.
At that moment she first perceived him, and her whole
countenance glowing with sudden delight, she would
have moved towards him instantly, had not her sister
caught hold of her.
"Good heavens!"
she exclaimed,
"he is there -- he
is there -- Oh! why does he not look at me? why cannot
I speak to him?"
"Pray, pray be composed,"
cried Elinor,
"and do
not betray what you feel to every body present. Perhaps
he has not observed you yet."
This however was more than she could believe herself;
and to be composed at such a moment was not only
beyond the reach of Marianne, it was beyond her wish.
She sat in an agony of impatience, which affected every
feature.
At last he turned round again, and regarded them
both; she started up, and pronouncing his name in
a tone of affection, held out her hand to him. He
approached, and addressing himself rather to Elinor
than Marianne, as if wishing to avoid her eye, and
determined not to observe her attitude, inquired in
a hurried manner after Mrs. Dashwood, and asked how
long they had been in town. Elinor was robbed of all
presence of mind by such an address, and was unable
to say a word. But the feelings of her sister were
instantly expressed. Her face was crimsoned over, and
she exclaimed in a voice of the greatest emotion,
"Good
God! Willoughby, what is the meaning of this? Have
you not received my letters? Will you not shake hands
with me?"
AusSeSe177
He could not then avoid it, but her touch seemed
painful to him, and he held her hand only for a moment.
During all this time he was evidently struggling for
composure. Elinor watched his countenance and saw
its expression becoming more tranquil. After a moment's
pause, he spoke with calmness.
"I did myself the honour of calling in Berkeley-street
last Tuesday, and very much regretted that I was not
fortunate enough to find yourselves and Mrs. Jennings
at home. My card was not lost, I hope."
"But have you not received my notes?"
cried Marianne
in the wildest anxiety.
"Here is some mistake
I am sure -- some dreadful mistake. What can be the
meaning of it? Tell me, Willoughby; for heaven's sake
tell me, what is the matter?"
He made no reply; his complexion changed and all
his embarrassment returned; but as if, on catching the
eye of the young lady with whom he had been previously
talking, he felt the necessity of instant exertion, he
recovered himself again, and after saying,
"Yes, I had
the pleasure of receiving the information of your arrival
in town, which you were so good as to send me,"
turned
hastily away with a slight bow and joined his friend.
Marianne, now looking dreadfully white, and unable
to stand, sunk into her chair, and Elinor, expecting
every moment to see her faint, tried to screen her from
the observation of others, while reviving her with
lavendar water.
"Go to him, Elinor,"
she cried, as soon as she could
speak,
"and force him to come to me. Tell him I must
see him again -- must speak to him instantly. -- I cannot
rest -- I shall not have a moment's peace till this is
explained -- some dreadful misapprehension or other. --
Oh go to him this moment."
"How can that be done? No, my dearest Marianne,
you must wait. This is not a place for explanations.
Wait only till to-morrow."
With difficulty however could she prevent her from
AusSeSe178
following him herself; and to persuade her to check her
agitation, to wait, at least, with the appearance of composure,
till she might speak to him with more privacy
and more effect, was impossible; for Marianne continued
incessantly to give way in a low voice to the misery of
her feelings, by exclamations of wretchedness. In a short
time Elinor saw Willoughby quit the room by the door
towards the staircase, and telling Marianne that he was
gone, urged the impossibility of speaking to him again
that evening, as a fresh argument for her to be calm.
She instantly begged her sister would entreat Lady Middleton
to take them home, as she was too miserable
to stay a minute longer.
Lady Middleton, though in the middle of a rubber,
on being informed that Marianne was unwell, was too
polite to object for a moment to her wish of going away,
and making over her cards to a friend, they departed as
soon as the carriage could be found. Scarcely a word was
spoken during their return to Berkeley-street. Marianne
was in a silent agony, too much oppressed even for tears;
but as Mrs. Jennings was luckily not come home, they
could go directly to their own room, where hartshorn
restored her a little to herself. She was soon undressed
and in bed, and as she seemed desirous of being alone,
her sister then left her, and while she waited the return
of Mrs. Jennings, had leisure enough for thinking over
the past.
That some kind of engagement had subsisted between
Willoughby and Marianne she could not doubt; and
that Willoughby was weary of it, seemed equally clear;
for however Marianne might still feed her own wishes,
she could not attribute such behaviour to mistake or
misapprehension of any kind. Nothing but a thorough
change of sentiment could account for it. Her indignation
would have been still stronger than it was, had she
not witnessed that embarrassment which seemed to
speak a consciousness of his own misconduct, and prevented
her from believing him so unprincipled as to
AusSeSe179
have been sporting with the affections of her sister from
the first, without any design that would bear investigation.
Absence might have weakened his regard, and
convenience might have determined him to overcome it,
but that such a regard had formerly existed she could
not bring herself to doubt.
As for Marianne, on the pangs which so unhappy
a meeting must already have given her, and on those
still more severe which might await her in its probable
consequence, she could not reflect without the deepest
concern. Her own situation gained in the comparison;
for while she could esteem Edward as much as ever,
however they might be divided in future, her mind
might be always supported. But every circumstance
that could embitter such an evil seemed uniting to
heighten the misery of Marianne in a final separation
from Willoughby -- in an immediate and irreconcileable
rupture with him.
AusSeSe180
Before the house-maid had lit their fire the next day,
or the sun gained any power over a cold, gloomy morning
in January, Marianne, only half dressed, was kneeling
against one of the window-seats for the sake of all the
little light she could command from it, and writing as
fast as a continual flow of tears would permit her. In
this situation, Elinor, roused from sleep by her agitation
and sobs, first perceived her; and after observing her
for a few moments with silent anxiety, said, in a tone
of the most considerate gentleness,
"Marianne, may I ask?" --
"No, Elinor,"
she replied,
"ask nothing; you will
soon know all."
The sort of desperate calmness with which this was
said, lasted no longer than while she spoke, and was
immediately followed by a return of the same excessive
affliction. It was some minutes before she could go on
with her letter, and the frequent bursts of grief which
still obliged her, at intervals, to withhold her pen, were
proofs enough of her feeling how more than probable it
was that she was writing for the last time to Willoughby.
Elinor paid her every quiet and unobtrusive attention
in her power; and she would have tried to sooth and
tranquillize her still more, had not Marianne entreated
her, with all the eagerness of the most nervous irritability,
not to speak to her for the world. In such circumstances,
it was better for both that they should not be long
together; and the restless state of Marianne's mind not
only prevented her from remaining in the room a moment
after she was dressed, but requiring at once solitude and
continual change of place, made her wander about the
house till breakfast time, avoiding the sight of every body.
AusSeSe181
At breakfast she neither ate, nor attempted to eat
any thing; and Elinor's attention was then all employed,
not in urging her, not in pitying her, nor in appearing
to regard her, but in endeavouring to engage Mrs. Jennings's
notice entirely to herself.
As this was a favourite meal with Mrs. Jennings, it
lasted a considerable time, and they were just setting
themselves, after it, round the common working table,
when a letter was delivered to Marianne, which she
eagerly caught from the servant, and, turning of a death-like
paleness, instantly ran out of the room. Elinor,
who saw as plainly by this, as if she had seen the direction,
that it must come from Willoughby, felt immediately
such a sickness at heart as made her hardly able
to hold up her head, and sat in such a general tremour
as made her fear it impossible to escape Mrs. Jennings's
notice. That good lady, however, saw only thatMarianne
had received a letter from Willoughby, which
appeared to her a very good joke, and which she treated
accordingly, by hoping, with a laugh, that she would
find it to her liking. Of Elinor's distress, she was too
busily employed in measuring lengths of worsted for her
rug, to see any thing at all; and calmly continuing
her talk, as soon as Marianne disappeared, she said,
"Upon my word I never saw a young woman so
desperately in love in my life! My girls were nothing
to her, and yet they used to be foolish enough; but as
for Miss Marianne, she is quite an altered creature.
I hope, from the bottom of my heart, he wo'nt keep
her waiting much longer, for it is quite grievous to see
her look so ill and forlorn. Pray, when are they to be
married?"
Elinor, though never less disposed to speak than at
that moment, obliged herself to answer such an attack
as this, and, therefore, trying to smile, replied,
"And
have you really, Ma'am, talked yourself into a persuasion
of my sister's being engaged to Mr. Willoughby?
I thought it had been only a joke, but so serious
AusSeSe182
a question seems to imply more; and I must beg,
therefore, that you will not deceive yourself any longer.
I do assure you that nothing would surprise me more
than to hear of their being going to be married."
"For shame, for shame, Miss Dashwood! how can
you talk so! Don't we all know that it must be a match,
that they were over head and ears in love with each
other from the first moment they met? Did not I see
them together in Devonshire every day, and all day
long; and did not I know that your sister came to
town with me on purpose to buy wedding clothes?
Come, come, this wo'nt do. Because you are so sly
about it yourself, you think nobody else has any senses;
but it is no such thing, I can tell you, for it has been
known all over town this ever so long. I tell every body
of it and so does Charlotte."
"Indeed, Ma'am,"
said Elinor, very seriously,
"you
are mistaken. Indeed, you are doing a very unkind
thing in spreading the report, and you will find that
you have, though you will not believe me now."
Mrs. Jennings laughed again, but Elinor had not
spirits to say more, and eager at all events to know
whatWilloughby had written, hurried away to their
room, where, on opening the door, she saw Marianne
stretched on the bed, almost choked by grief, one letter
in her hand, and two or three others lying by her.
Elinor drew near, but without saying a word; and
seating herself on the bed, took her hand, kissed her
affectionately several times, and then gave way to
a burst of tears, which at first was scarcely less violent
than Marianne's. The latter, though unable to speak,
seemed to feel all the tenderness of this behaviour, and
after some time thus spent in joint affliction, she put
all the letters into Elinor's hands; and then covering
her face with her handkerchief, almost screamed with
agony. Elinor, who knew that such grief, shocking as
it was to witness it, must have its course, watched by
her till this excess of suffering had somewhat spent itself,
AusSeSe183
and then turning eagerly to Willoughby's letter, read as
follows:
Bond Street, January.
MY DEAR MADAM,
I have just had the honour of receiving your letter,
for which I beg to return my sincere acknowledgments.
I am much concerned to find there was any thing in
my behaviour last night that did not meet your approbation;
and though I am quite at a loss to discover in
what point I could be so unfortunate as to offend you,
I entreat your forgiveness of what I can assure you to
have been perfectly unintentional. I shall never reflect
on my former acquaintance with your family in Devonshire
without the most grateful pleasure, and flatter
myself it will not be broken by any mistake or misapprehension
of my actions. My esteem for your whole
family is very sincere; but if I have been so unfortunate
as to give rise to a belief of more than I felt, or meant
to express, I shall reproach myself for not having been
more guarded in my professions of that esteem. That
I should ever have meant more you will allow to be
impossible, when you understand that my affections
have been long engaged elsewhere, and it will not be
many weeks, I believe, before this engagement is fulfilled.
It is with great regret that I obey your commands
of returning the letters, with which I have been honoured
from you, and the lock of hair, which you so obligingly
bestowed on me.
I am, dear Madam,
Your most obedient
humble Servant,
JOHN WILLOUGHBY.
With what indignation such a letter as this must be
read by Miss Dashwood, may be imagined. Though
aware, before she began it, that it must bring a confession
of his inconstancy, and confirm their separation
for ever, she was not aware that such language could
AusSeSe184
be suffered to announce it; nor could she have supposed
Willoughby capable of departing so far from the appearance
of every honourable and delicate feeling -- so far
from the common decorum of a gentleman, as to send
a letter so impudently cruel: a letter which, instead of
bringing with his desire of a release any professions of
regret, acknowledged no breach of faith, denied all
peculiar affection whatever -- a letter of which every line
was an insult, and which proclaimed its writer to be
deep in hardened villany.
She paused over it for some time with indignant
astonishment; then read it again and again; but every
perusal only served to increase her abhorrence of the
man, and so bitter were her feelings against him, that
she dared not trust herself to speak, lest she might
woundMarianne still deeper by treating their disengagement,
not as a loss to her of any possible good but as
an escape from the worst and most irremediable of all
evils, a connection, for life, with an unprincipled man,
as a deliverance the most real, a blessing the most
important.
In her earnest meditations on the contents of the
letter, on the depravity of that mind which could dictate
it, and, probably, on the very different mind of a very
different person, who had no other connection whatever
with the affair than what her heart gave him with every thing
that passed, Elinor forgot the immediate distress
of her sister, forgot that she had three letters on her lap
yet unread, and so entirely forgot how long she had
been in the room, that when on hearing a carriage drive
up to the door, she went to the window to see who
could be coming so unreasonably early, she was all
astonishment to perceive Mrs. Jennings's chariot, which
she knew had not been ordered till one. Determined
not to quit Marianne, though hopeless of contributing,
at present, to her ease, she hurried away to excuse
herself from attending Mrs. Jennings, on account of her
sister being indisposed. Mrs. Jennings, with a thoroughly
AusSeSe185
good-humoured concern for its cause, admitted the
excuse most readily, and Elinor, after seeing her safe
off, returned to Marianne, whom she found attempting
to rise from the bed, and whom she reached just in time
to prevent her from falling on the floor, faint and giddy
from a long want of proper rest and food; for it was
many days since she had any appetite, and many nights
since she had really slept; and now, when her mind
was no longer supported by the fever of suspense, the
consequence of all this was felt in an aching head,
a weakened stomach, and a general nervous faintness.
A glass of wine, whichElinor procured for her directly,
made her more comfortable, and she was at last able
to express some sense of her kindness, by saying,
"Poor Elinor! how unhappy I make you!"
"I only wish,"
replied her sister,
"there were any thing
I could do, which might be of comfort to you."
This, as every thing else would have been, was too
much for Marianne, who could only exclaim, in the
anguish of her heart,
"Oh! Elinor, I am miserable
indeed,"
before her voice was entirely lost in sobs.
Elinor could no longer witness this torrent of unresisted
grief in silence.
"Exert yourself, dearMarianne,"
she cried,
"if you
would not kill yourself and all who love you. Think of
your mother; think of her misery while you suffer; for
her sake you must exert yourself."
"I cannot, I cannot,"
cried Marianne;
"leave me,
leave me, if I distress you; leave me, hate me, forget
me! but do not torture me so. Oh! how easy for
those who have no sorrow of their own to talk of exertion!
Happy, happy Elinor, you cannot have an idea
of what I suffer."
"Do you call me happy, Marianne? Ah! if you
knew! -- And can you believe me to be so, while I see
you so wretched!"
"Forgive me, forgive me,"
throwing her arms round
her sister's neck;
"I know you feel for me; I know
AusSeSe186
what a heart you have; but yet you are -- you must be
happy; Edward loves you -- what, oh! what can do
away such happiness as that?"
"Many, many circumstances,"
said Elinor, solemnly.
"No, no, no,"
cried Marianne wildly,
"he loves you,
and only you. You can have no grief."
"I can have no pleasure while I see you in this state."
"And you will never see me otherwise. Mine is
a misery which nothing can do away."
"You must not talk soMarianne. Have you no
comforts? no friends? Is your loss such as leaves no
opening for consolation? Much as you suffer now, think
of what you would have suffered if the discovery of his
character had been delayed to a later period -- if your
engagement had been carried on for months and months,
as it might have been, before he chose to put an end
to it. Every additional day of unhappy confidence, on
your side, would have made the blow more dreadful."
"Engagement!"
cried Marianne,
"there has been no
engagement."
"No engagement!"
"No, he is not so unworthy as you believe him. He
has broken no faith with me."
"But he told you that he loved you?" --
"Yes -- no -- never absolutely. It was every day
implied, but never professedly declared. Sometimes
I thought it had been -- but it never was."
"Yet you wrote to him?" --
"Yes -- could that be wrong after all that had passed?
-- But I cannot talk."
Elinor said no more, and turning again to the three
letters which now raised a much stronger curiosity than
before, directly ran over the contents of all. The first,
which was what her sister had sent him on their arrival
in town, was to this effect.
Berkeley Street, January.
How surprised you will be, Willoughby, on receiving
this; and I think you will feel something more than
AusSeSe187
surprise, when you know that I am in town. An opportunity
of coming hither, though with Mrs. Jennings,
was a temptation we could not resist. I wish you may
receive this in time to come here to-night, but I will
not depend on it. At any rate I shall expect you
to-morrow. For the present, adieu.
M. D.
Her second note, which had been written on the
morning after the dance at the Middletons', was in
these words: --
"I cannot express my disappointment in having
missed you the day before yesterday, nor my astonishment
at not having received any answer to a note which
I sent you above a week ago. I have been expecting
to hear from you, and still more to see you, every hour
of the day. Pray call again as soon as possible, and
explain the reason of my having expected this in vain.
You had better come earlier another time, because we
are generally out by one. We were last night at Lady Middleton's,
where there was a dance. I have been told
that you were asked to be of the party. But could it
be so? You must be very much altered indeed since
we parted, if that could be the case, and you not there.
But I will not suppose this possible, and I hope very
soon to receive your personal assurance of its being
otherwise."
M. D.
The contents of her last note to him were these: --
"What am I to imagine, Willoughby, by your
behaviour last night? Again I demand an explanation
of it. I was prepared to meet you with the pleasure
which our separation naturally produced, with the
familiarity which our intimacy at Barton appeared to
me to justify. I was repulsed indeed! I have passed
a wretched night in endeavouring to excuse a conduct
which can scarcely be called less than insulting; but
though I have not yet been able to form any reasonable
AusSeSe188
apology for your behaviour, I am perfectly ready to
hear your justification of it. You have perhaps been
misinformed, or purposely deceived, in something concerning
me, which may have lowered me in your opinion.
Tell me what it is, explain the grounds on which you
acted, and I shall be satisfied, in being able to satisfy
you. It would grieve me indeed to be obliged to think
ill of you; but if I am to do it, if I am to learn that
you are not what we have hitherto believed you, that
your regard for us all was insincere, that your behaviour
to me was intended only to deceive, let it be told as
soon as possible. My feelings are at present in a state
of dreadful indecision; I wish to acquit you, but certainty
on either side will be ease to what I now suffer.
If your sentiments are no longer what they were, you
will return my notes, and the lock of my hair which is
in your possession."
M. D.
That such letters, so full of affection and confidence,
could have been so answered, Elinor, for Willoughby's
sake, would have been unwilling to believe. But her
condemnation of him did not blind her to the impropriety
of their having been written at all; and she
was silently grieving over the imprudence which had
hazarded such unsolicited proofs of tenderness, not
warranted by anything preceding, and most severely
condemned by the event, when Marianne, perceiving
that she had finished the letters, observed to her that
they contained nothing but what any one would have
written in the same situation.
"I felt myself,"
she added,
"to be as solemnly
engaged to him, as if the strictest legal covenant had
bound us to each other."
"I can believe it,"
said Elinor;
"but unfortunately
he did not feel the same."
"He did feel the same, Elinor -- for weeks and weeks
he felt it. I know he did. Whatever may have changed
him now, (and nothing but the blackest art employed
AusSeSe189
against me can have done it,) I was once as dear to him
as my own soul could wish. This lock of hair, which
now he can so readily give up, was begged of me with
the most earnest supplication. Had you seen his look,
his manner, had you heard his voice at that moment!
Have you forgot the last evening of our being together
at Barton? The morning that we parted too! When
he told me that it might be many weeks before we meet
again -- his distress -- can I ever forget his distress!"
For a moment or two she could say no more; but
when this emotion had passed away, she added, in
a firmer tone,
"Elinor, I have been cruelly used; but not by
Willoughby."
"Dearest Marianne, who but himself? By whom can
he have been instigated?"
"By all the world, rather than by his own heart.
I could rather believe every creature of my acquaintance
leagued together to ruin me in his opinion, than believe
his nature capable of such cruelty. This woman of
whom he writes -- whoever she be -- or any one, in short,
but your own dear self, mama, and Edward, may have
been so barbarous to bely me. Beyond you three, is
there a creature in the world whom I would not rather
suspect of evil than Willoughby, whose heart I know
so well?"
Elinor would not contend, and only replied,
"Whoever
may have been so detestably your enemy, let them
be cheated of their malignant triumph, my dear sister,
by seeing how nobly the consciousness of your own
innocence and good intentions supports your spirits.
It is a reasonable and laudable pride which resists such
malevolence."
"No, no,"
cried Marianne,
"misery such as mine has
no pride. I care not who knows that I am wretched.
The triumph of seeing me so may be open to all the
world. Elinor, Elinor, they who suffer little may be
proud and independent as they like -- may resist insult,
AusSeSe190
or return mortification -- but I cannot. I must feel --
I must be wretched -- and they are welcome to enjoy
the consciousness of it that can."
"But for my mother's sake and mine" --
"I would do more than for my own. But to appear
happy when I am so miserable -- Oh! who can require
it?"
Again they were both silent. Elinor was employed
in walking thoughtfully from the fire to the window,
from the window to the fire, without knowing that she
received warmth from one, or discerning objects through
the other; and Marianne, seated at the foot of the bed,
with her head leaning against one of its posts, again
took up Willoughby's letter, and after shuddering over
every sentence, exclaimed --
"It is too much! Oh! Willoughby, Willoughby,
could this be yours! Cruel, cruel -- nothing can acquit
you. Elinor, nothing can. Whatever he might have
heard against me -- ought he not to have suspended his
belief? ought he not to have told me of it, to have
given me the power of clearing myself?
""The lock of
hair,
(repeating it from the letter,)
which you so obligingly
bestowed on me"" --
That is unpardonable. Willoughby,
where was your heart, when you wrote those
words? Oh! barbarously insolent! -- Elinor, can he be
justified?"
"No, Marianne, in no possible way."
"And yet this woman -- who knows what her art may
have been -- how long it may have been premeditated,
and how deeply contrived by her! -- Who is she? -- Who
can she be? -- Whom did I ever hear him talk of as
young and attractive among his female acquaintance? --
Oh! no one, no one -- he talked to me only of myself."
Another pause ensued; Marianne was greatly agitated,
and it ended thus.
"Elinor, I must go home. I must go and comfort
mama. Cannot we be gone to-morrow?"
"To-morrow, Marianne!"
AusSeSe191
"Yes; why should I stay here? I came only for
Willoughby's sake -- and now who cares for me? Who
regards me?"
"It would be impossible to go to-morrow. We owe
Mrs. Jennings much more than civility; and civility of
the commonest kind must prevent such a hasty removal
as that."
"Well, then, another day or two, perhaps; but
I cannot stay here long, I cannot stay to endure the
questions and remarks of all these people. The Middletons
and Palmers -- how am I to bear their pity? The
pity of such a woman as Lady Middleton! Oh! what
would he say to that!"
Elinor advised her to lie down again, and for a moment
she did so; but no attitude could give her ease; and
in restless pain of mind and body she moved from one
posture to another, till growing more and more hysterical,
her sister could with difficulty keep her on the bed at
all, and for some time was fearful of being constrained
to call for assistance. Some lavender drops, however,
which she was at length persuaded to take, were of use;
and from that time till Mrs. Jennings returned, she
continued on the bed quiet and motionless.
AusSeSe192
Mrs. Jennings came immediately to their room on
her return, and without waiting to have her request of
admittance answered, opened the door and walked in
with a look of real concern.
"How do you do my dear?" --
said she in a voice of
great compassion to Marianne, who turned away her
face without attempting to answer.
"How is she, Miss Dashwood? -- Poor thing! she
looks very bad. -- No wonder. Aye, it is but too true.
He is to be married very soon -- a good-for-nothing
fellow! I have no patience with him. Mrs. Taylor
told me of it half an hour ago, and she was told it by
a particular friend of Miss Grey herself, else I am sure
I should not have believed it; and I was almost ready
to sink as it was. Well, said I, all I can say is, that
if it is true, he has used a young lady of my acquaintance
abominably ill, and I wish with all my soul his wife
may plague his heart out. And so I shall always say,
my dear, you may depend on it. I have no notion of
men's going on in this way: and if ever I meet him
again, I will give him such a dressing as he has not had
this many a day. But there is one comfort, my dear
Miss Marianne; he is not the only young man in the
world worth having; and with your pretty face you
will never want admirers. Well, poor thing! I won't
disturb her any longer, for she had better have her cry
out at once and have done with it. The Parrys and
Sandersons luckily are coming to-night you know, and
that will amuse her."
She then went away, walking on tiptoe out of the
room, as if she supposed her young friend's affliction
could be increased by noise.
Marianne, to the surprise of her sister, determined on
dining with them. Elinor even advised her against it.
AusSeSe193
But
"no, she would go down; she could bear it very
well, and the bustle about her would be less."
Elinor,
pleased to have her governed for a moment by such
a motive, though believing it hardly possible that she
could sit out the dinner, said no more; and adjusting
her dress for her as well as she could, while Marianne
still remained on the bed, was ready to assist her into
the dining room as soon as they were summoned to it.
When there, though looking most wretchedly, she ate
more and was calmer than her sister had expected.
Had she tried to speak, or had she been conscious of
half Mrs. Jennings's well-meant but ill-judged attentions
to her, this calmness could not have been maintained;
but not a syllable escaped her lips, and the abstraction
of her thoughts preserved her in ignorance of every thing
that was passing before her.
Elinor, who did justice to Mrs. Jennings's kindness,
though its effusions were often distressing, and sometimes
almost ridiculous, made her those acknowledgments,
and returned her those civilities, which her sister
could not make or return for herself. Their good friend
saw that Marianne was unhappy, and felt that every thing
was due to her which might make her at all less
so. She treated her therefore, with all the indulgent
fondness of a parent towards a favourite child on the
last day of its holidays. Marianne was to have the best
place by the fire, was to be tempted to eat by every
delicacy in the house, and to be amused by the relation
of all the news of the day. Had not Elinor, in the sad
countenance of her sister, seen a check to all mirth,
she could have been entertained by Mrs. Jennings's
endeavours to cure a disappointment in love, by a variety
of sweetmeats and olives, and a good fire. As soon,
however, as the consciousness of all this was forced by
continual repetition on Marianne, she could stay no
longer. With an hasty exclamation of
Misery,
and
a sign to her sister not to follow her, she directly got
up and hurried out of the room.
AusSeSe194
"Poor soul!"
cried Mrs. Jennings, as soon as she
was gone,
"how it grieves me to see her! And I declare
if she is not gone away without finishing her wine!
And the dried cherries too! Lord! nothing seems to
do her any good. I am sure if I knew any thing she
would like, I would send all over the town for it. Well,
it is the oddest thing to me, that a man should use such
a pretty girl so ill! But when there is plenty of money
on one side, and next to none on the other, Lord bless
you! they care no more about such things! --"
"The lady then -- Miss Grey I think you called her --
is very rich?"
"Fifty thousand pounds, my dear. Did you ever see
her? a smart, stilish girl they say, but not handsome.
I remember her aunt very well, Biddy Henshawe; she
married a very wealthy man. But the family are all
rich together. Fifty thousand pounds! and by all
accounts it wo'nt come before it's wanted; for they
say he is all to pieces. No wonder! dashing about with
his curricle and hunters! Well, it don't signify talking,
but when a young man, be he who he will, comes and
makes love to a pretty girl, and promises marriage, he
has no business to fly off from his word only because
he grows poor, and a richer girl is ready to have him.
Why don't he, in such a case, sell his horses, let his
house, turn off his servants, and make a thorough reform
at once? I warrant you, Miss Marianne would have
been ready to wait till matters came round. But that
won't do, now-a-days; nothing in the way of pleasure
can ever be given up by the young men of this age."
"Do you know what kind of a girl Miss Grey is?
Is she said to be amiable?"
"I never heard any harm of her; indeed I hardly
ever heard her mentioned; except that Mrs. Taylor did
say this morning, that one day Miss Walker hinted to
her, that she believed Mr. and Mrs. Ellison would not
be sorry to have Miss Grey married, for she and Mrs. Ellison
could never agree." --
AusSeSe195
"And who are the Ellisons?"
"Her guardians, my dear. But now she is of age
and may choose for herself; and a pretty choice she has
made! What now,"
after pausing a moment --
"your
poor sister is gone to her own room I suppose to moan
by herself. Is there nothing one can get to comfort her?
Poor dear, it seems quite cruel to let her be alone. Well,
by-and-by we shall have a few friends, and that will amuse
her a little. What shall we play at? She hates whist
I know; but is there no round game she cares for?"
"Dear Ma'am, this kindness is quite unnecessary.
Marianne I dare say will not leave her room again this
evening. I shall persuade her if I can to go early to
bed, for I am sure she wants rest."
"Aye, I believe that will be best for her. Let her
name her own supper, and go to bed. Lord! no wonder
she has been looking so bad and so cast down this last
week or two, for this matter I suppose has been hanging
over her head as long as that. And so the letter that
came to-day finished it! Poor soul! I am sure if I had
had a notion of it, I would not have joked her about
it for all my money. But then you know, how should
I guess such a thing? I made sure of its being nothing
but a common love letter, and you know young people
like to be laughed at about them. Lord! how concerned
Sir John and my daughters will be when they
hear it! If I had had my senses about me I might
have called in Conduit-street in my way home, and told
them of it. But I shall see them to-morrow."
"It would be unnecessary I am sure, for you to
caution Mrs. Palmer and Sir John against ever naming
Mr. Willoughby, or making the slightest allusion to what
has passed, before my sister. Their own good-nature
must point out to them the real cruelty of appearing
to know any thing about it when she is present; and
the less that may ever be said to myself on the subject,
the more my feelings will be spared, as you my dear
madam will easily believe."
AusSeSe196
"Oh! Lord! yes, that I do indeed. It must be
terrible for you to hear it talked of; and as for your
sister, I am sure I would not mention a word about it
to her for the world. You saw I did not all dinner time.
No more would Sir John nor my daughters, for they are
all very thoughtful and considerate; especially if I give
them a hint, as I certainly will. For my part, I think
the less that is said about such things, the better, the
sooner 'tis blown over and forgot. And what good does
talking ever do you know?"
"In this affair it can only do harm; more so perhaps
than in many cases of a similar kind, for it has been
attended by circumstances which, for the sake of every one
concerned in it, make it unfit to become the public
conversation. I must do this justice to Mr. Willoughby
-- he has broken no positive engagement with my sister."
"Law, my dear! Don't pretend to defend him. No
positive engagement indeed! after taking her all over
Allenham House, and fixing on the very rooms they
were to live in hereafter!"
Elinor, for her sister's sake, could not press the subject
farther, and she hoped it was not required of her for
Willoughby's; since, though Marianne might lose much,
he could gain very little by the inforcement of the real
truth. After a short silence on both sides, Mrs. Jennings,
with all her natural hilarity, burst forth again.
"Well, my dear, 'tis a true saying about an ill wind,
for it will be all the better for Colonel Brandon. He
will have her at last; aye, that he will. Mind me, now,
if they an't married by Midsummer. Lord! how he'll
chuckle over this news! I hope he will come to-night.
It will be all to one a better match for your sister. Two
thousand a year without debt or drawback -- except the
little love-child, indeed; aye, I had forgot her; but
she may be 'prenticed out at small cost, and then what
does it signify? Delaford is a nice place, I can tell you;
exactly what I call a nice old fashioned place, full of
comforts and conveniences; quite shut in with great
AusSeSe197
garden walls that are covered with the best fruit-trees
in the country: and such a mulberry tree in one corner!
Lord! how Charlotte and I did stuff the only time we
were there! Then, there is a dove-cote, some delightful
stewponds, and a very pretty canal; and every thing,
in short, that one could wish for: and, moreover, it is
close to the church, and only a quarter of a mile from
the turnpike-road, so 'tis never dull, for if you only go
and sit up in an old yew arbour behind the house, you
may see all the carriages that pass along. Oh! 'tis
a nice place! A butcher hard by in the village, and
the parsonage-house within a stone's throw. To my
fancy, a thousand times prettier than Barton Park,
where they are forced to send three miles for their meat,
and have not a neighbour nearer than your mother.
Well, I shall spirit up the Colonel as soon as I can.
One shoulder of mutton, you know, drives another down.
If we can but put Willoughby out of her head!"
"Aye, if we can but do that, Ma'am,"
said Elinor,
"we shall do very well with or without Colonel Brandon."
And then rising, she went away to join Marianne, whom
she found, as she expected, in her own room, leaning,
in silent misery, over the small remains of a fire, which,
till Elinor's entrance, had been her only light.
"You had better leave me,"
was all the notice that
her sister received from her."
"I will leave you,"
said Elinor,
"if you will go to
bed."
But this, from the momentary perverseness of
impatient suffering, she at first refused to do. Her
sister's earnest, though gentle persuasion, however, soon
softened her to compliance, and Elinor saw her lay her
aching head on the pillow, and saw her, as she hoped,
in a way to get some quiet rest before she left her.
In the drawing-room, whither she then repaired, she
was soon joined by Mrs. Jennings, with a wine-glass,
full of something, in her hand.
"My dear,"
said she, entering,
"I have just recollected
that I have some of the finest old Constantia wine in
AusSeSe198
the house, that ever was tasted, so I have brought
a glass of it for your sister. My poor husband! how
fond he was of it! Whenever he had a touch of his
old cholicky gout, he said it did him more good than
any thing else in the world. Do take it to your sister."
"Dear Ma'am,"
replied Elinor, smiling at the difference
of the complaints for which it was recommended,
"how good you are! But I have just left Marianne in
bed, and, I hope, almost asleep; and as I think nothing
will be of so much service to her as rest, if you will
give me leave, I will drink the wine myself."
Mrs. Jennings, though regretting that she had not
been five minutes earlier, was satisfied with the compromise;
and Elinor, as she swallowed the chief of it,
reflected that, though its good effects on a cholicky gout
were, at present, of little importance to her, its healing
powers on a disappointed heart might be as reasonably
tried on herself as on her sister.
Colonel Brandon came in while the party were at
tea, and by his manner of looking round the room for
Marianne, Elinor immediately fancied that he neither
expected, nor wished to see her there, and, in short,
that he was already aware of what occasioned her
absence. Mrs. Jennings was not struck by the same
thought; for, soon after his entrance, she walked across
the room to the tea-table where Elinor presided, and
whispered --
"The Colonel looks as grave as ever you
see. He knows nothing of it; do tell him, my dear."
He shortly afterwards drew a chair close to her's, and,
with a look which perfectly assured her of his good
information, inquired after her sister.
"Marianne is not well,"
said she.
"She has been
indisposed all day, and we have persuaded her to go
to bed."
"Perhaps, then,"
he hesitatingly replied,
"what I
heard this morning may be -- there may be more truth
in it than I could believe possible at first."
"What did you hear?"
AusSeSe199
"That a gentleman, whom I had reason to think -- in
short, that a man, whom I knew to be engaged -- but
how shall I tell you? If you know it already, as surely
you must, I may be spared."
"You mean,"
answered Elinor, with forced calmness,
"Mr. Willoughby's marriage with Miss Grey. Yes, we
do know it all. This seems to have been a day of general
elucidation, for this very morning first unfolded it to
us. Mr. Willoughby is unfathomable! Where did you
hear it?"
"In a stationer's shop in Pall Mall, where I had
business. Two ladies were waiting for their carriage,
and one of them was giving the other an account of the
intended match, in a voice so little attempting concealment,
that it was impossible for me not to hear all.
The name of Willoughby, John Willoughby, frequently
repeated, first caught my attention, and what followed
was a positive assertion that every thing was now finally
settled respecting his marriage with Miss Grey -- it was
no longer to be a secret -- it would take place even within
a few weeks, with many particulars of preparations and
other matters. One thing, especially, I remember,
because it served to identify the man still more: -- as
soon as the ceremony was over, they were to go to
Combe Magna, his seat in Somersetshire. My astonishment! --
but it would be impossible to describe what
I felt. The communicative lady I learnt, on inquiry,
for I staid in the shop till they were gone, was a Mrs. Ellison,
and that, as I have been since informed, is the
name of Miss Grey's guardian."
"It is. But have you likewise heard that Miss Grey
has fifty thousand pounds? In that, if in any thing,
we may find an explanation."
"It may be so; but Willoughby is capable -- at least
I think" --
he stopped a moment; then added in a voice
which seemed to distrust itself,
"And your sister -- how
did she --"
"Her sufferings have been very severe. I have only
AusSeSe200
to hope that they may be proportionably short. It has
been, it is a most cruel affliction. Till yesterday, I
believe, she never doubted his regard; and even now,
perhaps -- But I am almost convinced that he never was
really attached to her. He has been very deceitful!
and, in some points, there seems a hardness of heart
about him."
"Ah!"
said Colonel Brandon,
"there is, indeed!
But your sister does not -- I think you said so -- she does
not consider it quite as you do?"
"You know her disposition, and may believe how
eagerly she would still justify him if she could."
He made no answer; and soon afterwards, by the
removal of the tea-things, and the arrangement of the
card parties, the subject was necessarily dropped.
Mrs. Jennings, who had watched them with pleasure
while they were talking, and who expected to see the
effect of Miss Dashwood's communication, in such an
instantaneous gaiety on Colonel Brandon's side, as might
have become a man in the bloom of youth, of hope and
happiness, saw him, with amazement, remain the whole
evening more serious and thoughtful than usual.
AusSeSe201
From a night of more sleep than she had expected,
Marianne awoke the next morning to the same consciousness
of misery in which she had closed her eyes.
Elinor encouraged her as much as possible to talk
of what she felt; and before breakfast was ready, they
had gone through the subject again and again; with
the same steady conviction and affectionate counsel on
Elinor's side, the same impetuous feelings and varying
opinions on Marianne's, as before. Sometimes she could
believe Willoughby to be as unfortunate and as innocent
as herself, and at others, lost every consolation in the
impossibility of acquitting him. At one moment she
was absolutely indifferent to the observation of all the
world, at another she would seclude herself from it for ever,
and at a third could resist it with energy. In one
thing, however, she was uniform, when it came to the
point, in avoiding, where it was possible, the presence
of Mrs. Jennings, and in a determined silence when
obliged to endure it. Her heart was hardened against
the belief of Mrs. Jennings's entering into her sorrows
with any compassion.
"No, no, no, it cannot be,"
she cried;
"she cannot
feel. Her kindness is not sympathy; her good nature
is not tenderness. All that she wants is gossip, and she
only likes me now because I supply it."
Elinor had not needed this to be assured of the
injustice to which her sister was often led in her opinion
of others, by the irritable refinement of her own mind,
and the too great importance placed by her on the
delicacies of a strong sensibility, and the graces of
a polished manner. Like half the rest of the world, if
more than half there be that are clever and good,
Marianne, with excellent abilities and an excellent
AusSeSe202
disposition, was neither reasonable nor candid. She
expected from other people the same opinions and
feelings as her own, and she judged of their motives by
the immediate effect of their actions on herself. Thus
a circumstance occurred, while the sisters were together
in their own room after breakfast, which sunk the heart
of Mrs. Jennings still lower in her estimation; because,
through her own weakness, it chanced to prove a source
of fresh pain to herself, though Mrs. Jennings was
governed in it by an impulse of the utmost good-will.
With a letter in her out-stretched hand, and countenance
gaily smiling, from the persuasion of bringing
comfort, she entered their room, saying,
"Now, my dear, I bring you something that I am
sure will do you good."
Marianne heard enough. In one moment her imagination
placed before her a letter from Willoughby, full of
tenderness and contrition, explanatory of all that had
passed, satisfactory, convincing; and instantly followed
by Willoughby himself, rushing eagerly into the room
to inforce, at her feet, by the eloquence of his eyes, the
assurances of his letter. The work of one moment was
destroyed by the next. The hand writing of her mother,
never till then unwelcome, was before her; and, in the
acuteness of the disappointment which followed such an
extasy of more than hope, she felt as if, till that instant,
she had never suffered.
The cruelty of Mrs. Jennings no language, within her
reach in her moments of happiest eloquence, could have
expressed; and now she could reproach her only by the
tears which streamed from her eyes with passionate
violence -- a reproach, however, so entirely lost on its
object, that after many expressions of pity, she withdrew,
still referring her to the letter for comfort. But
the letter, when she was calm enough to read it, brought
little comfort. Willoughby filled every page. Her
mother, still confident of their engagement, and relying
as warmly as ever on his constancy, had only been
AusSeSe203
roused by Elinor's application, to intreat from Marianne
greater openness towards them both; and this, with
such tenderness towards her, such affection for Willoughby,
and such a conviction of their future happiness
in each other, that she wept with agony through the
whole of it.
All her impatience to be at home again now returned;
her mother was dearer to her than ever; dearer through
the very excess of her mistaken confidence in Willoughby,
and she was wildly urgent to be gone. Elinor, unable
herself to determine whether it were better for Marianne
to be in London or at Barton, offered no counsel of her
own except of patience till their mother's wishes could
be known; and at length she obtained her sister's consent
to wait for that knowledge.
Mrs. Jennings left them earlier than usual; for she
could not be easy till the Middletons and Palmers were
able to grieve as much as herself; and positively refusing
Elinor's offered attendance, went out alone for the rest
of the morning. Elinor, with a very heavy heart, aware
of the pain she was going to communicate, and perceiving
by Marianne's letter how ill she had succeeded
in laying any foundation for it, then sat down to write
her mother an account of what had passed, and intreat
her directions for the future; while Marianne, who came
into the drawing-room on Mrs. Jennings's going away,
remained fixed at the table where Elinor wrote, watching
the advancement of her pen, grieving over her for the
hardship of such a task, and grieving still more fondly
over its effect on her mother.
In this manner they had continued about a quarter
of an hour, when Marianne, whose nerves could not then
bear any sudden noise, was startled by a rap at the door.
"Who can this be?"
cried Elinor.
"So early too!
I thought we had been safe."
Marianne moved to the window --
"It is Colonel Brandon!"
said she, with vexation.
"We are never safe from him."
AusSeSe204
"He will not come in, as Mrs. Jennings is from home."
"I will not trust to that,"
retreating to her own room.
"A man who has nothing to do with his own time has
no conscience in his intrusion on that of others."
The event proved her conjecture right, though it was
founded on injustice and error; for Colonel Brandon
did come in; and Elinor, who was convinced that
solicitude for Marianne brought him thither, and who
saw that solicitude in his disturbed and melancholy look,
and in his anxious though brief inquiry after her, could
not forgive her sister for esteeming him so lightly.
"I met Mrs. Jennings in Bond-street,"
said he, after
the first salutation,
"and she encouraged me to come
on; and I was the more easily encouraged, because
I thought it probable that I might find you alone, which
I was very desirous of doing. My object -- my wish --
my sole wish in desiring it -- I hope, I believe it is -- is
to be a means of giving comfort; -- no, I must not say
comfort -- not present comfort -- but conviction, lasting
conviction to your sister's mind. My regard for her, for
yourself, for your mother -- will you allow me to prove
it, by relating some circumstances, which nothing but
a very sincere regard -- nothing but an earnest desire of
being useful ---- I think I am justified -- though where
so many hours have been spent in convincing myself
that I am right, is there not some reason to fear I may
be wrong?"
He stopped.
"I understand you,"
said Elinor.
"You have something
to tell me of Mr. Willoughby, that will open his
character farther. Your telling it will be the greatest
act of friendship that can be shewn Marianne. My
gratitude will be insured immediately by any information
tending to that end, and her's must be gained by
it in time. Pray, pray let me hear it."
"You shall; and, to be brief, when I quitted Barton
last October, -- but this will give you no idea -- I must
go farther back. You will find me a very awkward
narrator, Miss Dashwood; I hardly know where to
AusSeSe205
begin. A short account of myself, I believe, will be
necessary, and it shall be a short one. On such a subject,"
sighing heavily,
"I can have little temptation to
be diffuse."
He stopt a moment for recollection, and then, with
another sigh, went on.
"You have probably entirely forgotten a conversation --
(it is not to be supposed that it could make any
impression on you) -- a conversation between us one
evening at Barton Park -- it was the evening of a dance --
in which I alluded to a lady I had once known, as
resembling, in some measure, your sister Marianne."
"Indeed,"
answered Elinor,
"I have not forgotten
it."
He looked pleased by this remembrance, and added,
"If I am not deceived by the uncertainty, the partiality
of tender recollection, there is a very strong
resemblance between them, as well in mind as person.
The same warmth of heart, the same eagerness of fancy
and spirits. This lady was one of my nearest relations,
an orphan from her infancy, and under the guardianship
of my father. Our ages were nearly the same, and from
our earliest years we were playfellows and friends.
I cannot remember the time when I did not love Eliza;
and my affection for her, as we grew up, was such, as
perhaps, judging from my present forlorn and cheerless
gravity, you might think me incapable of having ever
felt. Her's, for me, was, I believe, fervent as the attachment
of your sister to Mr. Willoughby, and it was,
though from a different cause, no less unfortunate. At
seventeen, she was lost to me for ever. She was married
-- married against her inclination to my brother. Her
fortune was large, and our family estate much encumbered.
And this, I fear, is all that can be said for the
conduct of one, who was at once her uncle and guardian.
My brother did not deserve her; he did not even love
her. I had hoped that her regard for me would support
her under any difficulty, and for some time it did; but
at last the misery of her situation, for she experienced
AusSeSe206
great unkindness, overcame all her resolution, and
though she had promised me that nothing ---- but how
blindly I relate! I have never told you how this was
brought on. We were within a few hours of eloping
together for Scotland. The treachery, or the folly, of
my cousin's maid betrayed us. I was banished to the
house of a relation far distant, and she was allowed no
liberty, no society, no amusement, till my father's point
was gained. I had depended on her fortitude too far,
and the blow was a severe one -- but had her marriage
been happy, so young as I then was, a few months must
have reconciled me to it, or at least I should not have
now to lament it. This however was not the case. My
brother had no regard for her; his pleasures were not
what they ought to have been, and from the first he
treated her unkindly. The consequence of this, upon
a mind so young, so lively, so inexperienced as Mrs. Brandon's,
was but too natural. She resigned herself
at first to all the misery of her situation; and happy
had it been if she had not lived to overcome those
regrets which the remembrance of me occasioned. But
can we wonder that with such a husband to provoke
inconstancy, and without a friend to advise or restrain
her, (for my father lived only a few months after their
marriage, and I was with my regiment in the East Indies)
she should fall? Had I remained in England,
perhaps -- but I meant to promote the happiness of both
by removing from her for years, and for that purpose
had procured my exchange. The shock which her
marriage had given me,"
he continued, in a voice of
great agitation,
"was of trifling weight -- was nothing --
to what I felt when I heard, about two years afterwards,
of her divorce. It was that which threw this gloom, --
even now the recollection of what I suffered --"
He could say no more, and rising hastily walked for
a few minutes about the room. Elinor, affected by his
relation, and still more by his distress, could not speak.
He saw her concern, and coming to her, took her hand,
AusSeSe207
pressed it, and kissed it with grateful respect. A few
minutes more of silent exertion enabled him to proceed
with composure.
"It was nearly three years after this unhappy period
before I returned to England. My first care, when I did
arrive, was of course to seek for her; but the search
was as fruitless as it was melancholy. I could not trace
her beyond her first seducer, and there was every reason
to fear that she had removed from him only to sink
deeper in a life of sin. Her legal allowance was not
adequate to her fortune, nor sufficient for her comfortable
maintenance, and I learnt from my brother, that
the power of receiving it had been made over some
months before to another person. He imagined, and
calmly could he imagine it, that her extravagance and
consequent distress had obliged her to dispose of it for
some immediate relief. At last, however, and after I had
been six months in England, I did find her. Regard for
a former servant of my own, who had since fallen into
misfortune, carried me to visit him in a spunging-house,
where he was confined for debt; and there, in the same
house, under a similar confinement, was my unfortunate
sister. So altered -- so faded -- worn down by acute
suffering of every kind! hardly could I believe the
melancholy and sickly figure before me, to be the remains
of the lovely, blooming, healthful girl, on whom I had
once doated. What I endured in so beholding her -- but
I have no right to wound your feelings by attempting
to describe it -- I have pained you too much already.
That she was, to all appearance, in the last stage of
a consumption, was -- yes, in such a situation it was my
greatest comfort. Life could do nothing for her, beyond
giving time for a better preparation for death; and that
was given. I saw her placed in comfortable lodgings,
and under proper attendants; I visited her every day
during the rest of her short life; I was with her in her
last moments."
Again he stopped to recover himself; and Elinor
AusSeSe208
spoke her feelings in an exclamation of tender concern,
at the fate of his unfortunate friend.
"Your sister, I hope, cannot be offended,"
said he,
"by the resemblance I have fancied between her and
my poor disgraced relation. Their fates, their fortunes
cannot be the same; and had the natural sweet disposition
of the one been guarded by a firmer mind, or
an happier marriage, she might have been all that you
will live to see the other be. But to what does all this
lead? I seem to have been distressing you for nothing.
Ah! Miss Dashwood -- a subject such as this -- untouched
for fourteen years -- it is dangerous to handle it at all!
I will be more collected -- more concise. She left to my
care her only child, a little girl, the offspring of her first
guilty connection, who was then about three years old.
She loved the child, and had always kept it with her.
It was a valued, a precious trust to me; and gladly
would I have discharged it in the strictest sense, by
watching over her education myself, had the nature of
our situations allowed it; but I had no family, no
home; and my little Eliza was therefore placed at
school. I saw her there whenever I could, and after
the death of my brother, (which happened about five
years ago, and which left to me the possession of the
family property,) she frequently visited me at Delaford.
I called her a distant relation; but I am well aware
that I have in general been suspected of a much nearer
connection with her. It is now three years ago, (she
had just reached her fourteenth year,) that I removed
her from school, to place her under the care of a very
respectable woman, residing in Dorsetshire, who had the
charge of four or five other girls of about the same time
of life; and for two years I had every reason to be
pleased with her situation. But last February, almost
a twelvemonth back, she suddenly disappeared. I had
allowed her, (imprudently, as it has since turned out,)
at her earnest desire, to go to Bath with one of her
young friends, who was attending her father there for
AusSeSe209
his health. I knew him to be a very good sort of man,
and I thought well of his daughter -- better than she
deserved, for, with a most obstinate and ill-judged
secrecy, she would tell nothing, would give no clue,
though she certainly knew all. He, her father, a well-meaning,
but not a quick-sighted man, could really,
I believe, give no information; for he had been generally
confined to the house, while the girls were ranging over
the town and making what acquaintance they chose;
and he tried to convince me, as thoroughly as he was
convinced himself, of his daughter's being entirely unconcerned
in the business. In short, I could learn nothing
but that she was gone; all the rest, for eight long
months, was left to conjecture. What I thought, what
I feared, may be imagined; and what I suffered too."
"Good heavens!"
cried Elinor,
"could it be -- could
Willoughby! --
"The first news that reached me of her,"
he continued,
"came in a letter from herself, last October. It was
forwarded to me from Delaford, and I received it on
the very morning of our intended party to Whitwell;
and this was the reason of my leaving Barton so suddenly,
which I am sure must at the time have appeared
strange to every body, and which I believe gave offence
to some. Little did Mr. Willoughby imagine, I suppose,
when his looks censured me for incivility in breaking up
the party, that I was called away to the relief of one,
whom he had made poor and miserable; but had he
known it, what would it have availed? Would he have
been less gay or less happy in the smiles of your sister?
No, he had already done that, which no man who can
feel for another, would do. He had left the girl whose
youth and innocence he had seduced, in a situation of
the utmost distress, with no creditable home, no help,
no friends, ignorant of his address! He had left her
promising to return; he neither returned, nor wrote,
nor relieved her."
"This is beyond every thing!"
exclaimed Elinor.
AusSeSe210
"His character is now before you; expensive, dissipated,
and worse than both. Knowing all this, as
I have now known it many weeks, guess what I must
have felt on seeing your sister as fond of him as ever,
and on being assured that she was to marry him; guess
what I must have felt for all your sakes. When I came
to you last week and found you alone, I came determined
to know the truth; though irresolute what to do when
it was known. My behaviour must have seemed strange
to you then; but now you will comprehend it. To
suffer you all to be so deceived; to see your sister -- but
what could I do? I had no hope of interfering with
success; and sometimes I thought your sister's influence
might yet reclaim him. But now, after such dishonourable
usage, who can tell what were his designs on her?
Whatever they may have been, however, she may now,
and hereafter doubtless will, turn with gratitude towards
her own condition, when she compares it with that of
my poor Eliza, when she considers the wretched and
hopeless situation of this poor girl, and pictures her to
herself, with an affection for him as strong, still as strong
as her own, and with a mind tormented by self-reproach,
which must attend her through life. Surely this comparison
must have its use with her. She will feel her
own sufferings to be nothing. They proceed from no
misconduct, and can bring no disgrace. On the contrary,
every friend must be made still more her friend by
them. Concern for her unhappiness, and respect for her
fortitude under it, must strengthen every attachment.
Use your own discretion, however, in communicating to
her what I have told you. You must know best what
will be its effect; but had I not seriously, and from my
heart believed it might be of service, might lessen her
regrets, I would not have suffered myself to trouble you
with this account of my family afflictions, with a recital
which may seem to have been intended to raise myself
at the expense of others."
Elinor's thanks followed this speech with grateful
AusSeSe211
earnestness; attended too with the assurance of her
expecting material advantage to Marianne, from the
communication of what had passed.
"I have been more pained,"
said she,
"by her
endeavours to acquit him than by all the rest; for it
irritates her mind more than the most perfect conviction
of his unworthiness can do. Now, though at first she
will suffer much, I am sure she will soon become easier.
Have you,"
she continued, after a short silence,
"ever
seen Mr. Willoughby since you left him at Barton?"
"Yes,"
he replied gravely,
"once I have. One
meeting was unavoidable."
Elinor, startled by his manner, looked at him anxiously,
saying,
"What? have you met him to --"
"I could meet him in no other way. Eliza had
confessed to me, though most reluctantly, the name of
her lover; and when he returned to town, which was
within a fortnight after myself, we met by appointment,
he to defend, I to punish his conduct. We returned
unwounded, and the meeting, therefore, never got
abroad."
Elinor sighed over the fancied necessity of this; but
to a man and a soldier, she presumed not to censure it.
"Such,"
said Colonel Brandon, after a pause,
"has
been the unhappy resemblance between the fate of
mother and daughter! and so imperfectly have I discharged
my trust!"
"Is she still in town?"
"No; as soon as she recovered from her lying-in,
for I found her near her delivery, I removed her and her
child into the country, and there she remains."
Recollecting, soon afterwards, that he was probably
dividing Elinor from her sister, he put an end to his
visit, receiving from her again the same grateful acknowledgments,
and leaving her full of compassion and esteem
for him.
AusSeSe212
When the particulars of this conversation were
repeated by Miss Dashwood to her sister, as they very
soon were, the effect on her was not entirely such as the
former had hoped to see. Not that Marianne appeared
to distrust the truth of any part of it, for she listened
to it all with the most steady and submissive attention,
made neither objection nor remark, attempted no vindication
of Willoughby, and seemed to shew by her tears
that she felt it to be impossible. But though this
behaviour assured Elinor that the conviction of his guilt
was carried home to her mind, though she saw with
satisfaction the effect of it, in her no longer avoiding
Colonel Brandon when he called, in her speaking to him,
even voluntarily speaking, with a kind of compassionate
respect, and though she saw her spirits less violently
irritated than before, she did not see her less wretched.
Her mind did become settled, but it was settled in
a gloomy dejection. She felt the loss of Willoughby's
character yet more heavily than she had felt the loss of
his heart; his seduction and desertion of Miss Williams,
the misery of that poor girl, and the doubt of what his
designs might once have been on herself, preyed altogether
so much on her spirits, that she could not bring
herself to speak of what she felt even to Elinor; and
brooding over her sorrows in silence, gave more pain to
her sister than could have been communicated by the
most open and most frequent confession of them.
To give the feelings or the language of Mrs. Dashwood
on receiving and answering Elinor's letter, would be
only to give a repetition of what her daughters had
already felt and said; of a disappointment hardly less
painful than Marianne's, and an indignation even greater
than Elinor's. Long letters from her, quickly succeeding
AusSeSe213
each other, arrived to tell all that she suffered and
thought; to express her anxious solicitude for Marianne,
and entreat she would bear up with fortitude under this
misfortune. Bad indeed must the nature of Marianne's
affliction be, when her mother could talk of fortitude!
mortifying and humiliating must be the origin of those
regrets, which she could wish her not to indulge!
Against the interest of her own individual comfort,
Mrs. Dashwood had determined that it would be better
for Marianne to be anywhere, at that time, than at
Barton, where every thing within her view would be
bringing back the past in the strongest and most
afflicting manner, by constantly placing Willoughby
before her, such as she had always seen him there. She
recommended it to her daughters, therefore, by all means
not to shorten their visit to Mrs. Jennings; the length
of which, though never exactly fixed, had been expected
by all to comprise at least five or six weeks. A variety
of occupations, of objects, and of company, which could
not be procured at Barton, would be inevitable there,
and might yet, she hoped, cheat Marianne, at times,
into some interest beyond herself, and even into some
amusement, much as the idea of both might now be
spurned by her.
From all danger of seeing Willoughby again, her
mother considered her to be at least equally safe in
town as in the country, since his acquaintance must
now be dropped by all who called themselves her friends.
Design could never bring them in each other's way:
negligence could never leave them exposed to a surprise;
and chance had less in its favour in the croud of London
than even in the retirement of Barton, where it might
force him before her while paying that visit at Allenham
on his marriage, whichMrs. Dashwood, from foreseeing
at first as a probable event, had brought herself to
expect as a certain one.
She had yet another reason for wishing her children
to remain where they were; a letter from her son-in-law
AusSeSe214
had told her that he and his wife were to be in town
before the middle of February, and she judged it right
that they should sometimes see their brother.
Marianne had promised to be guided by her mother's
opinion, and she submitted to it therefore without
opposition, though it proved perfectly different from
what she wished and expected, though she felt it to be
entirely wrong, formed on mistaken grounds, and that
by requiring her longer continuance in London it
deprived her of the only possible alleviation of her
wretchedness, the personal sympathy of her mother, and
doomed her to such society and such scenes as must
prevent her ever knowing a moment's rest.
But it was a matter of great consolation to her, that
what brought evil to herself would bring good to her
sister; and Elinor, on the other hand, suspecting that
it would not be in her power to avoid Edward entirely,
comforted herself by thinking, that though their longer
stay would therefore militate against her own happiness,
it would be better for Marianne than an immediate
return into Devonshire.
Her carefulness in guarding her sister from ever
hearing Willoughby's name mentioned, was not thrown
away. Marianne, though without knowing it herself,
reaped all its advantage; for neither Mrs. Jennings, nor
Sir John, nor even Mrs. Palmer herself, ever spoke of
him before her. Elinor wished that the same forbearance
could have extended towards herself, but that was
impossible, and she was obliged to listen day after day
to the indignation of them all.
Sir John could not have thought it possible.
"A man
of whom he had always had such reason to think well!
Such a good-natured fellow! He did not believe there
was a bolder rider in England! It was an unaccountable
business. He wished him at the devil with all his heart.
He would not speak another word to him, meet him
where he might, for all the world! No, not if it were
to be by the side of Barton covert, and they were kept
AusSeSe215
waiting for two hours together. Such a scoundrel of
a fellow! such a deceitful dog! It was only the last
time they met that he had offered him one of Folly's
puppies! and this was the end of it!"
Mrs. Palmer, in her way, was equally angry.
"She
was determined to drop his acquaintance immediately,
and she was very thankful that she had never been
acquainted with him at all. She wished with all her
heart Combe Magna was not so near Cleveland; but it
did not signify, for it was a great deal too far off to
visit; she hated him so much that she was resolved
never to mention his name again, and she should tell
everybody she saw, how good-for-nothing he was."
The rest of Mrs. Palmer's sympathy was shewn in procuring
all the particulars in her power of the approaching
marriage, and communicating them to Elinor. She could
soon tell at what coachmaker's the new carriage was
building, by what painter Mr. Willoughby's portrait
was drawn, and at what warehouse Miss Grey's clothes
might be seen.
The calm and polite unconcern of Lady Middleton
on the occasion was an happy relief to Elinor's spirits,
oppressed as they often were by the clamorous kindness
of the others. It was a great comfort to her, to be sure
of exciting no interest in one person at least among their
circle of friends; a great comfort to know that there
was one who would meet her without feeling any curiosity
after particulars, or any anxiety for her sister's health.
Every qualification is raised at times, by the circumstances
of the moment, to more than its real value;
and she was sometimes worried down by officious condolence
to rate good-breeding as more indispensable to
comfort than good-nature.
Lady Middleton expressed her sense of the affair about
once every day, or twice, if the subject occurred very
often, by saying,
"It is very shocking indeed!"
and
by the means of this continual though gentle vent, was
able not only to see the Miss Dashwoods from the first
AusSeSe216
without the smallest emotion, but very soon to see them
without recollecting a word of the matter; and having
thus supported the dignity of her own sex, and spoken
her decided censure of what was wrong in the other, she
thought herself at liberty to attend to the interest of
her own assemblies, and therefore determined (though
rather against the opinion of Sir John) that as Mrs. Willoughby
would at once be a woman of elegance and
fortune, to leave her card with her as soon as she married.
Colonel Brandon's delicate unobtrusive inquiries were
never unwelcome to Miss Dashwood. He had abundantly
earned the privilege of intimate discussion of her
sister's disappointment, by the friendly zeal with which
he had endeavoured to soften it, and they always conversed
with confidence. His chief reward for the painful
exertion of disclosing past sorrows and present humiliations,
was given in the pitying eye with whichMarianne
sometimes observed him, and the gentleness of her voice
whenever (though it did not often happen) she was
obliged, or could oblige herself to speak to him. These
assured him that his exertion had produced an increase
of good-will towards himself, and these gave Elinor hopes
of its being farther augmented hereafter; but Mrs. Jennings,
who knew nothing of all this, who knew only that
the Colonel continued as grave as ever, and that she
could neither prevail on him to make the offer himself,
nor commission her to make it for him, began, at the
end of two days, to think that, instead of Midsummer,
they would not be married till Michaelmas, and by the
end of a week that it would not be a match at all. The
good understanding between the Colonel and Miss Dashwood
seemed rather to declare that the honours of the
mulberry-tree, the canal, and the yew arbour, would all
be made over to her; and Mrs. Jennings had for some
time ceased to think at all of Mr. Ferrars.
Early in February, within a fortnight from the receipt
of Willoughby's letter, Elinor had the painful office of
informing her sister that he was married. She had taken
AusSeSe217
care to have the intelligence conveyed to herself, as soon
as it was known that the ceremony was over, as she was
desirous that Marianne should not receive the first notice
of it from the public papers, which she saw her eagerly
examining every morning.
She received the news with resolute composure; made
no observation on it, and at first shed no tears; but
after a short time they would burst out, and for the
rest of the day, she was in a state hardly less pitiable
than when she first learnt to expect the event.
The Willoughbys left town as soon as they were
married; and Elinor now hoped, as there could be no
danger of her seeing either of them, to prevail on her
sister, who had never yet left the house since the blow
first fell, to go out again by degrees as she had done
before.
About this time, the two Miss Steeles, lately arrived
at their cousin's house in Bartlett's Buildings, Holborn,
presented themselves again before their more grand
relations in Conduit and Berkeley-street; and were
welcomed by them all with great cordiality.
Elinor only was sorry to see them. Their presence
always gave her pain, and she hardly knew how to make
a very gracious return to the overpowering delight of
Lucy in finding her still in town.
"I should have been quite disappointed if I had not
found you here still,"
said she repeatedly, with a strong
emphasis on the word.
"But I always thought I should.
I was almost sure you would not leave London yet
awhile; though you told me, you know, at Barton, that
you should not stay above a month. But I thought, at
the time, that you would most likely change your mind
when it came to the point. It would have been such
a great pity to have went away before your brother and
sister came. And now to be sure you will be in no
hurry to be gone. I am amazingly glad you did not
keep to your word."
Elinor perfectly understood her, and was forced to
AusSeSe218
use all her self-command to make it appear that she
did not.
"Well, my dear,"
said Mrs. Jennings,
"and how did
you travel?"
"Not in the stage, I assure you,"
replied Miss Steele,
with quick exultation;
"we came post all the way, and
had a very smart beau to attend us. Dr. Davies was
coming to town, and so we thought we'd join him in
a post-chaise; and he behaved very genteelly, and paid
ten or twelve shillings more than we did."
"Oh, oh!"
cried Mrs. Jennings;
"very pretty,
indeed! and the Doctor is a single man, I warrant you."
"There now,"
said Miss Steele, affectedly simpering,
"everybody laughs at me so about the Doctor, and
I cannot think why. My cousins say they are sure I
have made a conquest; but for my part I declare
I never think about him from one hour's end to another.
""Lord! here comes your beau, Nancy,"" my cousin said
t'other day, when she saw him crossing the street to
the house. My beau, indeed! said I -- I cannot think
who you mean. The Doctor is no beau of mine."
"Aye, aye, that is very pretty talking -- but it won't
do -- the Doctor is the man, I see."
"No, indeed!"
replied her cousin, with affected
earnestness,
"and I beg you will contradict it, if you
ever hear it talked of."
Mrs. Jennings directly gave her the gratifying assurance
that she certainly would not, and Miss Steele was
made completely happy.
"I suppose you will go and stay with your brother
and sister, Miss Dashwood, when they come to town,"
said Lucy, returning, after a cessation of hostile hints,
to the charge.
"No, I do not think we shall."
"Oh, yes, I dare say you will."
Elinor would not humour her by farther opposition.
"What a charming thing it is that Mrs. Dashwood
can spare you both for so long a time together!"
AusSeSe219
"Long a time, indeed!"
interposed Mrs. Jennings.
"Why, their visit is but just begun!"
Lucy was silenced.
"I am sorry we cannot see your sister, Miss Dashwood,"
said Miss Steele.
"I am sorry she is not well;"
for Marianne had left the room on their arrival.
"You are very good. My sister will be equally sorry
to miss the pleasure of seeing you; but she has been
very much plagued lately with nervous head-aches,
which make her unfit for company or conversation."
"Oh, dear, that is a great pity! but such old friends
as Lucy and me! -- I think she might see us; and I am
sure we would not speak a word."
Elinor, with great civility, declined the proposal. Her
sister was perhaps laid down upon the bed, or in her
dressing gown, and therefore not able to come to them.
"Oh, if that's all,"
cried Miss Steele,
"we can just
as well go and see her."
Elinor began to find this impertinence too much for
her temper; but she was saved the trouble of checking
it, by Lucy's sharp reprimand, which now, as on many
occasions, though it did not give much sweetness to the
manners of one sister, was of advantage in governing
those of the other.
AusSeSe220
After some opposition, Marianne yielded to her
sister's entreaties, and consented to go out with her and
Mrs. Jennings one morning for half an hour. She expressly
conditioned, however, for paying no visits, and
would do no more than accompany them to Gray's in
Sackvill-street, where Elinor was carrying on a negociation
for the exchange of a few old-fashioned jewels of
her mother.
When they stopped at the door, Mrs. Jennings recollected
that there was a lady at the other end of the
street, on whom she ought to call; and as she had no
business at Gray's, it was resolved, that while her young
friends transacted their's, she should pay her visit and
return for them.
On ascending the stairs, the Miss Dashwoods found
so many people before them in the room, that there was
not a person at liberty to attend to their orders; and
they were obliged to wait. All that could be done was,
to sit down at the end of the counter which seemed to
promise the quickest succession; one gentleman only
was standing there, and it is probable that Elinor was
not without hopes of exciting his politeness to a quicker
dispatch. But the correctness of his eye, and the
delicacy of his taste, proved to be beyond his politeness.
He was giving orders for a toothpick-case for himself,
and till its size, shape, and ornaments were determined,
all of which, after examining and debating for a quarter
of an hour over every toothpick-case in the shop, were
finally arranged by his own inventive fancy, he had no
leisure to bestow any other attention on the two ladies,
than what was comprised in three or four very broad
stares; a kind of notice which served to imprint on
Elinor the remembrance of a person and face, of strong,
AusSeSe221
natural, sterling insignificance, though adorned in the
first style of fashion.
Marianne was spared from the troublesome feelings of
contempt and resentment, on this impertinent examination
of their features, and on the puppyism of his manner
in deciding on all the different horrors of the different
toothpick-cases presented to his inspection, by remaining
unconscious of it all; for she was as well able to collect
her thoughts within herself, and be as ignorant of what
was passing around her, in Mr. Gray's shop, as in her
own bed-room.
At last the affair was decided. The ivory, the gold,
and the pearls, all received their appointment, and the
gentleman having named the last day on which his
existence could be continued without the possession of
the toothpick-case, drew on his gloves with leisurely
care, and bestowing another glance on the Miss Dashwoods,
but such a one as seemed rather to demand than
express admiration, walked off with an happy air of real
conceit and affected indifference.
Elinor lost no time in bringing her business forward,
and was on the point of concluding it, when another
gentleman presented himself at her side. She turned
her eyes towards his face, and found him with some
surprise to be her brother.
Their affection and pleasure in meeting, was just
enough to make a very creditable appearance in
Mr. Gray's shop. John Dashwood was really far from
being sorry to see his sisters again; it rather gave them
satisfaction; and his inquiries after their mother were
respectful and attentive.
Elinor found that he and Fanny had been in town
two days.
"I wished very much to call upon you yesterday,"
said he,
"but it was impossible, for we were obliged to
take Harry to see the wild beasts at Exeter Exchange:
and we spent the rest of the day with Mrs. Ferrars.
Harry was vastly pleased. This morning I had fully
AusSeSe222
intended to call on you, if I could possibly find a spare
half hour, but one has always so much to do on first
coming to town. I am come here to bespeak Fanny
a seal. But to-morrow I think I shall certainly be able
to call in Berkeley-street, and be introduced to your
friend Mrs. Jennings. I understand she is a woman of
very good fortune. And the Middletons too, you must
introduce me to them. As my mother-in-law's relations,
I shall be happy to shew them every respect. They are
excellent neighbours to you in the country, I understand."
"Excellent indeed. Their attention to our comfort,
their friendliness in every particular, is more than I can
express."
"I am extremely glad to hear it, upon my word;
extremely glad indeed. But so it ought to be; they
are people of large fortune, they are related to you, and
every civility, and accommodation that can serve to
make your situation pleasant, might be reasonably
expected. And so you are most comfortably settled in
your little cottage and want for nothing! Edward
brought us a most charming account of the place; the
most complete thing of its kind, he said, that ever was,
and you all seemed to enjoy it beyond any thing. It
was a great satisfaction to us to hear it, I assure you."
Elinor did feel a little ashamed of her brother; and
was not sorry to be spared the necessity of answering
him, by the arrival of Mrs. Jennings's servant, who
came to tell her that his mistress waited for them at
the door.
Mr. Dashwood attended them down stairs, was introduced
to Mrs. Jennings at the door of her carriage, and
repeating his hope of being able to call on them the
next day, took leave.
His visit was duly paid. He came with a pretence
at an apology from their sister-in-law, for not coming
too;
"but she was so much engaged with her mother,
that really she had no leisure for going any where."
AusSeSe223
Mrs. Jennings, however, assured him directly, that she
should not stand upon ceremony, for they were all
cousins, or something like it, and she should certainly
wait on Mrs. John Dashwood very soon, and bring her
sisters to see her. His manners to them, though calm, were
perfectly kind; to Mrs. Jennings most attentively civil;
and on Colonel Brandon's coming in soon after himself,
he eyed him with a curiosity which seemed to say, that
he only wanted to know him to be rich, to be equally
civil to him.
After staying with them half an hour, he asked Elinor
to walk with him to Conduit-street, and introduce him
to Sir John and Lady Middleton. The weather was
remarkably fine, and she readily consented. As soon as
they were out of the house, his enquiries began.
"Who is Colonel Brandon? Is he a man of fortune?"
"Yes; he has very good property in Dorsetshire."
"I am glad of it. He seems a most gentlemanlike
man; and I think, Elinor, I may congratulate you on
the prospect of a very respectable establishment in life."
"Me, brother! what do you mean?"
"He likes you. I observed him narrowly, and am
convinced of it. What is the amount of his fortune?"
"I believe about two thousand a-year."
"Two thousand a-year;"
and then working himself
up to a pitch of enthusiastic generosity, he added,
"Elinor, I wish, with all my heart, it were twice as
much, for your sake."
"Indeed I believe you,"
replied Elinor;
"but I am
very sure that Colonel Brandon has not the smallest
wish of marrying me."
"You are mistaken, Elinor; you are very much
mistaken. A very little trouble on your side secures
him. Perhaps just at present he may be undecided;
the smallness of your fortune may make him hang back;
his friends may all advise him against it. But some of
those little attentions and encouragements which ladies
can so easily give, will fix him, in spite of himself. And
AusSeSe224
there can be no reason why you should not try for him.
It is not to be supposed that any prior attachment on
your side -- in short, you know as to an attachment of
that kind, it is quite out of the question, the objections
are insurmountable -- you have too much sense not to
see all that. Colonel Brandon must be the man; and
no civility shall be wanting on my part, to make him
pleased with you and your family. It is a match that
must give universal satisfaction. In short, it is a kind
of thing that" --
lowering his voice to an important
whisper --
"will be exceedingly welcome to all parties."
Recollecting himself, however, he added,
"That is,
I mean to say -- your friends are all truly anxious to see
you well settled; Fanny particularly, for she has your
interest very much at heart, I assure you. And her
mother tooMrs. Ferrars, a very good-natured woman,
I am sure it would give her great pleasure; she said
as much the other day."
Elinor would not vouchsafe any answer.
"It would be something remarkable now,"
he continued,
"something droll, if Fanny should have a brother
and I a sister settling at the same time. And yet it is
not very unlikely."
"Is Mr. Edward Ferrars,"
said Elinor, with resolution,
"going to be married?"
"It is not actually settled, but there is such a thing in
agitation. He has a most excellent mother. Mrs. Ferrars,
with the utmost liberality, will come forward, and settle
on him a thousand a-year, if the match takes place.
The lady is the Hon. Miss Morton, only daughter of the
late Lord Morton, with thirty thousand pounds. A very
desirable connection on both sides, and I have not
a doubt of its taking place in time. A thousand a-year
is a great deal for a mother to give away, to make over
for ever; but Mrs. Ferrars has a noble spirit. To give
you another instance of her liberality: -- The other day,
as soon as we came to town, aware that money could
not be very plenty with us just now, she put bank-notes
AusSeSe225
into Fanny's hands to the amount of two hundred
pounds. And extremely acceptable it is, for we must
live at a great expense while we are here."
He paused for her assent and compassion; and she
forced herself to say,
"Your expenses both in town and country must
certainly be considerable, but your income is a large one."
"Not so large, I dare say, as many people suppose.
I do not mean to complain, however; it is undoubtedly
a comfortable one, and I hope will in time be better.
The inclosure of Norland Common, now carrying on, is
a most serious drain. And then I have made a little
purchase within this half year; East Kingham Farm,
you must remember the place, where old Gibson used
to live. The land was so very desirable for me in every
respect, so immediately adjoining my own property, that
I felt it my duty to buy it. I could not have answered
it to my conscience to let it fall into any other hands.
A man must pay for his convenience; and it has cost
me a vast deal of money."
"More than you think it really and intrinsically
worth."
"Why, I hope not that. I might have sold it again
the next day, for more than I gave: but with regard
to the purchase-money, I might have been very unfortunate
indeed; for the stocks were at that time so low,
that if I had not happened to have the necessary sum
in my banker's hands, I must have sold out to very
great loss."
Elinor could only smile.
"Other great and inevitable expenses too we have
had on first coming to Norland. Our respected father,
as you well know, bequeathed all the Stanhill effects
that remained at Norland (and very valuable they were)
to your mother. Far be it from me to repine at his
doing so; he had an undoubted right to dispose of his
own property as he chose. But, in consequence of it,
we have been obliged to make large purchases of linen,
AusSeSe226
china, &c. to supply the place of what was taken away.
You may guess, after all these expenses, how very far
we must be from being rich, and how acceptable
Mrs. Ferrars's kindness is."
"Certainly,"
said Elinor;
"and assisted by her
liberality, I hope you may yet live to be in easy circumstances."
"Another year or two may do much towards it,"
he
gravely replied;
"but however there is still a great
deal to be done. There is not a stone laid of Fanny's
greenhouse, and nothing but the plan of the flower-garden
marked out."
"Where is the green-house to be?"
"Upon the knoll behind the house. The old walnut
trees are all come down to make room for it. It will
be a very fine object from many parts of the park, and
the flower-garden will slope down just before it, and be
exceedingly pretty. We have cleared away all the old
thorns that grew in patches over the brow."
Elinor kept her concern and her censure to herself;
and was very thankful that Marianne was not present,
to share the provocation.
Having now said enough to make his poverty clear,
and to do away the necessity of buying a pair of ear-rings
for each of his sisters, in his next visit at Gray's, his
thoughts took a cheerfuller turn, and he began to congratulate
Elinor on having such a friend as Mrs. Jennings.
"She seems a most valuable woman indeed. -- Her
house, her style of living, all bespeak an exceeding good
income; and it is an acquaintance that has not only
been of great use to you hitherto, but in the end may
prove materially advantageous. -- Her inviting you to
town is certainly a vast thing in your favour; and
indeed, it speaks altogether so great a regard for you,
that in all probability when she dies you will not be
forgotten. -- She must have a great deal to leave."
"Nothing at all, I should rather suppose; for she
has only her jointure, which will descend to her children."
AusSeSe227
"But it is not to be imagined that she lives up to her
income. Few people of common prudence will do that;
and whatever she saves, she will be able to dispose of."
"And do you not think it more likely that she should
leave it to her daughters, than to us?"
"Her daughters are both exceedingly well married,
and therefore I cannot perceive the necessity of her
remembering them farther. Whereas, in my opinion,
by her taking so much notice of you, and treating you
in this kind of way, she has given you a sort of claim
on her future consideration, which a conscientious
woman would not disregard. Nothing can be kinder
than her behaviour; and she can hardly do all this,
without being aware of the expectation she raises."
"But she raises none in those most concerned.
Indeed, brother, your anxiety for our welfare and
prosperity carries you too far."
"Why to be sure,"
said he, seeming to recollect
himself,
"people have little, have very little in their
power. But, my dearElinor, what is the matter with
Marianne? -- she looks very unwell, has lost her colour,
and is grown quite thin. Is she ill?"
"She is not well, she has had a nervous complaint
on her for several weeks."
"I am sorry for that. At her time of life, any thing
of an illness destroys the bloom for ever! Her's has
been a very short one! She was as handsome a girl
last September, as any I ever saw; and as likely to
attract the men. There was something in her style of
beauty, to please them particularly. I remember Fanny
used to say that she would marry sooner and better
than you did; not but what she is exceedingly fond of
you, but so it happened to strike her. She will be
mistaken, however. I question whether Marianne now,
will marry a man worth more than five or six hundred
a-year, at the utmost, and I am very much deceived if
you do not do better. Dorsetshire! I know very little of
Dorsetshire; but, my dearElinor, I shall be exceedingly
AusSeSe228
glad to know more of it; and I think I can answer
for your having Fanny and myself among the earliest
and best pleased of your visitors."
Elinor tried very seriously to convince him that there
was no likelihood of her marrying Colonel Brandon; but
it was an expectation of too much pleasure to himself
to be relinquished, and he was really resolved on seeking
an intimacy with that gentleman, and promoting the
marriage by every possible attention. He had just
compunction enough for having done nothing for his
sisters himself, to be exceedingly anxious that everybody
else should do a great deal; and an offer from
Colonel Brandon, or a legacy from Mrs. Jennings, was
the easiest means of atoning for his own neglect.
They were lucky enough to find Lady Middleton at
home, and Sir John came in before their visit ended.
Abundance of civilities passed on all sides. Sir John
was ready to like anybody, and though Mr. Dashwood
did not seem to know much about horses, he soon set
him down as a very good-natured fellow: while Lady Middleton
saw enough of fashion in his appearance, to
think his acquaintance worth having; and Mr. Dashwood
went away delighted with both.
"I shall have a charming account to carry to Fanny,"
said he, as he walked back with his sister.
"Lady Middleton
is really a most elegant woman! Such
a woman as I am sure Fanny will be glad to know.
And Mrs. Jennings too, an exceeding well-behaved
woman, though not so elegant as her daughter. Your
sister need not have any scruple even of visiting her,
which, to say the truth, has been a little the case, and
very naturally; for we only knew that Mrs. Jennings
was the widow of a man who had got all his money in
a low way; and Fanny and Mrs. Ferrars were both
strongly prepossessed that neither she nor her daughters
were such kind of women as Fanny would like to associate
with. But now I can carry her a most satisfactory
account of both."
AusSeSe229
Mrs. John Dashwood had so much confidence in her
husband's judgment that she waited the very next day
both on Mrs. Jennings and her daughter; and her
confidence was rewarded by finding even the former,
even the woman with whom her sisters were staying,
by no means unworthy her notice; and as for Lady Middleton,
she found her one of the most charming
women in the world!
Lady Middleton was equally pleased with Mrs. Dashwood.
There was a kind of cold hearted selfishness on
both sides, which mutually attracted them; and they
sympathised with each other in an insipid propriety of
demeanour, and a general want of understanding.
The same manners however, which recommended
Mrs. John Dashwood to the good opinion of Lady Middleton,
did not suit the fancy of Mrs. Jennings, and
to her she appeared nothing more than a little proud-looking
woman of uncordial address, who met her
husband's sisters without any affection, and almost
without having any thing to say to them; for of the
quarter of an hour bestowed on Berkeley-street, she sat
at least seven minutes and a half in silence.
Elinor wanted very much to know, though she did
not chuse to ask, whether Edward was then in town;
but nothing would have induced Fanny voluntarily to
mention his name before her, till able to tell her that
his marriage with Miss Morton was resolved on, or till
her husband's expectations on Colonel Brandon were
answered; because she believed them still so very much
attached to each other, that they could not be too
sedulously divided in word and deed on every occasion.
The intelligence however, which she would not give soon
flowed from another quarter. Lucy came very shortly
AusSeSe230
to claim Elinor's compassion on being unable to see
Edward, though he had arrived in town with Mr. and
Mrs. Dashwood. He dared not come to Bartlett's Buildings
for fear of detection, and though their mutual
impatience to meet, was not to be told, they could do
nothing at present but write.
Edward assured them himself of his being in town,
within a very short time, by twice calling in Berkeley-street.
Twice was his card found on the table, when
they returned from their morning's engagements. Elinor
was pleased that he had called; and still more pleased
that she had missed him.
The Dashwoods were so prodigiously delighted with
the Middletons, that though not much in the habit of
giving any thing, they determined to give them --
a dinner; and soon after their acquaintance began,
invited them to dine in Harley-street, where they had
taken a very good house for three months. Their sisters
and Mrs. Jennings were invited likewise, and John Dashwood
was careful to secure Colonel Brandon, who,
always glad to be where the Miss Dashwoods were,
received his eager civilities with some surprise, but much
more pleasure. They were to meet Mrs. Ferrars; but
Elinor could not learn whether her sons were to be of
the party. The expectation of seeing her, however, was
enough to make her interested in the engagement; for
though she could now meet Edward's mother without
that strong anxiety which had once promised to attend
such an introduction, though she could now see her with
perfect indifference as to her opinion of herself, her
desire of being in company with Mrs. Ferrars, her
curiosity to know what she was like, was as lively
as ever.
The interest with which she thus anticipated the
party, was soon afterwards increased, more powerfully
than pleasantly, by her hearing that the Miss Steeles
were also to be at it.
So well had they recommended themselves to Lady Middleton,
AusSeSe231
so agreeable had their assiduities made them
to her, that though Lucy was certainly not elegant, and
her sister not even genteel, she was as ready as Sir John
to ask them to spend a week or two in Conduit-street:
and it happened to be particularly convenient to the
Miss Steeles, as soon as the Dashwoods' invitation was
known, that their visit should begin a few days before
the party took place.
Their claims to the notice of Mrs. John Dashwood,
as the nieces of the gentleman who for many years had
had the care of her brother, might not have done much,
however, towards procuring them seats at her table;
but as Lady Middleton's guests they must be welcome;
and Lucy, who had long wanted to be personally known
to the family, to have a nearer view of their characters
and her own difficulties, and to have an opportunity of
endeavouring to please them, had seldom been happier
in her life than she was on receiving Mrs. John Dashwood's
card.
On Elinor its effect was very different. She began
immediately to determine that
Edward who lived with
his mother, must be asked as his mother was, to a party
given by his sister; and to see him for the first time
after all that passed, in the company of Lucy! -- she
hardly knew how she could bear it!
These apprehensions perhaps were not founded entirely
on reason, and certainly not at all on truth. They were
relieved however, not by her own recollection, but by
the good will of Lucy, who believed herself to be inflicting
a severe disappointment when she told her that Edward
certainly would not be in Harley-street on Tuesday, and
even hoped to be carrying the pain still farther by
persuading her, that he was kept away by that extreme
affection for herself, which he could not conceal when
they were together.
The important Tuesday came that was to introduce
the two young ladies to this formidable mother-in-law.
"Pity me, dearMiss Dashwood!"
said Lucy, as
AusSeSe232
they walked up the stairs together -- for the Middletons
arrived so directly after Mrs. Jennings, that they all
followed the servant at the same time --
"There is
nobody here but you, that can feel for me. -- I declare
I can hardly stand. Good gracious! -- In a moment
I shall see the person that all my happiness depends
on -- that is to be my mother!" --
Elinor could have given her immediate relief by
suggesting the possibility of its being Miss Morton's
mother, rather than her own, whom they were about
to behold; but instead of doing that, she assured her,
and with great sincerity, that she did pity her, -- to the
utter amazement of Lucy, who, though really uncomfortable
herself, hoped at least to be an object of
irrepressible envy to Elinor.
Mrs. Ferrars was a little, thin woman, upright, even
to formality, in her figure, and serious, even to sourness,
in her aspect. Her complexion was sallow; and her
features small, without beauty, and naturally without
expression; but a lucky contraction of the brow had
rescued her countenance from the disgrace of insipidity,
by giving it the strong characters of pride and ill nature.
She was not a woman of many words: for, unlike people
in general, she proportioned them to the number of her
ideas; and of the few syllables that did escape her, not
one fell to the share of Miss Dashwood, whom she eyed
with the spirited determination of disliking her at all
events.
Elinor could not now be made unhappy by this
behaviour. -- A few months ago it would have hurt her
exceedingly; but it was not in Mrs. Ferrars's power to
distress her by it now; -- and the difference of her
manners to the Miss Steeles, a difference which seemed
purposely made to humble her more, only amused her.
She could not but smile to see the graciousness of both
mother and daughter towards the very person -- for Lucy
was particularly distinguished -- whom of all others, had
they known as much as she did, they would have been
AusSeSe233
most anxious to mortify; while she herself, who had
comparatively no power to wound them, sat pointedly
slighted by both. But while she smiled at a graciousness
so misapplied, she could not reflect on the mean-spirited
folly from which it sprung, nor observe the studied
attentions with which the Miss Steeles courted its continuance,
without thoroughly despising them all four.
Lucy was all exultation on being so honourably
distinguished; and Miss Steele wanted only to be teazed
about Dr. Davis to be perfectly happy.
The dinner was a grand one, the servants were
numerous, and every thing bespoke the Mistress's
inclination for shew, and the Master's ability to support
it. In spite of the improvements and additions which
were making to the Norland estate, and in spite of its
owner having once been within some thousand pounds
of being obliged to sell out at a loss, nothing gave any
symptom of that indigence which he had tried to infer
from it; -- no poverty of any kind, except of conversation,
appeared -- but there, the deficiency was considerable.
John Dashwood had not much to say for himself
that was worth hearing, and his wife had still less. But
there was no peculiar disgrace in this, for it was very
much the case with the chief of their visitors, who almost
all laboured under one or other of these disqualifications
for being agreeable -- Want of sense, either natural or
improved -- want of elegance -- want of spirits -- or want
of temper.
When the ladies withdrew to the drawing-room after
dinner, this poverty was particularly evident, for the
gentlemen had supplied the discourse with some variety
-- the variety of politics, inclosing land, and breaking
horses -- but then it was all over; and one subject only
engaged the ladies till coffee came in, which was the
comparative heights of Harry Dashwood, and Lady Middleton's
second son William, who were nearly of the
same age.
Had both the children been there, the affair might
AusSeSe234
have been determined too easily by measuring them at
once; but as Harry only was present, it was all conjectural
assertion on both sides, and every body had
a right to be equally positive in their opinion, and to
repeat it over and over again as often as they liked.
The parties stood thus:
The two mothers, though each really convinced that
her own son was the tallest, politely decided in favour
of the other.
The two grandmothers, with not less partiality, but
more sincerity, were equally earnest in support of their
own descendant.
Lucy, who was hardly less anxious to please one
parent than the other, thought the boys were both
remarkably tall for their age, and could not conceive
that there could be the smallest difference in the world
between them; and Miss Steele, with yet greater address
gave it, as fast as she could, in favour of each.
Elinor, having once delivered her opinion on William's
side, by which she offended Mrs. Ferrars and Fanny still
more, did not see the necessity of enforcing it by any
farther assertion; and Marianne, when called on for
her's, offended them all, by declaring that she had no
opinion to give, as she had never thought about it.
Before her removing from Norland, Elinor had painted
a very pretty pair of screens for her sister-in-law, which
being now just mounted and brought home, ornamented
her present drawing room; and these screens, catching
the eye of John Dashwood on his following the other
gentlemen into the room, were officiously handed by him
to Colonel Brandon for his admiration.
"These are done by my eldest sister,"
said he;
"and
you, as a man of taste, will, I dare say, be pleased with
them. I do not know whether you ever happened to
see any of her performances before, but she is in general
reckoned to draw extremely well."
The Colonel, though disclaiming all pretensions to connoisseurship,
warmly admired the screens, as he would
AusSeSe235
have done any thing painted by Miss Dashwood; and
the curiosity of the others being of course excited, they
were handed round for general inspection. Mrs. Ferrars,
not aware of their being Elinor's work, particularly
requested to look at them; and after they had received
the gratifying testimony of Lady Middleton's approbation,
Fanny presented them to her mother, considerately
informing her at the same time, that they were done by
Miss Dashwood.
"Hum" --
said Mrs. Ferrars --
"very pretty," --
and
without regarding them at all, returned them to her
daughter.
Perhaps Fanny thought for a moment that her mother
had been quite rude enough, -- for, colouring a little, she
immediately said,
"They are very pretty, ma'am -- an't they?"
But
then again, the dread of having been too civil, too
encouraging herself, probably came over her, for she
presently added,
"Do you not think they are something in Miss Morton's
style of painting, ma'am? -- She does paint
most delightfully! -- How beautifully her last landscape
is done!"
"Beautifully indeed! But she does every thing
well."
Marianne could not bear this. -- She was already greatly
displeased with Mrs. Ferrars; and such ill-timed praise
of another, at Elinor's expense, though she had not any
notion of what was principally meant by it, provoked
her immediately to say with warmth,
"This is admiration of a very particular kind! -- what
is Miss Morton to us? -- who knows, or who cares, for
her? -- it is Elinor of whom we think and speak."
And so saying, she took the screens out of her sister-in-law's
hands, to admire them herself as they ought to
be admired.
Mrs. Ferrars looked exceedingly angry, and drawing
herself up more stiffly than ever, pronounced in retort
AusSeSe236
this bitter phillippic;
"Miss Morton is Lord Morton's
daughter."
Fanny looked very angry too, and her husband was
all in a fright at his sister's audacity. Elinor was much
more hurt by Marianne's warmth, than she had been
by what produced it; but Colonel Brandon's eyes, as
they were fixed on Marianne, declared that he noticed
only what was amiable in it, the affectionate heart which
could not bear to see a sister slighted in the smallest
point.
Marianne's feelings did not stop here. The cold
insolence of Mrs. Ferrars's general behaviour to her
sister, seemed, to her, to foretel such difficulties and
distresses to Elinor, as her own wounded heart taught
her to think of with horror; and urged by a strong
impulse of affectionate sensibility, she moved, after
a moment, to her sister's chair, and putting one arm
round her neck, and one cheek close to her's, said in
a low, but eager, voice,
"Dear, dearElinor, don't mind them. Don't let
them make you unhappy."
She could say no more; her spirits were quite overcome,
and hiding her face on Elinor's shoulder, she burst
into tears. -- Every body's attention was called, and
almost every body was concerned. -- Colonel Brandon
rose up and went to them without knowing what he
did. -- Mrs. Jennings, with a very intelligent
"Ah! poor
dear,"
immediately gave her, her salts; and Sir John
felt so desperately enraged against the author of this
nervous distress, that he instantly changed his seat to
one close by Lucy Steele, and gave her, in a whisper,
a brief account of the whole shocking affair.
In a few minutes, however, Marianne was recovered
enough to put an end to the bustle, and sit down among
the rest; though her spirits retained the impression of
what had passed, the whole evening.
"Poor Marianne!"
said her brother to Colonel Brandon
in a low voice, as soon as he could secure his
AusSeSe237
attention, --
"She has not such good health as her sister,
-- she is very nervous, -- she has not Elinor's constitution;
-- and one must allow that there is something very
trying to a young woman who has been a beauty, in the
loss of her personal attractions. You would not think
it perhaps, but Marianne was remarkably handsome
a few months ago; quite as handsome as Elinor. -- Now
you see it is all gone."
AusSeSe238
Elinor's curiosity to see Mrs. Ferrars was satisfied. --
She had found in her every thing that could tend to --
make a farther connection between the families, undesirable. --
She had seen enough of her pride, her meanness,
and her determined prejudice against herself, to comprehend
all the difficulties that must have perplexed the
engagement, and retarded the marriage, of Edward and
herself, had he been otherwise free; -- and she had seen
almost enough to be thankful for her own sake, that one
greater obstacle preserved her from suffering under any
other of Mrs. Ferrars's creation, preserved her from all
dependence upon her caprice, or any solicitude for her
good opinion.
Or at least, if she did not bring herself
quite to rejoice in Edward's being fettered to Lucy, she
determined, that had Lucy been more amiable, she ought
to have rejoiced.
She wondered that Lucy's spirits could be so very
much elevated by the civility of Mrs. Ferrars; -- that
her interest and her vanity should so very much blind
her, as to make the attention which seemed only paid
her because she was not Elinor, appear a compliment to
herself -- or to allow her to derive encouragement from
a preference only given her, because her real situation
was unknown. But that it was so, had not only been
declared by Lucy's eyes at the time, but was declared
over again the next morning more openly, for at her
particular desire, Lady Middleton set her down in
Berkeley-street on the chance of seeing Elinor alone, to
tell her how happy she was.
The chance proved a lucky one, for a message from
Mrs. Palmer soon after she arrived, carried Mrs. Jennings
away.
"My dear friend,"
cried Lucy as soon as they were
AusSeSe239
by themselves,
"I come to talk to you of my happiness.
Could any thing be so flattering as Mrs. Ferrars's way
of treating me yesterday? So exceeding affable as she
was! -- You know how I dreaded the thoughts of seeing
her; -- but the very moment I was introduced, there was
such an affability in her behaviour as really should seem
to say, she had quite took a fancy to me. Now was not
it so? -- You saw it all; and was not you quite struck
with it?"
"She was certainly very civil to you."
"Civil! -- Did you see nothing but only civility? --
I saw a vast deal more. Such kindness as fell to the
share of nobody but me! -- No pride, no hauteur, and
your sister just the same -- all sweetness and affability!"
Elinor wished to talk of something else, but Lucy still
pressed her to own that she had reason for her happiness;
and Elinor was obliged to go on. --
"Undoubtedly, if they had known your engagement,"
said she,
"nothing could be more flattering
than their treatment of you; -- but as that was not the
case" ----
"I guessed you would say so" --
replied Lucy quickly --
"but there was no reason in the world why Mrs. Ferrars
should seem to like me, if she did not, and her liking
me is every thing. You shan't talk me out of my
satisfaction. I am sure it will all end well, and there
will be no difficulties at all, to what I used to think.
Mrs. Ferrars is a charming woman, and so is your sister.
They are both delightful women indeed! -- I wonder
I should never hear you say how agreeable Mrs. Dashwood
was!"
To this, Elinor had no answer to make, and did not
attempt any.
"Are you ill, Miss Dashwood? -- you seem low -- you
don't speak; -- sure you an't well."
"I never was in better health."
"I am glad of it with all my heart, but really you
did not look it. I should be so sorry to have you ill;
AusSeSe240
you, that have been the greatest comfort to me in the
world! -- Heaven knows what I should have done without
your friendship." --
Elinor tried to make a civil answer, though doubting
her own success. But it seemed to satisfy Lucy, for
she directly replied,
"Indeed I am perfectly convinced of your regard for
me, and next to Edward's love, it is the greatest comfort
I have. -- Poor Edward! -- But now, there is one good
thing, we shall be able to meet, and meet pretty often,
for Lady Middleton's delighted with Mrs. Dashwood, so
we shall be a good deal in Harley-street, I dare say, and
Edward spends half his time with his sister -- besides,
Lady Middleton and Mrs. Ferrars will visit now; -- and
Mrs. Ferrars and your sister were both so good to say
more than once, they should always be glad to see me. --
They are such charming women! -- I am sure if ever
you tell your sister what I think of her, you cannot
speak too high."
But Elinor would not give her any encouragement to
hope that she should tell her sister. Lucy continued.
"I am sure I should have seen it in a moment, if
Mrs. Ferrars had took a dislike to me. If she had only
made me a formal curtsey, for instance, without saying
a word, and never after had took any notice of me, and
never looked at me in a pleasant way -- you know what
I mean, -- if I had been treated in that forbidding sort
of way, I should have gave it all up in despair. I could
not have stood it. For where she does dislike, I know
it is most violent."
Elinor was prevented from making any reply to this
civil triumph, by the door's being thrown open, the
servant's announcing Mr. Ferrars, and Edward's immediately
walking in.
It was a very awkward moment; and the countenance
of each shewed that it was so. They all looked
exceedingly foolish; and Edward seemed to have as
great an inclination to walk out of the room again, as to
AusSeSe241
advance farther into it. The very circumstance, in its
unpleasantest form, which they would each have been
most anxious to avoid, had fallen on them -- They were
not only all three together, but were together without
the relief of any other person. The ladies recovered
themselves first. It was not Lucy's business to put
herself forward, and the appearance of secrecy must still
be kept up. She could therefore only look her tenderness,
and after slightly addressing him, said no more.
But Elinor had more to do; and so anxious was she,
for his sake and her own, to do it well, that she forced
herself, after a moment's recollection, to welcome him,
with a look and manner that were almost easy, and
almost open; and another struggle, another effort still
improved them.
She would not allow the presence of
Lucy, nor the consciousness of some injustice towards
herself, to deter her from saying that she was happy to
see him, and that she had very much regretted being
from home, when he called before in Berkeley-street.
She would not be frightened from paying him those
attentions which, as a friend and almost a relation, were
his due, by the observant eyes of Lucy, though she soon
perceived them to be narrowly watching her.
Her manners gave some re-assurance to Edward, and
he had courage enough to sit down; but his embarrassment
still exceeded that of the ladies in a proportion,
which the case rendered reasonable, though his sex
might make it rare; for his heart had not the indifference
of Lucy's, nor could his conscience have quite the ease
of Elinor's.
Lucy, with a demure and settled air, seemed determined
to make no contribution to the comfort of the
others, and would not say a word; and almost every thing
that was said, proceeded from Elinor, who was
obliged to volunteer all the information about her
mother's health, their coming to town, &c. which
Edward ought to have inquired about, but never did.
Her exertions did not stop here; for she soon afterwards
AusSeSe242
felt herself so heroically disposed as to determine,
under pretence of fetching Marianne, to leave the others
by themselves: and she really did it, and that in the
handsomest manner, for she loitered away several
minutes on the landing-place, with the most high-minded
fortitude, before she went to her sister. When
that was once done, however, it was time for the raptures
of Edward to cease; for Marianne's joy hurried her into
the drawing-room immediately. Her pleasure in seeing
him was like every other of her feelings, strong in itself,
and strongly spoken. She met him with a hand that
would be taken, and a voice that expressed the affection
of a sister.
"DearEdward!"
she cried,
"this is a moment of
great happiness! -- This would almost make amends for
every thing!"
Edward tried to return her kindness as it deserved,
but before such witnesses he dared not say half what
he really felt. Again they all sat down, and for a moment
or two all were silent; while Marianne was looking with
the most speaking tenderness, sometimes at Edward and
sometimes at Elinor, regretting only that their delight
in each other should be checked by Lucy's unwelcome
presence. Edward was the first to speak, and it was to
notice Marianne's altered looks, and express his fear of
her not finding London agree with her.
"Oh! don't think of me!"
she replied, with spirited
earnestness, though her eyes were filled with tears as she
spoke,
"don't think of my health. Elinor is well, you
see. That must be enough for us both."
This remark was not calculated to make Edward or
Elinor more easy, nor to conciliate the good will of
Lucy, who looked up at Marianne with no very benignant
expression.
"Do you like London?"
said Edward, willing to say
any thing that might introduce another subject.
"Not at all. I expected much pleasure in it, but
I have found none. The sight of you, Edward, is the
AusSeSe243
only comfort it has afforded; and thank Heaven! you
are what you always were!"
She paused -- no one spoke.
"I think, Elinor,"
she presently added,
"we must
employ Edward to take care of us in our return to
Barton. In a week or two, I suppose, we shall be going;
and, I trust, Edward will not be very unwilling to accept
the charge."
Poor Edward muttered something, but what it was,
nobody knew, not even himself. But Marianne, who
saw his agitation, and could easily trace it to whatever
cause best pleased herself, was perfectly satisfied, and
soon talked of something else.
"We spent such a day, Edward, in Harley-street
yesterday! So dull, so wretchedly dull! -- But I have
much to say to you on that head, which cannot be
said now."
And with this admirable discretion did she defer the
assurance of her finding their mutual relatives more
disagreeable than ever, and of her being particularly
disgusted with his mother, till they were more in
private.
"But why were you not there, Edward? -- Why did
you not come?
"I was engaged elsewhere."
"Engaged! But what was that, when such friends
were to be met?"
"Perhaps, Miss Marianne,"
cried Lucy, eager to take
some revenge on her,
"you think young men never
stand upon engagements, if they have no mind to keep
them, little as well as great."
Elinor was very angry, but Marianne seemed entirely
insensible of the sting; for she calmly replied,
"Not so, indeed; for, seriously speaking, I am very
sure that conscience only kept Edward from Harley-street.
And I really believe he has the most delicate
conscience in the world; the most scrupulous in performing
every engagement however minute, and however
AusSeSe244
it may make against his interest or pleasure. He is the
most fearful of giving pain, of wounding expectation,
and the most incapable of being selfish, of any body
I ever saw. Edward, it is so and I will say it. What!
are you never to hear yourself praised! -- Then, you
must be no friend of mine; for those who will accept
of my love and esteem, must submit to my open commendation."
AusSeSe243
The nature of her commendation, in the present case,
however, happened to be particularly ill-suited to the
feelings of two thirds of her auditors, and was so very
AusSeSe244
unexhilarating to Edward, that he very soon got up to
go away.
"Going so soon!"
said Marianne;
"my dearEdward,
this must not be."
And drawing him a little aside, she whispered her
persuasion that Lucy could not stay much longer. But
even this encouragement failed, for he would go; and
Lucy, who would have outstaid him had his visit lasted
two hours, soon afterwards went away.
"What can bring her here so often!"
said Marianne,
on her leaving them.
"Could she not see that we
wanted her gone! -- how teazing to Edward!"
"Why so? -- we were all his friends, and Lucy has
been the longest known to him of any. It is but natural
that he should like to see her as well as ourselves."
Marianne looked at her steadily, and said,
"You
know, Elinor, that this is a kind of talking which I cannot
bear. If you only hope to have your assertion
contradicted, as I must suppose to be the case, you
ought to recollect that I am the last person in the
world to do it. I cannot descend to be tricked out of
assurances, that are not really wanted."
She then left the room; and Elinor dared not follow
her to say more, for bound as she was by her promise
of secrecy to Lucy, she could give no information that
would convince Marianne; and painful as the consequences
of her still continuing in an error might be, she
AusSeSe245
was obliged to submit to it. All that she could hope,
was that Edward would not often expose her or himself
to the distress of hearing Marianne's mistaken warmth,
nor to the repetition of any other part of the pain that
had attended their recent meeting -- and this she had
every reason to expect.
AusSeSe246
Within a few days after this meeting, the newspapers
announced to the world, that the Lady of Thomas Palmer Esq.
was safely delivered of a son and heir;
a very interesting and satisfactory paragraph, at least
to all those intimate connections who knew it before.
This event, highly important to Mrs. Jennings's happiness,
produced a temporary alteration in the disposal of
her time, and influenced, in a like degree, the engagements
of her young friends; for as she wished to be as
much as possible with Charlotte, she went thither every
morning as soon as she was dressed, and did not return
till late in the evening; and the Miss Dashwoods, at
the particular request of the Middletons, spent the whole
of every day in Conduit-street. For their own comfort,
they would much rather have remained, at least all the
morning, in Mrs. Jennings's house; but it was not
a thing to be urged against the wishes of everybody.
Their hours were therefore made over to Lady Middleton
and the two Miss Steeles, by whom their company was
in fact as little valued, as it was professedly sought.
They had too much sense to be desirable companions
to the former; and by the latter they were considered
with a jealous eye, as intruding on their ground, and
sharing the kindness which they wanted to monopolize.
Though nothing could be more polite than Lady Middleton's
behaviour to Elinor and Marianne, she did not
really like them at all. Because they neither flattered
herself nor her children, she could not believe them
good-natured; and because they were fond of reading,
she fancied them satirical: perhaps without exactly
knowing what it was to be satirical; but that did not
signify. It was censure in common use, and easily
given.
AusSeSe247
Their presence was a restraint both on her and on
Lucy. It checked the idleness of one, and the business
of the other. Lady Middleton was ashamed of doing
nothing before them, and the flattery whichLucy was
proud to think of and administer at other times, she
feared they would despise her for offering. Miss Steele
was the least discomposed of the three, by their presence;
and it was in their power to reconcile her to it entirely.
Would either of them, only have given her a full and
minute account of the whole affair between Marianne
and Mr. Willoughby, she would have thought herself
amply rewarded for the sacrifice of the best place by
the fire after dinner, which their arrival occasioned.
But this conciliation was not granted; for though she
often threw out expressions of pity for her sister to
Elinor, and more than once dropt a reflection on the
inconstancy of beaux before Marianne, no effect was
produced, but a look of indifference from the former,
or of disgust in the latter. An effort even yet lighter
might have made her their friend. Would they only
have laughed at her about the Doctor! But so little
were they, any more than the others, inclined to oblige
her, that if Sir John dined from home, she might spend
a whole day without hearing any other raillery on the
subject, than what she was kind enough to bestow on
herself.
All these jealousies and discontents, however, were so
totally unsuspected by Mrs. Jennings, that she thought
it a delightful thing for the girls to be together; and
generally congratulated her young friends every night,
on having escaped the company of a stupid old woman
so long. She joined them sometimes at Sir John's, and
sometimes at her own house; but wherever it was, she
always came in excellent spirits, full of delight and
importance, attributing Charlotte's well doing to her
own care, and ready to give so exact, so minute a detail
of her situation, as only Miss Steele had curiosity enough
to desire. One thing did disturb her; and of that she
AusSeSe248
made her daily complaint. Mr. Palmer maintained the
common, but unfatherly opinion among his sex, of all
infants being alike; and though she could plainly perceive
at different times, the most striking resemblance
between this baby and every one of his relations on both
sides, there was no convincing his father of it; no
persuading him to believe that it was not exactly like
every other baby of the same age; nor could he even
be brought to acknowledge the simple proposition of
its being the finest child in the world.
I come now to the relation of a misfortune, which
about this time befell Mrs. John Dashwood. It so
happened that while her two sisters with Mrs. Jennings
were first calling on her in Harley-street, another of her
acquaintance had dropt in -- a circumstance in itself not
apparently likely to produce evil to her. But while the
imaginations of other people will carry them away to
form wrong judgments of our conduct, and to decide on
it by slight appearances, one's happiness must in some
measure be always at the mercy of chance. In the
present instance, this last-arrived lady allowed her fancy
so far to outrun truth and probability, that on merely
hearing the name of the Miss Dashwoods, and understanding
them to be Mr. Dashwood's sisters, she immediately
concluded them to be staying in Harley-street;
and this misconstruction produced within a day or two
afterwards, cards of invitation for them as well as for
their brother and sister, to a small musical party at her
house. The consequence of which was, that Mrs. John Dashwood
was obliged to submit not only to the exceedingly
great inconvenience of sending her carriage for the
Miss Dashwoods; but, what was still worse, must be
subject to all the unpleasantness of appearing to treat
them with attention: and who could tell that they
might not expect to go out with her a second time?
The power of disappointing them, it was true, must
always be her's. But that was not enough; for when
people are determined on a mode of conduct which they
AusSeSe249
know to be wrong, they feel injured by the expectation
of any thing better from them.
Marianne had now been brought by degrees, so much
into the habit of going out every day, that it was become
a matter of indifference to her, whether she went or
not: and she prepared quietly and mechanically for
every evening's engagement, though without expecting
the smallest amusement from any, and very often without
knowing till the last moment, where it was to
take her.
To her dress and appearance she was grown so perfectly
indifferent, as not to bestow half the consideration
on it, during the whole of her toilette, which it received
from Miss Steele in the first five minutes of their being
together, when it was finished. Nothing escaped her
minute observation and general curiosity; she saw every thing,
and asked every thing; was never easy till she
knew the price of every part of Marianne's dress; could
have guessed the number of her gowns altogether with
better judgment than Marianne herself, and was not
without hopes of finding out before they parted, how
much her washing cost per week, and how much she
had every year to spend upon herself. The impertinence
of these kind of scrutinies, moreover, was generally concluded
with a compliment, which though meant as its
douceur, was considered by Marianne as the greatest
impertinence of all; for after undergoing an examination
into the value and make of her gown, the colour of her
shoes, and the arrangement of her hair, she was almost
sure of being told that upon
"her word she looked
vastly smart, and she dared to say would make a great
many conquests."
With such encouragement as this, was she dismissed
on the present occasion to her brother's carriage; which
they were ready to enter five minutes after it stopped
at the door, a punctuality not very agreeable to their
sister-in-law, who had preceded them to the house of
her acquaintance, and was there hoping for some delay
AusSeSe250
on their part that might inconvenience either herself or
her coachman.
The events of the evening were not very remarkable.
The party, like other musical parties, comprehended
a great many people who had real taste for the performance,
and a great many more who had none at all;
and the performers themselves were, as usual, in their
own estimation, and that of their immediate friends,
the first private performers in England.
As Elinor was neither musical, nor affecting to be
so, she made no scruple of turning away her eyes
from the grand pianoforte=, whenever it suited her,
and unrestrained even by the presence of a harp, and
a violoncello, would fix them at pleasure on any other
object in the room. In one of these excursive glances
she perceived among a group of young men, the very
he, who had given them a lecture on toothpick-cases at
Gray's. She perceived him soon afterwards looking at
herself, and speaking familiarly to her brother; and had
just determined to find out his name from the latter,
when they both came towards her, and Mr. Dashwood
introduced him to her as Mr. Robert Ferrars.
He addressed her with easy civility, and twisted his
head into a bow which assured her as plainly as words
could have done, that he was exactly the coxcomb she
had heard him described to be by Lucy. Happy had
it been for her, if her regard for Edward had depended
less on his own merit, than on the merit of his nearest
relations! For then his brother's bow must have given
the finishing stroke to what the ill-humour of his mother
and sister would have begun. But while she wondered
at the difference of the two young men, she did not
find that the emptiness and conceit of the one, put her
at all out of charity with the modesty and worth of
the other. Why they were different, Robert explained
to her himself in the course of a quarter of an hour's
conversation; for, talking of his brother, and lamenting
the extreme gaucherie which he really believed kept him
AusSeSe251
from mixing in proper society, he candidly and generously
attributed it much less to any natural deficiency, than to
the misfortune of a private education; while he himself,
though probably without any particular, any material
superiority by nature, merely from the advantage of
a public school, was as well fitted to mix in the world
as any other man.
"Upon my soul,"
he added,
"I believe it is nothing
more; and so I often tell my mother, when she is
grieving about it. ""My dear Madam,"" I always say to
her, ""you must make yourself easy. The evil is now
irremediable, and it has been entirely your own doing.
Why would you be persuaded by my uncle, Sir Robert,
against your own judgment, to place Edward under
private tuition, at the most critical time of his life?
If you had only sent him to Westminster as well as
myself, instead of sending him to Mr. Pratt's, all this
would have been prevented."" This is the way in which
I always consider the matter, and my mother is perfectly
convinced of her error."
Elinor would not oppose his opinion, because, whatever
might be her general estimation of the advantage
of a public school, she could not think of Edward's
abode in Mr. Pratt's family, with any satisfaction.
"You reside in Devonshire, I think" --
was his next
observation,
"in a cottage near Dawlish."
Elinor set him right as to its situation, and it seemed
rather surprising to him that anybody could live in
Devonshire, without living near Dawlish. He bestowed
his hearty approbation however on their species of house.
"For my own part,"
said he,
"I am excessively fond
of a cottage; there is always so much comfort, so much
elegance about them. And I protest, if I had any money
to spare, I should buy a little land and build one myself,
within a short distance of London, where I might drive
myself down at any time, and collect a few friends about
me, and be happy. I advise every body who is going
to build, to build a cottage. My friend Lord Courtland
AusSeSe252
came to me the other day on purpose to ask my advice,
and laid before me three different plans of Bonomi's.
I was to decide on the best of them. ""My dearCourtland,""
said I, immediately throwing them all into the
fire, ""do not adopt either of them, but by all means
build a cottage."" And that, I fancy, will be the end of it.
"Some people imagine that there can be no accommodations,
no space in a cottage; but this is all a mistake.
I was last month at my friend Elliott's near
Dartford. Lady Elliott wished to give a dance. ""But
how can it be done?"" said she; ""my dearFerrars, do
tell me how it is to be managed. There is not a room
in this cottage that will hold ten couple, and where can
the supper be?"" I immediately saw that there could
be no difficulty in it, so I said, ""My dearLady Elliott,
do not be uneasy. The dining parlour will admit
eighteen couple with ease; card-tables may be placed
in the drawing-room; the library may be open for tea
and other refreshments; and let the supper be set out
in the saloon."" Lady Elliott was delighted with the
thought. We measured the dining-room, and found it
would hold exactly eighteen couple, and the affair was
arranged precisely after my plan. So that, in fact, you
see, if people do but know how to set about it, every
comfort may be as well enjoyed in a cottage as in the
most spacious dwelling."
Elinor agreed to it all, for she did not think he deserved
the compliment of rational opposition.
As John Dashwood had no more pleasure in music
than his eldest sister, his mind was equally at liberty
to fix on any thing else; and a thought struck him
during the evening, which he communicated to his wife,
for her approbation, when they got home. The consideration
of Mrs. Dennison's mistake, in supposing his
sisters their guests, had suggested the propriety of their
being really invited to become such, while Mrs. Jennings's
engagements kept her from home. The expense would
be nothing, the inconvenience not more; and it was
AusSeSe253
altogether an attention, which the delicacy of his conscience
pointed out to be requisite to its complete
enfranchisement from his promise to his father. Fanny
was startled at the proposal.
"I do not see how it can be done,"
said she,
"without
affronting Lady Middleton, for they spend every day
with her; otherwise I should be exceedingly glad to do
it. You know I am always ready to pay them any
attention in my power, as my taking them out this
evening shews. But they are Lady Middleton's visitors.
How can I ask them away from her?"
Her husband, but with great humility, did not see the
force of her objection.
"They had already spent a week
in this manner in Conduit-street, and Lady Middleton
could not be displeased at their giving the same number
of days to such near relations."
Fanny paused a moment, and then, with fresh vigour,
said,
"My love, I would ask them with all my heart, if it
was in my power. But I had just settled within myself
to ask the Miss Steeles to spend a few days with us.
They are very well behaved, good kind of girls; and
I think the attention is due to them, as their uncle did
so very well by Edward. We can ask your sisters some
other year, you know; but the Miss Steeles may not
be in town any more. I am sure you will like them;
indeed, you do like them, you know, very much already,
and so does my mother; and they are such favourites
with Harry!"
Mr. Dashwood was convinced. He saw the necessity
of inviting the Miss Steeles immediately, and his conscience
was pacified by the resolution of inviting his
sisters another year; at the same time, however, slyly
suspecting that another year would make the invitation
needless, by bringing Elinor to town as Colonel Brandon's
wife, and Marianne as their visitor.
Fanny, rejoicing in her escape, and proud of the ready
wit that had procured it, wrote the next morning to
AusSeSe254
Lucy, to request her company and her sister's, for some
days, in Harley-street, as soon as Lady Middleton could
spare them. This was enough to make Lucy really and
reasonably happy. Mrs. Dashwood seemed actually
working for her, herself; cherishing all her hopes, and
promoting all her views! Such an opportunity of being
with Edward and his family was, above all things, the
most material to her interest, and such an invitation
the most gratifying to her feelings! It was an advantage
that could not be too gratefully acknowledged, nor too
speedily made use of; and the visit to Lady Middleton,
which had not before had any precise limits, was
instantly discovered to have been always meant to end
in two days time.
When the note was shewn to Elinor, as it was within
ten minutes after its arrival, it gave her, for the first
time, some share in the expectations of Lucy; for such
a mark of uncommon kindness, vouchsafed on so short
an acquaintance, seemed to declare that the good will
towards her arose from something more than merely
malice against herself; and might be brought, by time
and address, to do every thing thatLucy wished. Her
flattery had already subdued the pride of Lady Middleton,
and made an entry into the close heart of Mrs. John Dashwood;
and these were effects that laid open the
probability of greater.
The Miss Steeles removed to Harley-street, and all
that reached Elinor of their influence there, strengthened
her expectation of the event. Sir John, who called on
them more than once, brought home such accounts of
the favour they were in, as must be universally striking.
Mrs. Dashwood had never been so much pleased with
any young women in her life, as she was with them;
had given each of them a needle book, made by some
emigrant; called Lucy by her christian name; and did
not know whether she should ever be able to part with
them.
AusSeSe257
Mrs. Palmer was so well at the end of a fortnight, that
her mother felt it no longer necessary to give up the
whole of her time to her; and contenting herself with
visiting her once or twice a day, returned from that period
to her own home, and her own habits, in which she found
the Miss Dashwoods very ready to reassume their former
share.
About the third or fourth morning after their being
thus re-settled in Berkeley-street, Mrs. Jennings, on returning
from her ordinary visit to Mrs. Palmer, entered
the drawing-room, where Elinor was sitting by herself,
with an air of such hurrying importance as prepared her
to hear something wonderful; and giving her time only
to form that idea, began directly to justify it by saying,
"Lord! my dearMiss Dashwood! have you heard
the news!"
"No, ma'am. What is it?"
"Something so strange! But you shall hear it all. --
When I got to Mr. Palmer's, I found Charlotte quite in
a fuss about the child. She was sure it was very ill -- it
cried, and fretted, and was all over pimples. So I looked
at it directly, and, ""Lord! my dear,"" says I, ""it is nothing
in the world but the red-gum;"" and nurse said just
the same. But Charlotte, she would not be satisfied, so
Mr. Donavan was sent for; and luckily he happened to
be just come in from Harley-street, so he stepped over
directly, and as soon as ever he saw the child, he said just
as we did, that it was nothing in the world but the red-gum,
and then Charlotte was easy. And so, just as he
was going away again, it came into my head, I am sure
AusSeSe258
I do not know how I happened to think of it, but it came
into my head to ask him if there was any news. So
upon that, he smirked, and simpered, and looked grave,
and seemed to know something or other, and at last he
said in a whisper,
""For fear any unpleasant report should
reach the young ladies under your care as to their sister's
indisposition, I think it advisable to say, that I believe
there is no great reason for alarm; I hope Mrs. Dashwood
will do very well."""
"What! is Fanny ill?"
"That is exactly what I said, my dear. ""Lord!""
says I, ""is Mrs. Dashwood ill?"" So then it all came out;
and the long and the short of the matter, by all I can
learn, seems to be this. Mr. Edward Ferrars, the very
young man I used to joke with you about (but however,
as it turns out, I am monstrous glad there never was any
thing in it), Mr. Edward Ferrars, it seems, has been
engaged above this twelvemonth to my cousin Lucy! --
There's for you, my dear! -- And not a creature knowing
a syllable of the matter except Nancy! -- Could you have
believed such a thing possible? -- There is no great
wonder in their liking one another; but that matters
should be brought so forward between them, and nobody
suspect it! That is strange! -- I never happened to see them
together, or I am sure I should have found it out directly.
Well, and so this was kept a great secret, for fear of
Mrs. Ferrars, and neither she nor your brother or sister
suspected a word of the matter; -- till this very morning,
poor Nancy, who, you know, is a well-meaning creature,
but no conjurer, popt it all out. ""Lord!"" thinks she to
herself, ""they are all so fond of Lucy, to be sure they will
make no difficulty about it;"" and so, away she went to
your sister, who was sitting all alone at her carpet-work,
little suspecting what was to come -- for she had just been
saying to your brother, only five minutes before, that
she thought to make a match between Edward and some
Lord's daughter or other, I forget who. So you may
think what a blow it was to all her vanity and pride.
AusSeSe259
She fell into violent hysterics immediately, with such
screams as reached your brother's ears, as he was sitting
in his own dressing-room down stairs, thinking about
writing a letter to his steward in the country. So up he
flew directly, and a terrible scene took place, for Lucy was
come to them by that time, little dreaming what was
going on. Poor soul! I pity her. And I must say, I
think she was used very hardly; for your sister scolded
like any fury, and soon drove her into a fainting fit.
Nancy, she fell upon her knees, and cried bitterly; and
your brother, he walked about the room, and said he did
not know what to do. Mrs. Dashwood declared they
should not stay a minute longer in the house, and your
brother was forced to go down upon his knees too, to
persuade her to let them stay till they had packed up
their clothes. Then she fell into hysterics again, and he
was so frightened that he would send for Mr. Donavan,
and Mr. Donavan found the house in all this uproar.
The carriage was at the door ready to take my poor
cousins away, and they were just stepping in as he came
off; poor Lucy in such a condition, he says, she could
hardly walk; and Nancy, she was almost as bad. I
declare, I have no patience with your sister; and I hope,
with all my heart, it will be a match in spite of her.
Lord! what a taking poor Mr. Edward will be in when
he hears of it! To have his love used so scornfully! for
they say he is monstrous fond of her, as well he may.
I should not wonder, if he was to be in the greatest of
a passion! -- and Mr. Donavan thinks just the same. He
and I had a great deal of talk about it; and the best of
all is, that he is gone back again to Harley-street, that
he may be within call when Mrs. Ferrars is told of it, for
she was sent for as soon as ever my cousins left the house,
for your sister was sure she would be in hysterics too;
and so she may, for what I care. I have no pity for either
of them. I have no notion of people's making such
a to-do about money and greatness. There is no reason
on earth why Mr. Edward and Lucy should not marry;
AusSeSe260
for I am sure Mrs. Ferrars may afford to do very well by
her son, and though Lucy has next to nothing herself,
she knows better than any body how to make the most
of every thing; and I dare say, if Mrs. Ferrars would only
allow him five hundred a-year, she would make as good
an appearance with it as any body else would with eight.
Lord! how snug they might live in such another cottage
as yours -- or a little bigger -- with two maids and two
men; and I believe I could help them to a housemaid,
for my Betty has a sister out of place, that would fit
them exactly."
Here Mrs. Jennings ceased, and as Elinor had had
time enough to collect her thoughts, she was able to give
such an answer, and make such observations, as the
subject might naturally be supposed to produce. Happy
to find that she was not suspected of any extraordinary
interest in it; that Mrs. Jennings (as she had of late
often hoped might be the case) had ceased to imagine
her at all attached to Edward; and happy above all the
rest, in the absence of Marianne, she felt very well able
to speak of the affair without embarrassment, and to
give her judgment, as she believed, with impartiality
on the conduct of every one concerned in it.
She could hardly determine what her own expectation
of its event really was; though she earnestly tried to drive
away the notion of its being possible to end otherwise at
last, than in the marriage of Edward and Lucy. what
Mrs. Ferrars would say and do, though there could
not be a doubt of its nature, she was anxious to hear;
and still more anxious to know how Edward would conduct
himself. For him she felt much compassion; -- for
Lucy very little -- and it cost her some pains to procure
that little; -- for the rest of the party none at all.
As Mrs. Jennings could talk on no other subject, Elinor
soon saw the necessity of preparing Marianne for its
discussion. No time was to be lost in undeceiving her,
in making her acquainted with the real truth, and in
endeavouring to bring her to hear it talked of by others,
AusSeSe261
without betraying that she felt any uneasiness for her
sister, or any resentment against Edward.
Elinor's office was a painful one. -- She was going to
remove what she really believed to be her sister's chief
consolation, -- to give such particulars of Edward, as she
feared would ruin him for ever in her good opinion, -- and
to make Marianne, by a resemblance in their situations,
which to her fancy would seem strong, feel all her own
disappointment over again. But unwelcome as such
a task must be, it was necessary to be done, and Elinor
therefore hastened to perform it.
She was very far from wishing to dwell on her own
feelings, or to represent herself as suffering much, any
otherwise than as the self-command she had practised
since her first knowledge of Edward's engagement,
might suggest a hint of what was practicable to Marianne.
Her narration was clear and simple; and though it
could not be given without emotion, it was not accompanied
by violent agitation, nor impetuous grief. -- That
belonged rather to the hearer, for Marianne listened with
horror, and cried excessively. Elinor was to be the
comforter of others in her own distresses, no less than in
theirs; and all the comfort that could be given by
assurances of her own composure of mind, and a very
earnest vindication of Edward from every charge but
of imprudence, was readily offered.
But Marianne for some time would give credit to
neither. Edward seemed a second Willoughby; and
acknowledging as Elinor did, that she had loved him most
sincerely, could she feel less than herself! As for Lucy Steele,
she considered her so totally unamiable, so
absolutely incapable of attaching a sensible man, that
she could not be persuaded at first to believe, and afterwards
to pardon, any former affection of Edward for
her. She would not even admit it to have been natural;
and Elinor left her to be convinced that it was so, by that
which only could convince her, a better knowledge of
mankind.
AusSeSe262
Her first communication had reached no farther than
to state the fact of the engagement, and the length of
time it had existed. -- Marianne's feelings had then broken
in, and put an end to all regularity of detail; and for
some time all that could be done was to sooth her distress,
lessen her alarms, and combat her resentment. The
first question on her side, which led to farther particulars,
was,
"How long has this been known to you, Elinor? has
he written to you?"
"I have known it these four months. When Lucy first
came to Barton-park last November, she told me in
confidence of her engagement."
At these words, Marianne's eyes expressed the
astonishment, which her lips could not utter. After a
pause of wonder, she exclaimed,
"Four months! -- Have you known of this four
months?" --
Elinor confirmed it.
"What! -- while attending me in all my misery, has
this been on your heart? -- and I have reproached you
for being happy!" --
"It was not fit that you should then know how much
I was the reverse!" --
"Four months!" --
cried Marianne again. --
"So calm!
-- so cheerful! -- how have you been supported?" --
"By feeling that I was doing my duty. -- My promise
to Lucy, obliged me to be secret. I owed it to her,
therefore, to avoid giving any hint of the truth; and
I owed it to my family and friends, not to create in them
a solicitude about me, which it could not be in my power
to satisfy."
Marianne seemed much struck. --
"I have very often wished to undeceive yourself and
my mother,"
added Elinor;
"and once or twice I have
attempted it; -- but without betraying my trust, I never
could have convinced you."
"Four months! -- and yet you loved him!" --
AusSeSe263
"Yes. But I did not love only him; -- and while the
comfort of others was dear to me, I was glad to spare
them from knowing how much I felt. Now, I can think
and speak of it with little emotion. I would not have
you suffer on my account; for I assure you I no
longer suffer materially myself. I have many things to
support me. I am not conscious of having provoked the
disappointment by any imprudence of my own, and I
have borne it as much as possible without spreading it
farther. I acquit Edward of all essential misconduct.
I wish him very happy; and I am so sure of his always
doing his duty, that though now he may harbour some
regret, in the end he must become so. Lucy does not
want sense, and that is the foundation on which every thing
good may be built. -- And after all, Marianne, after
all that is bewitching in the idea of a single and constant
attachment, and all that can be said of one's happiness
depending entirely on any particular person, it is not
meant -- it is not fit -- it is not possible that it should be
so. -- Edward will marry Lucy; he will marry a woman
superior in person and understanding to half her sex;
and time and habit will teach him to forget that he ever
thought another superior to her." --
"If such is your way of thinking,"
said Marianne,
"if
the loss of what is most valued is so easily to be made up
by something else, your resolution, your self-command,
are, perhaps, a little less to be wondered at. -- They are
brought more within my comprehension."
"I understand you. -- You do not suppose that I have
ever felt much. -- For four months, Marianne, I have had
all this hanging on my mind, without being at liberty
to speak of it to a single creature; knowing that it would
make you and my mother most unhappy whenever it
were explained to you, yet unable to prepare you for it
in the least. -- It was told me, -- it was in a manner forced
on me by the very person herself, whose prior engagement
ruined all my prospects; and told me, as I thought,
with triumph. -- This person's suspicions, therefore, I
AusSeSe264
have had to oppose, by endeavouring to appear indifferent
where I have been most deeply interested; --
and it has not been only once; -- I have had her hopes
and exultation to listen to again and again. -- I have
known myself to be divided from Edward for ever,
without hearing one circumstance that could make
me less desire the connection. -- Nothing has proved
him unworthy; nor has any thing declared him indifferent
to me. -- I have had to contend against the
unkindness of his sister, and the insolence of his mother;
and have suffered the punishment of an attachment,
without enjoying its advantages. -- And all this has been
going on at a time, when, as you too well know, it has
not been my only unhappiness. -- If you can think me
capable of ever feeling -- surely you may suppose that
I have suffered now. The composure of mind with which
I have brought myself at present to consider the matter,
the consolation that I have been willing to admit, have
been the effect of constant and painful exertion; -- they
did not spring up of themselves; -- they did not occur
to relieve my spirits at first -- No, Marianne. -- Then, if
I had not been bound to silence, perhaps nothing could
have kept me entirely -- not even what I owed to my
dearest friends -- from openly shewing that I was very
unhappy." --
Marianne was quite subdued. --
"Oh! Elinor,"
she cried,
"you have made me hate
myself for ever. -- How barbarous have I been to you!
-- you, who have been my only comfort, who have borne
with me in all my misery, who have seemed to be only
suffering for me! -- Is this my gratitude! -- Is this the only
return I can make you? -- Because your merit cries out
upon myself, I have been trying to do it away."
The tenderest caresses followed this confession. In
such a frame of mind as she was now in, Elinor had no
difficulty in obtaining from her whatever promise she required;
and at her request, Marianne engaged never to
speak of the affair to any one with the least appearance
AusSeSe265
of bitterness; -- to meet Lucy without betraying the
smallest increase of dislike to her; -- and even to see
Edward himself, if chance should bring them together,
without any diminution of her usual cordiality. -- These
were great concessions; -- but where Marianne felt that
she had injured, no reparation could be too much for
her to make.
She performed her promise of being discreet, to
admiration. -- She attended to all thatMrs. Jennings had
to say upon the subject, with an unchanging complexion,
dissented from her in nothing, and was heard three times
to say,
"Yes, ma'am." --
She listened to her praise of Lucy
with only moving from one chair to another, and when
Mrs. Jennings talked of Edward's affection, it cost her only
a spasm in her throat. -- Such advances towards heroism
in her sister, made Elinor feel equal to any thing herself.
The next morning brought a farther trial of it, in a visit
from their brother, who came with a most serious aspect
to talk over the dreadful affair, and bring them news of
his wife.
"You have heard, I suppose,"
said he with great
solemnity, as soon as he was seated,
"of the very
shocking discovery that took place under our roof
yesterday."
They all looked their assent; it seemed too awful
a moment for speech.
"Your sister,"
he continued,
"has suffered dreadfully.
Mrs. Ferrars too -- in short it has been a scene of such
complicated distress -- but I will hope that the storm
may be weathered without our being any of us quite
overcome. Poor Fanny! she was in hysterics all
yesterday. But I would not alarm you too much.
Donavan says there is nothing materially to be apprehended;
her constitution is a good one, and her resolution
equal to any thing. She has borne it all, with the
fortitude of an angel! She says she never shall think
well of anybody again; and one cannot wonder at it,
after being so deceived! -- meeting with such ingratitude,
AusSeSe266
where so much kindness had been shewn, so much
confidence had been placed! It was quite out of the
benevolence of her heart, that she had asked these young
women to her house; merely because she thought they
deserved some attention, were harmless, well-behaved
girls, and would be pleasant companions; for otherwise
we both wished very much to have invited you and
Marianne to be with us, while your kind friend there, was
attending her daughter. And now to be so rewarded!
""I wish with all my heart,""
says poor Fanny in her
affectionate way,
""that we had asked your sisters instead
of them."""
Here he stopped to be thanked; which being done,
he went on.
"What poor Mrs. Ferrars suffered, when first Fanny
broke it to her, is not to be described. While she with
the truest affection had been planning a most eligible
connection for him, was it to be supposed that he could
be all the time secretly engaged to another person! --
such a suspicion could never have entered her head!
If she suspected any prepossession elsewhere, it could
not be in that quarter.
""There, to be sure,""
said she,
""I might have thought myself safe.""
She was quite in
an agony. We consulted together, however, as to what
should be done, and at last she determined to send for
Edward. He came. But I am sorry to relate what
ensued. All thatMrs. Ferrars could say to make him
put an end to the engagement, assisted too as you may
well suppose by my arguments, and Fanny's entreaties,
was of no avail. Duty, affection, every thing was disregarded.
I never thought Edward so stubborn, so
unfeeling before. His mother explained to him her
liberal designs, in case of his marrying Miss Morton;
told him that she would settle on him the Norfolk estate,
which, clear of land-tax, brings in a good thousand a-year;
offered even, when matters grew desperate, to make it
twelve hundred; and in opposition to this, if he still
persisted in this low connection, represented to him the
AusSeSe267
certain penury that must attend the match. His own
two thousand pounds she protested should be his all;
she would never see him again; and so far would she
be from affording him the smallest assistance, that if he
were to enter into any profession with a view of better
support, she would do all in her power to prevent his
advancing in it."
Here Marianne, in an ecstacy of indignation, clapped
her hands together, and cried,
"Gracious God! can
this be possible!"
"Well may you wonder, Marianne,"
replied her
brother,
"at the obstinacy which could resist such
arguments as these. Your exclamation is very natural."
Marianne was going to retort, but she remembered
her promises, and forbore.
"All this, however,"
he continued,
"was urged in
vain. Edward said very little; but what he did say,
was in the most determined manner. Nothing should
prevail on him to give up his engagement. He would
stand to it, cost him what it might."
"Then,"
cried Mrs. Jennings with blunt sincerity,
no longer able to be silent,
"he has acted like an honest
man! I beg your pardon, Mr. Dashwood, but if he had
done otherwise, I should have thought him a rascal.
I have some little concern in the business, as well as yourself,
for Lucy Steele is my cousin, and I believe there
is not a better kind of girl in the world, nor one who
more deserves a good husband."
John Dashwood was greatly astonished; but his
nature was calm, not open to provocation, and he never
wished to offend anybody, especially anybody of good
fortune. He therefore replied, without any resentment,
"I would by no means speak disrespectfully of any
relation of yours, madam. Miss Lucy Steele is, I dare
say, a very deserving young woman, but in the present
case you know, the connection must be impossible. And
to have entered into a secret engagement with a young
man under her uncle's care, the son of a woman especially
AusSeSe268
of such very large fortune as Mrs. Ferrars, is perhaps
altogether a little extraordinary. In short, I do not
mean to reflect upon the behaviour of any person whom
you have a regard for, Mrs. Jennings. We all wish her
extremely happy, and Mrs. Ferrars's conduct throughout
the whole, has been such as every conscientious,
good mother, in like circumstances, would adopt. It
has been dignified and liberal. Edward has drawn his
own lot, and I fear it will be a bad one."
Marianne sighed out her similar apprehension; and
Elinor's heart wrung for the feelings of Edward, while
braving his mother's threats, for a woman who could not
reward him.
"Well, sir,"
said Mrs. Jennings,
"and how did it
end?"
"I am sorry to say, ma'am, in a most unhappy
rupture: -- Edward is dismissed for ever from his
mother's notice. He left her house yesterday, but where
he is gone, or whether he is still in town, I do not know;
for we of course can make no inquiry."
"Poor young man! -- and what is to become of him?"
"What, indeed, ma'am! It is a melancholy consideration.
Born to the prospect of such affluence! I cannot
conceive a situation more deplorable. The interest of
two thousand pounds -- how can a man live on it! -- and
when to that is added the recollection, that he might, but
for his own folly, within three months have been in the
receipt of two thousand, five hundred a-year, (for Miss Morton
has thirty thousand pounds,) I cannot picture
to myself a more wretched condition. We must all feel
for him; and the more so, because it is totally out of our
power to assist him."
"Poor young man!"
cried Mrs. Jennings,
"I am
sure he should be very welcome to bed and board at my
house; and so I would tell him if I could see him. It is
not fit that he should be living about at his own charge
now, at lodgings and taverns."
Elinor's heart thanked her for such kindness towards
AusSeSe269
Edward, though she could not forbear smiling at the
form of it.
"If he would only have done as well by himself,"
said
John Dashwood,
"as all his friends were disposed to do
by him, he might now have been in his proper situation,
and would have wanted for nothing. But as it is, it must
be out of anybody's power to assist him. And there is
one thing more preparing against him, which must be
worse than all -- his mother has determined, with a very
natural kind of spirit, to settle that estate upon Robert
immediately, which might have been Edward's, on
proper conditions. I left her this morning with her
lawyer, talking over the business."
"Well!"
said Mrs. Jennings,
"that is her revenge.
Everybody has a way of their own. But I don't think
mine would be, to make one son independent, because
another had plagued me."
Marianne got up, and walked about the room.
"Can any thing be more galling to the spirit of a man,"
continued John,
"than to see his younger brother in
possession of an estate which might have been his own?
Poor Edward! I feel for him sincerely."
A few minutes more spent in the same kind of effusion,
concluded his visit; and with repeated assurances to
his sisters that
he really believed there was no material
danger in Fanny's indisposition, and that they need not
therefore be very uneasy about it,
he went away; leaving
the three ladies unanimous in their sentiments on the
present occasion, as far at least as it regarded Mrs. Ferrars's
conduct, the Dashwoods' and Edward's.
Marianne's indignation burst forth as soon as he
quitted the room; and as her vehemence made reserve
impossible in Elinor, and unnecessary in Mrs. Jennings,
they all joined in a very spirited critique upon the party.
AusSeSe270
Mrs. Jennings was very warm in her praise of Edward's
conduct, but only Elinor and Marianne understood its
true merit. They only knew how little he had had to
tempt him to be disobedient, and how small was the
consolation, beyond the consciousness of doing right, that
could remain to him in the loss of friends and fortune.
Elinor gloried in his integrity; and Marianne forgave
all his offences in compassion for his punishment. But
though confidence between them was, by this public
discovery, restored to its proper state, it was not a
subject on which either of them were fond of dwelling
when alone. Elinor avoided it upon principle, as tending
to fix still more upon her thoughts, by the too warm,
too positive assurances of Marianne, that belief of
Edward's continued affection for herself which she rather
wished to do away; and Marianne's courage soon failed
her, in trying to converse upon a topic which always
left her more dissatisfied with herself than ever, by the
comparison it necessarily produced between Elinor's
conduct and her own.
She felt all the force of that comparison; but not as
her sister had hoped, to urge her to exertion now; she felt
it with all the pain of continual self-reproach, regretted
most bitterly that she had never exerted herself before;
but it brought only the torture of penitence, without
the hope of amendment. Her mind was so much
weakened that she still fancied present exertion impossible,
and therefore it only dispirited her more.
Nothing new was heard by them, for a day or two
afterwards, of affairs in Harley-street, or Bartlett's Buildings.
But though so much of the matter was
known to them already, that Mrs. Jennings might have
had enough to do in spreading that knowledge farther,
AusSeSe271
without seeking after more, she had resolved from the
first to pay a visit of comfort and inquiry to her cousins
as soon as she could; and nothing but the hindrance of
more visitors than usual, had prevented her going to
them within that time.
The third day succeeding their knowledge of the
particulars, was so fine, so beautiful a Sunday as to draw
many to Kensington Gardens, though it was only the
second week in March. Mrs. Jennings and Elinor were
of the number; but Marianne, who knew that the
Willoughbys were again in town, and had a constant
dread of meeting them, chose rather to stay at home,
than venture into so public a place.
An intimate acquaintance of Mrs. Jennings joined
them soon after they entered the Gardens, and Elinor
was not sorry that by her continuing with them, and
engaging all Mrs. Jennings's conversation, she was herself
left to quiet reflection. She saw nothing of the
Willoughbys, nothing of Edward, and for some time
nothing of anybody who could by any chance whether
grave or gay, be interesting to her. But at last she found
herself with some surprise, accosted by Miss Steele, who,
though looking rather shy, expressed great satisfaction
in meeting them, and on receiving encouragement from
the particular kindness of Mrs. Jennings, left her own
party for a short time, to join their's. Mrs. Jennings
immediately whispered to Elinor.
"Get it all out of her, my dear. She will tell you any thing
if you ask. You see I cannot leave Mrs. Clarke."
It was lucky, however, for Mrs. Jennings's curiosity and
Elinor's too, that she would tell any thing without being
asked, for nothing would otherwise have been learnt.
"I am so glad to meet you;"
said Miss Steele, taking
her familiarly by the arm --
"for I wanted to see you of
all things in the world."
And then lowering her voice,
"I suppose Mrs. Jennings has heard all about it. Is she
angry?"
"Not at all, I believe, with you."
AusSeSe272
"That is a good thing. And Lady Middleton, is she
angry?"
"I cannot suppose it possible that she should."
"I am monstrous glad of it. Good gracious! I have
had such a time of it! I never saw Lucy in such a rage
in my life. She vowed at first she would never trim me
up a new bonnet, nor do any thing else for me again, so
long as she lived; but now she is quite come to, and we
are as good friends as ever. Look, she made me this
bow to my hat, and put in the feather last night. There
now, you are going to laugh at me too. But why should
not I wear pink ribbons? I do not care if it is the
Doctor's favourite colour. I am sure, for my part, I
should never have known he did like it better than any
other colour, if he had not happened to say so. My
cousins have been so plaguing me! -- I declare sometimes
I do not know which way to look before them."
She had wandered away to a subject on whichElinor
had nothing to say, and therefore soon judged it expedient
to find her way back again to the first.
"Well, but Miss Dashwood,"
speaking triumphantly,
"people may say what they chuse about Mr. Ferrars's
declaring he would not have Lucy, for it's no such a
thing I can tell you; and it's quite a shame for such
ill-natured reports to be spread abroad. Whatever Lucy
might think about it herself, you know, it was no business
of other people to set it down for certain."
"I never heard anything of the kind hinted at before,
I assure you,"
said Elinor.
"Oh! did not you? But it was said, I know, very
well, and by more than one; for Miss Godby told Miss Sparks,
that nobody in their senses could expect Mr. Ferrars
to give up a woman like Miss Morton, with
thirty thousand pounds to her fortune, for Lucy Steele
that had nothing at all; and I had it from Miss Sparks
myself. And besides that, my cousin Richard said
himself, that when it came to the point, he was afraid
Mr. Ferrars would be off; and when Edward did not
AusSeSe273
come near us for three days, I could not tell what to
think myself; and I believe in my heart Lucy gave it
all up for lost; for we came away from your brother's on
Wednesday, and we saw nothing of him not all Thursday,
Friday, and Saturday, and did not know what was
become with him. Once Lucy thought to write to him,
but then her spirit rose against that. However this
morning he came just as we came home from church;
and then it all came out, how he had been sent for
Wednesday to Harley-street, and been talked to by
his mother and all of them, and how he had declared
before them all that he loved nobody but Lucy, and
nobody but Lucy would he have. And how he had been
so worried by what passed, that as soon as he had went
away from his mother's house, he had got upon his
horse, and rid into the country some where or other;
and how he had staid about at an inn all Thursday and
Friday, on purpose to get the better of it. And after
thinking it all over and over again, he said, it seemed to
him as if, now he had no fortune, and no nothing at all,
it would be quite unkind to keep her on to the engagement,
because it must be for her loss, for he had nothing
but two thousand pounds, and no hope of any thing
else; and if he was to go into orders, as he had some
thoughts, he could get nothing but a curacy, and how
was they to live upon that? -- He could not bear to think
of her doing no better, and so he begged, if she had the
least mind for it, to put an end to the matter directly,
and leave him to shift for himself. I heard him say all
this as plain as could possibly be. And it was entirely
for her sake, and upon her account, that he said a word
about being off, and not upon his own. I will take my
oath he never dropt a syllable of being tired of her, or
of wishing to marry Miss Morton, or anything like it.
But, to be sure, Lucy would not give ear to such kind of
talking; so she told him directly (with a great deal about
sweet and love, you know, and all that -- Oh, la! one
can't repeat such kind of things you know) -- she told
AusSeSe274
him directly, she had not the least mind in the world to
be off, for she could live with him upon a trifle, and how
little so ever he might have, she should be very glad to
have it all, you know, or something of the kind. So then
he was monstrous happy, and talked on some time about
what they should do, and they agreed he should take
orders directly, and they must wait to be married till he
got a living. And just then I could not hear any more,
for my cousin called from below to tell me Mrs. Richardson
was come in her coach, and would take one of us to
Kensington Gardens; so I was forced to go into the
room and interrupt them, to ask Lucy if she would like
to go, but she did not care to leave Edward; so I just
run up stairs and put on a pair of silk stockings, and came
off with the Richardsons."
"I do not understand what you mean by interrupting
them"
said Elinor;
"you were all in the same room
together, were not you?"
"No, indeed, not us. La! Miss Dashwood, do you
think people make love when any body else is by? Oh
for shame! -- To be sure you must know better than that.
(Laughing affectedly.) --
No, no; they were shut up in
the drawing-room together, and all I heard was only
by listening at the door."
"How!"
cried Elinor;
"have you been repeating
to me what you only learnt yourself by listening at the
door? I am sorry I did not know it before; for I certainly
would not have suffered you to give me particulars
of a conversation which you ought not to have known
yourself. How could you behave so unfairly by your
sister?"
"Oh, la! there is nothing in that. I only stood at the
door, and heard what I could. And I am sure Lucy
would have done just the same by me; for a year or two
back, when Martha Sharpe and I had so many secrets
together, she never made any bones of hiding in a closet,
or behind a chimney-board, on purpose to hear what we
said."
AusSeSe275
Elinor tried to talk of something else; but Miss Steele
could not be kept beyond a couple of minutes, from what
was uppermost in her mind.
"Edward talks of going to Oxford soon,"
said she,
"but now he is lodging at No. @@, Pall Mall. What an
ill-natured woman his mother is, an't she? And your
brother and sister were not very kind! However,
I shan't say anything against them to you; and to be
sure they did send us home in their own chariot, which
was more than I looked for. And for my part, I was all
in a fright for fear your sister should ask us for the huswifes
she had gave us a day or two before; but however,
nothing was said about them, and I took care to keep
mine out of sight. Edward have got some business at
Oxford, he says; so he must go there for a time; and
after that, as soon as he can light upon a Bishop, he will
be ordained. I wonder what curacy he will get! -- Good
gracious!
(giggling as she spoke)
I'd lay my life I know
what my cousins will say, when they hear of it. They
will tell me I should write to the Doctor, to get Edward
the curacy of his new living. I know they will; but I
am sure I would not do such a thing for all the world. --
""La!"" I shall say directly, ""I wonder how you could
think of such a thing. I write to the Doctor, indeed!"""
"Well,"
said Elinor,
"it is a comfort to be prepared
against the worst. You have got your answer ready."
Miss Steele was going to reply on the same subject,
but the approach of her own party made another more
necessary.
"Oh, la! here come the Richardsons. I had a vast
deal more to say to you, but I must not stay away from
them not any longer. I assure you they are very genteel
people. He makes a monstrous deal of money, and
they keep their own coach. I have not time to speak to
Mrs. Jennings about it myself, but pray tell her I am
quite happy to hear she is not in anger against us, and
Lady Middleton the same; and if any thing should
happen to take you and your sister away, and Mrs. Jennings
AusSeSe276
should want company, I am sure we should be
very glad to come and stay with her for as long a time
as she likes. I suppose Lady Middleton won't ask us
any more this bout. Good bye; I am sorry Miss Marianne
was not here. Remember me kindly to her.
La! if you have not got your spotted muslin on! -- I
wonder you was not afraid of its being torn."
Such was her parting concern; for after this, she had
time only to pay her farewell compliments to Mrs. Jennings,
before her company was claimed by Mrs. Richardson;
and Elinor was left in possession of knowledge
which might feed her powers of reflection some
time, though she had learnt very little more than what
had been already foreseen and foreplanned in her own
mind. Edward's marriage with Lucy was as firmly
determined on, and the time of its taking place remained
as absolutely uncertain, as she had concluded it would
be; -- every thing depended, exactly after her expectation,
on his getting that preferment, of which, at present,
there seemed not the smallest chance.
As soon as they returned to the carriage, Mrs. Jennings
was eager for information; but as Elinor wished to
spread as little as possible intelligence that had in the
first place been so unfairly obtained, she confined herself
to the brief repetition of such simple particulars, as she
felt assured that Lucy, for the sake of her own consequence,
would chuse to have known. The continuance
of their engagement, and the means that were to be taken
for promoting its end, was all her communication; and
this produced from Mrs. Jennings the following natural
remark.
"Wait for his having a living! -- aye, we all know
how that will end; -- they will wait a twelvemonth, and
finding no good comes of it, will set down upon a curacy
of fifty pounds a-year, with the interest of his two
thousand pounds, and what little matter Mr. Steele and
Mr. Pratt can give her. -- Then they will have a child
every year! and Lord help 'em! how poor they will be!
AusSeSe277
-- I must see what I can give them towards furnishing
their house. Two maids and two men indeed! -- as I
talked of t'other day. -- No, no, they must get a stout
girl of all works. -- Betty's sister would never do for
them now."
The next morning brought Elinor a letter by the
two-penny post from Lucy herself. It was as follows:
Bartlett's Buildings, March.
I hope my dearMiss Dashwood will excuse the liberty
I take of writing to her; but I know your friendship for
me will make you pleased to hear such a good account
of myself and my dearEdward, after all the troubles
we have went through lately, therefore will make no
more apologies, but proceed to say that, thank God!
though we have suffered dreadfully, we are both quite
well now, and as happy as we must always be in one
another's love. We have had great trials, and great
persecutions, but however, at the same time, gratefully
acknowledge many friends, yourself not the least among
them, whose great kindness I shall always thankfully
remember, as will Edward too, who I have told of it.
I am sure you will be glad to hear, as likewise dearMrs. Jennings,
I spent two happy hours with him yesterday
afternoon, he would not hear of our parting, though
earnestly did I, as I thought my duty required, urge him
to it for prudence sake, and would have parted for ever
on the spot, would he consent to it; but he said it should
never be, he did not regard his mother's anger, while he
could have my affections; our prospects are not very
bright, to be sure, but we must wait, and hope for the
best; he will be ordained shortly, and should it ever be
in your power to recommend him to any body that has
a living to bestow, am very sure you will not forget us,
and dearMrs. Jennings too, trust she will speak a good
word for us to Sir John, or Mr. Palmer, or any friend that
may be able to assist us. -- Poor Anne was much to blame
for what she did, but she did it for the best, so I say
AusSeSe278
nothing; hope Mrs. Jennings won't think it too much
trouble to give us a call, should she come this way any
morning, 'twould be a great kindness, and my cousins
would be proud to know her. -- My paper reminds me to
conclude, and begging to be most gratefully and respectfully
remembered to her, and to Sir John, and Lady Middleton,
and the dear children, when you chance to
see them, and love to Miss Marianne,
I am, &c. &c.
As soon as Elinor had finished it, she performed what
she concluded to be its writer's real design, by placing it
in the hands of Mrs. Jennings, who read it aloud with
many comments of satisfaction and praise.
"Very well indeed! -- how prettily she writes! -- aye,
that was quite proper to let him be off if he would. That
was just like Lucy. -- Poor soul! I wish I could get him a
living with all my heart. -- She calls me dearMrs. Jennings,
you see. She is a good-hearted girl as ever lived. -- Very
well upon my word. That sentence is very prettily
turned. Yes, yes, I will go and see her, sure enough.
How attentive she is, to think of every body! -- Thank
you, my dear, for shewing it me. It is a pretty a letter
as ever I saw, and does Lucy's head and heart great
credit."
AusSeSe279
The Miss Dashwoods had now been rather more than
two months in town, and Marianne's impatience to be
gone increased every day. She sighed for the air, the
liberty, the quiet of the country; and fancied that if any
place could give her ease, Barton must do it. Elinor was
hardly less anxious than herself for their removal, and
only so much less bent on its being effected immediately,
as that she was conscious of the difficulties of so long
a journey, whichMarianne could not be brought to
acknowledge. She began, however, seriously to turn her
thoughts towards its accomplishment, and had already
mentioned their wishes to their kind hostess, who resisted
them with all the eloquence of her good-will, when a plan
was suggested, which, though detaining them from home
yet a few weeks longer, appeared to Elinor altogether
much more eligible than any other. The Palmers were
to remove to Cleveland about the end of March, for the
Easter holidays; and Mrs. Jennings, with both her
friends, received a very warm invitation from Charlotte
to go with them. This would not, in itself, have been
sufficient for the delicacy of Miss Dashwood; -- but it
was inforced with so much real politeness by Mr. Palmer
himself, as, joined to the very great amendment of
his manners towards them since her sister had been
known to be unhappy, induced her to accept it with
pleasure.
When she told Marianne what she had done, however,
her first reply was not very auspicious.
"Cleveland!" --
she cried, with great agitation.
"No,
I cannot go to Cleveland." --
"You forget,"
said Elinor, gently,
"that its situation
is not---- that it is not in the neighbourhood of----"
"But it is in Somersetshire. -- I cannot go into Somersetshire. --
AusSeSe280
There, where I looked forward to going----
No, Elinor, you cannot expect me to go there."
Elinor would not argue upon the propriety of overcoming
such feelings; -- she only endeavoured to counteract
them by working on others; -- and represented it,
therefore, as a measure which would fix the time of
her returning to that dear mother, whom she so much
wished to see, in a more eligible, more comfortable
manner, than any other plan could do, and perhaps
without any greater delay. From Cleveland, which was
within a few miles of Bristol, the distance to Barton was
not beyond one day, though a long day's journey; and
their mother's servant might easily come there to attend
them down; and as there could be no occasion for their
staying above a week at Cleveland, they might now
be at home in little more than three weeks' time. As
Marianne's affection for her mother was sincere, it must
triumph, with little difficulty, over the imaginary evil
she had started.
Mrs. Jennings was so far from being weary of her
guests, that she pressed them very earnestly to return
with her again from Cleveland. Elinor was grateful for
the attention, but it could not alter their design; and
their mother's concurrence being readily gained, every thing
relative to their return was arranged as far as it
could be; -- and Marianne found some relief in drawing
up a statement of the hours, that were yet to divide her
from Barton.
"Ah! Colonel, I do not know what you and I shall
do without the Miss Dashwoods;" --
was Mrs. Jennings's
address to him when he first called on her, after their
leaving her was settled --
"for they are quite resolved
upon going home from the Palmers; -- and how forlorn
we shall be, when I come back! -- Lord! we shall sit and
gape at one another as dull as two cats."
Perhaps Mrs. Jennings was in hopes, by this vigorous
sketch of their future ennui, to provoke him to make
that offer, which might give himself an escape from it; --
AusSeSe281
and if so, she had soon afterwards good reason to think
her object gained; for, on Elinor's moving to the window
to take more expeditiously the dimensions of a print,
which she was going to copy for her friend, he followed
her to it with a look of particular meaning, and conversed
with her there for several minutes. The effect of his
discourse on the lady too, could not escape her observation,
for though she was too honourable to listen, and
had even changed her seat, on purpose that she might
not hear, to one close by the piano forte=on which
Marianne was playing, she could not keep herself from
seeing that Elinor changed colour, attended with agitation,
and was too intent on what he said, to pursue her
employment. Still farther in confirmation of her hopes,
in the interval of Marianne's turning from one lesson to
another, some words of the Colonel's inevitably reached
her ear, in which he seemed to be apologizing for the
badness of his house.
This set the matter beyond a doubt.
She wondered indeed at his thinking it necessary to do
so; -- but supposed it to be the proper etiquette. What
Elinor said in reply she could not distinguish, but judged
from the motion of her lips that she did not think that
any material objection; -- and Mrs. Jennings commended
her in her heart for being so honest. They then talked
on for a few minutes longer without her catching a
syllable, when another lucky stop in Marianne's performance
brought her these words in the Colonel's calm
voice,
"I am afraid it cannot take place very soon."
Astonished and shocked at so unlover-like a speech,
she was almost ready to cry out,
"Lord! what should
hinder it?" --
but checking her desire, confined herself
to this silent ejaculation.
"This is very strange! -- sure he need not wait to be
older." --
This delay on the Colonel's side, however, did not seem
to offend or mortify his fair companion in the least, for
on their breaking up the conference soon afterwards,
AusSeSe282
and moving different ways, Mrs. Jennings very plainly
heard Elinor say, and with a voice which shewed her to
feel what she said,
"I shall always think myself very much obliged to
you."
Mrs. Jennings was delighted with her gratitude, and
only wondered, that after hearing such a sentence, the
Colonel should be able to take leave of them, as he
immediately did, with the utmost sang-froid, and go
away without making her any reply! -- She had not
thought her old friend could have made so indifferent a
suitor.
What had really passed between them was to this
effect.
"I have heard,"
said he, with great compassion,
"of
the injustice your friend Mr. Ferrars has suffered from
his family; for if I understand the matter right, he has
been entirely cast off by them for persevering in his
engagement with a very deserving young woman --
Have I been rightly informed? -- Is it so?" --
Elinor told him that it was.
"The cruelty, the impolitic cruelty," --
he replied, with
great feeling --
"of dividing, or attempting to divide,
two young people long attached to each other, is terrible
-- Mrs. Ferrars does not know what she may be doing --
what she may drive her son to. I have seen Mr. Ferrars
two or three times in Harley-street, and am much pleased
with him. He is not a young man with whom one can
be intimately acquainted in a short time, but I have
seen enough of him to wish him well for his own sake,
and as a friend of yours, I wish it still more. I understand
that he intends to take orders. Will you be so
good as to tell him that the living of Delaford, now just
vacant, as I am informed by this day's post, is his, if he
think it worth his acceptance -- but that, perhaps, so
unfortunately circumstanced as he is now, it may be
nonsense to appear to doubt; I only wish it were more
valuable. -- It is a rectory, but a small one; the late
AusSeSe283
incumbent, I believe, did not make more than 200l. per annum,
and though it is certainly capable of improvement,
I fear, not to such an amount as to afford him
a very comfortable income. Such as it is, however, my
pleasure in presenting him to it, will be very great.
Pray assure him of it."
Elinor's astonishment at this commission could hardly
have been greater, had the Colonel been really making
her an offer of his hand. The preferment, which only two
days before she had considered as hopeless for Edward,
was already provided to enable him to marry; --
and
she, of all people in the world, as fixed on to bestow
it! --
Her emotion was such as Mrs. Jennings had attributed
to a very different cause; -- but whatever minor
feelings less pure, less pleasing, might have a share in
that emotion, her esteem for the general benevolence,
and her gratitude for the particular friendship, which
together prompted Colonel Brandon to this act, were
strongly felt, and warmly expressed. She thanked him
for it with all her heart, spoke of Edward's principles
and disposition with that praise which she knew them
to deserve; and promised to undertake the commission
with pleasure, if it were really his wish to put off so
agreeable an office to another. But at the same time,
she could not help thinking that no one could so well
perform it as himself. It was an office in short, from
which, unwilling to give Edward the pain of receiving
an obligation from her, she would have been very glad
to be spared herself; -- but Colonel Brandon, on motives
of equal delicacy, declining it likewise, still seemed so
desirous of its being given through her means, that she
would not on any account make farther opposition.
Edward, she believed, was still in town, and fortunately
she had heard his address from Miss Steele. She could
undertake therefore to inform him of it, in the course of
the day. After this had been settled, Colonel Brandon
began to talk of his own advantage in securing so
respectable and agreeable a neighbour, and then it was
AusSeSe284
that he mentioned with regret, that the house was small
and indifferent; -- an evil whichElinor, as Mrs. Jennings
had supposed her to do, made very light of, at least as
far as regarded its size.
"The smallness of the house,"
said she,
"I cannot
imagine any inconvenience to them, for it will be in
proportion to their family and income."
By which the Colonel was surprised to find that she
was considering Mr. Ferrars's marriage as the certain
consequence of the presentation; for he did not suppose
it possible that Delaford living could supply such an
income, as any body in his style of life would venture to
settle on -- and he said so.
"This little rectory can do no more than make Mr. Ferrars
comfortable as a bachelor; it cannot enable him
to marry. I am sorry to say that my patronage ends
with this; and my interest is hardly more extensive.
If, however, by any unforeseen chance it should be in
my power to serve him farther, I must think very
differently of him from what I now do, if I am not as
ready to be useful to him then, as I sincerely wish I
could be at present. What I am now doing indeed,
seems nothing at all, since it can advance him so little
towards what must be his principal, his only object of
happiness. His marriage must still be a distant good; --
at least, I am afraid it cannot take place very soon. --"
Such was the sentence which, when misunderstood,
so justly offended the delicate feelings of Mrs. Jennings;
but after this narration of what really passed between
Colonel Brandon and Elinor, while they stood at the
window, the gratitude expressed by the latter on their
parting, may perhaps appear in general, not less
reasonably excited, nor less properly worded than if it
had arisen from an offer of marriage.
AusSeSe285
"Well, Miss Dashwood,"
said Mrs. Jennings, sagaciously
smiling, as soon as the gentleman had withdrawn,
"I do not ask you what the Colonel has been saying
to you; for though, upon my honour, I tried to keep out
of hearing, I could not help catching enough to understand
his business. And I assure you I never was better
pleased in my life, and I wish you joy of it with all my
heart."
"Thank you, ma'am,"
said Elinor.
"It is a matter
of great joy to me; and I feel the goodness of Colonel Brandon
most sensibly. There are not many men who
would act as he has done. Few people who have so compassionate
an heart! I never was more astonished in my
life."
"Lord! my dear, you are very modest! I an't the
least astonished at it in the world, for I have often
thought of late, there was nothing more likely to
happen."
"You judged from your knowledge of the Colonel's
general benevolence; but at least you could not foresee
that the opportunity would so very soon occur."
"Opportunity!"
repeated Mrs. Jennings --
"Oh! as
to that, when a man has once made up his mind to
such a thing, somehow or other he will soon find an
opportunity. Well, my dear, I wish you joy of it again
and again; and if ever there was a happy couple in the
world, I think I shall soon know where to look for
them."
"You mean to go to Delaford after them I suppose,"
said Elinor, with a faint smile.
"Aye, my dear, that I do, indeed. And as to the
house being a bad one, I do not know what the Colonel
would be at, for it is a good a one as ever I saw."
AusSeSe286
"He spoke of its being out of repair."
"Well, and whose fault is that? why don't he
repair it? -- who should do it but himself?"
They were interrupted by the servant's coming in
to announce the carriage being at the door; and Mrs. Jennings
immediately preparing to go, said --
"Well, my dear, I must be gone before I have had
half my talk out. But, however, we may have it all
over in the evening, for we shall be quite alone. I do
not ask you to go with me, for I dare say your mind is
too full of the matter to care for company; and besides,
you must long to tell your sister all about it."
Marianne had left the room before the conversation
began.
"Certainly, ma'am, I shall tell Marianne of it; but
I shall not mention it at present to any body else."
"Oh! very well,"
said Mrs. Jennings rather disappointed.
"Then you would not have me tell it Lucy,
for I think of going as far as Holborn to-day."
"No, ma'am, not even Lucy if you please. One day's
delay will not be very material; and till I have written
to Mr. Ferrars, I think it ought not to be mentioned to
any body else. I shall do that directly. It is of importance
that no time should be lost with him, for he will
of course have much to do relative to his ordination."
This speech at first puzzled Mrs. Jennings exceedingly.
Why Mr. Ferrars was to be written to about it in such
a hurry, she could not immediately comprehend. A few
moments' reflection, however, produced a very happy
idea, and she exclaimed; --
"Oh ho! -- I understand you. Mr. Ferrars is to be
the man. Well, so much the better for him. Aye, to be
sure, he must be ordained in readiness; and I am very
glad to find things are so forward between you. But, my
dear, is not this rather out of character? Should not
the Colonel write himself? -- sure, he is the proper
person."
Elinor did not quite understand the beginning of Mrs. Jennings's
AusSeSe287
speech; neither did she think it worth
inquiring into; and therefore only replied to its conclusion.
"Colonel Brandon is so delicate a man, that he rather
wished any one to announce his intentions to Mr. Ferrars
than himself."
"And so you are forced to do it. Well, that is an odd
kind of delicacy! However, I will not disturb you
(seeing
her preparing to write.)
You know your own concerns
best. So good bye, my dear. I have not heard of any thing
to please me so well since Charlotte was brought
to bed."
And away she went; but returning again in a moment,
"I have just been thinking of Betty's sister, my dear.
I should be very glad to get her so good a mistress. But
whether she would do for a lady's maid, I am sure I can't
tell. She is an excellent housemaid, and works very
well at her needle. However, you will think of all that at
your leisure."
"Certainly, ma'am,"
replied Elinor, not hearing
much of what she said, and more anxious to be alone,
than to be mistress of the subject.
How she should begin -- how she should express herself
in her note to Edward, was now all her concern. The
particular circumstances between them made a difficulty
of that which to any other person would have been the
easiest thing in the world;
but she equally feared to say
too much or too little, and sat deliberating over her
paper, with the pen in her hand, till broken in on by the
entrance of Edward himself.
He had met Mrs. Jennings at the door in her way to
the carriage, as he came to leave his farewell card; and
she, after apologising for not returning herself, had
obliged him to enter, by saying that Miss Dashwood was
above, and wanted to speak with him on very particular
business.
Elinor had just been congratulating herself, in the
midst of her perplexity, that
however difficult it might
AusSeSe288
be to express herself properly by letter, it was at least
preferable to giving the information by word of mouth,
when her visitor entered, to force her upon this greatest
exertion of all. Her astonishment and confusion were
very great on his so sudden appearance. She had not
seen him before since his engagement became public,
and therefore not since his knowing her to be acquainted
with it; which, with the consciousness of what she had
been thinking of, and what she had to tell him, made her
feel particularly uncomfortable for some minutes. He
too was much distressed, and they sat down together
in a most promising state of embarrassment. -- Whether
he had asked her pardon for his intrusion on first coming
into the room, he could not recollect; but determining
to be on the safe side, he made his apology in form as
soon as he could say any thing, after taking a chair.
"Mrs. Jennings told me,"
said he,
"that you wished
to speak to me, at least I understood her so -- or I
certainly should not have intruded on you in such
a manner; though at the same time, I should have been
extremely sorry to leave London without seeing you and
your sister; especially as it will most likely be some
time -- it is not probable that I should soon have the
pleasure of meeting you again. I go to Oxford to-morrow."
"You would not have gone, however,"
said Elinor,
recovering herself, and determined to get over what she
so much dreaded as soon as possible,
"without receiving
our good wishes, even if we had not been able to give
them in person. Mrs. Jennings was quite right in what
she said. I have something of consequence to inform you
of, which I was on the point of communicating by paper.
I am charged with a most agreeable office,
(breathing
rather faster than usual as she spoke.)
Colonel Brandon,
who was here only ten minutes ago, has desired me to
say that, understanding you mean to take orders, he
has great pleasure in offering you the living of Delaford,
now just vacant, and only wishes it were more valuable.
AusSeSe289
Allow me to congratulate you on having so respectable
and well-judging a friend, and to join in his wish that
the living -- it is about two hundred a-year -- were much
more considerable, and such as might better enable you
to -- as might be more than a temporary accommodation
to yourself -- such, in short, as might establish all your
views of happiness."
WhatEdward felt, as he could not say it himself, it
cannot be expected that any one else should say for him.
He looked all the astonishment which such unexpected,
such unthought-of information could not fail of exciting;
but he said only these two words,
"Colonel Brandon!"
"Yes,"
continued Elinor, gathering more resolution,
as some of the worst was over;
"Colonel Brandon
means it as a testimony of his concern for what has lately
passed -- for the cruel situation in which the unjustifiable
conduct of your family has placed you -- a concern which
I am sure Marianne, myself, and all your friends must
share; and likewise as a proof of his high esteem for
your general character, and his particular approbation
of your behaviour on the present occasion."
"Colonel Brandon give me a living! -- Can it be
possible?"
"The unkindness of your own relations has made you
astonished to find friendship any where."
"No,"
replied he, with sudden consciousness,
"not
to find it in you; for I cannot be ignorant that to you,
to your goodness I owe it all -- I feel it -- I would express
it if I could -- but, as you well know, I am no orator."
"You are very much mistaken. I do assure you that
you owe it entirely, at least almost entirely, to your own
merit, and Colonel Brandon's discernment of it. I have
had no hand in it. I did not even know, till I understood
his design, that the living was vacant; nor had
it ever occurred to me that he might have had such a
living in his gift. As a friend of mine, of my family, he
may perhaps -- indeed I know he has, still greater pleasure
AusSeSe290
in bestowing it; but, upon my word, you owe nothing
to my solicitation."
Truth obliged her to acknowledge some small share
in the action, but she was at the same time so unwilling
to appear as the benefactress of Edward, that she
acknowledged it with hesitation; which probably contributed
to fix that suspicion in his mind which had
recently entered it. For a short time he sat deep in
thought, after Elinor had ceased to speak; -- at last, and
as if it were rather an effort, he said,
"Colonel Brandon seems a man of great worth and
respectability. I have always heard him spoken of as
such, and your brother I know esteems him highly.
He is undoubtedly a sensible man, and in his manners
perfectly the gentleman."
"Indeed,"
replied Elinor,
"I believe that you will
find him, on farther acquaintance, all that you have heard
him to be; and as you will be such very near neighbours,
(for I understand the parsonage is almost close to the
mansion-house,) it is particularly important that he
should be all this."
Edward made no answer; but when she had turned
away her head, gave her a look so serious, so earnest, so
uncheerful, as seemed to say, that he might hereafter
wish the distance between the parsonage and the mansion-house
much greater.
"Colonel Brandon, I think, lodges in St. James's-street,"
said he, soon afterwards, rising from his chair.
Elinor told him the number of the house.
"I must hurry away then, to give him those thanks
which you will not allow me to give you; to assure him
that he has made me a very -- an exceedingly happy man."
Elinor did not offer to detain him; and they parted,
with a very earnest assurance on her side of her unceasing
good wishes for his happiness in every change of situation
that might befal him; on his, with rather an attempt
to return the same good will, than the power of expressing
it.
AusSeSe291
"When I see him again,"
said Elinor to herself, as the
door shut him out,
"I shall see him the husband of Lucy."
And with this pleasing anticipation, she sat down to
re-consider the past, recal the words and endeavour to
comprehend all the feelings of Edward; and, of course,
to reflect on her own with discontent.
When Mrs. Jennings came home, though she returned
from seeing people whom she had never seen before, and
of whom therefore she must have a great deal to say,
her mind was so much more occupied by the important
secret in her possession, than by anything else, that she
reverted to it again as soon as Elinor appeared.
"Well, my dear,"
she cried,
"I sent you up the young
man. Did not I do right? -- And I suppose you had no
great difficulty -- You did not find him very unwilling to
accept your proposal?"
"No, ma'am; that was not very likely."
"Well, and how soon will he be ready? -- For it seems
all to depend upon that."
"Really,"
said Elinor,
"I know so little of these kind
of forms, that I can hardly even conjecture as to the
time, or the preparation necessary; but I suppose two
or three months will complete his ordination."
"Two or three months!"
cried Mrs. Jennings;
"Lord! my dear, how calmly you talk of it; and can
the Colonel wait two or three months! Lord bless me! --
I am sure it would put me quite out of patience! -- And
though one would be very glad to do a kindness by poor
Mr. Ferrars, I do think it is not worth while to wait two
or three months for him. Sure, somebody else might
be found that would do as well; somebody that is in
orders already."
"My dear ma'am,"
said Elinor,
"what can you be
thinking of? -- Why, Colonel Brandon's only object is to
be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
"Lord bless you, my dear! -- Sure you do not mean
to persuade me that the Colonel only marries you for
the sake of giving ten guineas to Mr. Ferrars!"
AusSeSe292
The deception could not continue after this; and
an explanation immediately took place, by which both
gained considerable amusement for the moment, without
any material loss of happiness to either, for Mrs. Jennings
only exchanged one form of delight for another, and still
without forfeiting her expectation of the first.
"Aye, aye, the parsonage is but a small one,"
said
she, after the first ebullition of surprise and satisfaction
was over,
"and very likely may be out of repair; but
to hear a man apologising, as I thought, for a house that
to my knowledge has five sitting rooms on the ground-floor,
and I think the housekeeper told me, could make
up fifteen beds! -- and to you too, that had been used to
live in Barton cottage! -- It seemed quite ridiculous.
But, my dear, we must touch up the Colonel to do something
to the parsonage, and make it comfortable for
them, before Lucy goes to it."
"But Colonel Brandon does not seem to have any
idea of the living's being enough to allow them to marry."
"The Colonel is a ninny, my dear; because he has two
thousand a-year himself, he thinks that nobody else can
marry on less. Take my word for it, that, if I am alive,
I shall be paying a visit at Delaford Parsonage before
Michaelmas; and I am sure I sha'nt go if Lucy an't
there."
Elinor was quite of her opinion, as to the probability
of their not waiting for any thing more.
AusSeSe293
Edward, having carried his thanks to Colonel Brandon,
proceeded with his happiness to Lucy; and such was the
excess of it by the time he reached Bartlett's Buildings,
that she was able to assure Mrs. Jennings, who called on
her again the next day with her congratulations, that
she had never seen him in such spirits before in her
life.
Her own happiness, and her own spirits, were at least
very certain; and she joined Mrs. Jennings most
heartily in her expectation of their being all comfortably
together in Delaford Parsonage before Michaelmas. So
far was she, at the same time, from any backwardness
to give Elinor that credit whichEdward would give
her, that she spoke of her friendship for them both
with the most grateful warmth, was ready to own all
their obligation to her, and openly declared that
no
exertion for their good on Miss Dashwood's part, either
present or future, would ever surprise her, for she believed
her capable of doing anything in the world for those she
really valued.
As for Colonel Brandon, she was not only
ready to worship him as a saint, but was moreover truly
anxious that he should be treated as one in all worldly
concerns; anxious that his tythes should be raised to the
utmost; and secretly resolved to avail herself, at Delaford,
as far as she possibly could, of his servants, his
carriage, his cows, and his poultry.
It was now above a week since John Dashwood had
called in Berkeley-street, and as since that time no notice
had been taken by them of his wife's indisposition, beyond
one verbal inquiry, Elinor began to feel it necessary to
pay her a visit. -- This was an obligation, however, which
not only opposed her own inclination, but which had not
the assistance of any encouragement from her companions.
AusSeSe294
Marianne, not contented with absolutely
refusing to go herself, was very urgent to prevent her
sister's going at all; and Mrs. Jennings, though her
carriage was always at Elinor's service, so very much
disliked Mrs. John Dashwood, that not even her curiosity
to see how she looked after the late discovery, nor her
strong desire to affront her by taking Edward's part,
could overcome her unwillingness to be in her company
again. The consequence was, that Elinor set out by
herself to pay a visit, for which no one could really have
less inclination, and to run the risk of a te--te-a`-te--te with
a woman, whom neither of the others had so much reason
to dislike.
Mrs. Dashwood was denied; but before the carriage
could turn from the house, her husband accidentally
came out. He expressed great pleasure in meeting
Elinor, told her that he had been just going to call in
Berkeley-street, and assuring her that Fanny would
be very glad to see her, invited her to come in.
They walked up stairs into the drawing-room. -- Nobody
was there.
"Fanny is in her own room, I suppose,"
said he; --
"I will go to her presently, for I am sure she will not have
the least objection in the world to seeing you. -- Very
far from it indeed. Now especially there cannot be --
but however, you and Marianne were always great
favourites. -- Why would not Marianne come?" --
Elinor made what excuse she could for her.
"I am not sorry to see you alone,"
he replied,
"for I have a good deal to say to you. This living
of Colonel Brandon's -- can it be true? -- has he really
given it to Edward? -- I heard it yesterday by chance,
and was coming to you on purpose to inquire farther
about it."
"It is perfectly true. -- Colonel Brandon has given
the living of Delaford to Edward."
"Really! -- Well, this is very astonishing! -- no relationship! --
no connection between then! -- and now that
AusSeSe295
livings fetch such a price! -- what was the value of
this?"
"About two hundred a-year."
"Very well -- and for the next presentation to a living
of that value -- supposing the late incumbent to have been
old and sickly, and likely to vacate it soon -- he might
have got I dare say -- fourteen hundred pounds. And
how came he not to have settled that matter before this
person's death? -- Now indeed it would be too late to
sell it, but a man of Colonel Brandon's sense! -- I wonder
he should be so improvident in a point of such common,
such natural, concern! -- Well, I am convinced that
there is a vast deal of inconsistency in almost every
human character. I suppose, however -- on recollection
-- that the case may probably be this. Edward is only
to hold the living till the person to whom the Colonel
has really sold the presentation, is old enough to take
it. -- Aye, aye, that is the fact, depend upon it."
Elinor contradicted it, however, very positively; and
by relating that she had herself been employed in conveying
the offer from Colonel Brandon to Edward, and
therefore must understand the terms on which it was
given, obliged him to submit to her authority.
"It is truly astonishing!" --
he cried, after hearing
what she said --
"what could be the Colonel's motive?"
"A very simple one -- to be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
"Well, well; whatever Colonel Brandon may be,
Edward is a very lucky man! -- You will not mention the
matter to Fanny, however, for though I have broke it
to her, and she bears it vastly well, -- she will not like to
hear it much talked of."
Elinor had some difficulty here to refrain from observing,
that she thought Fanny might have borne
with composure, an acquisition of wealth to her brother,
by which neither she nor her child could be possibly
impoverished.
"Mrs. Ferrars,"
added he, lowering his voice to the
tone becoming so important a subject,
"knows nothing
AusSeSe296
about it at present, and I believe it will be best to keep
it entirely concealed from her as long as may be. -- When
the marriage takes place, I fear she must hear of it all."
"But why should such precaution be used? -- Though
it is not to be supposed that Mrs. Ferrars can have the
smallest satisfaction in knowing that her son has money
enough to live upon, -- for that must be quite out of the
question; yet why, after her late behaviour, is she
supposed to feel at all? -- she has done with her son, she
has cast him off for ever, and has made all those over
whom she had any influence, cast him off likewise.
Surely, after doing so, she cannot be imagined liable to
any impression of sorrow or of joy on his account --
she cannot be interested in any thing that befalls him. --
She would not be so weak as to throw away the comfort
of a child, and yet retain the anxiety of a parent!"
"Ah! Elinor,"
said John,
"your reasoning is very
good, but it is founded on ignorance of human nature.
When Edward's unhappy match takes place, depend
upon it his mother will feel as much as if she had never
discarded him; and therefore every circumstance that
may accelerate that dreadful event, must be concealed
from her as much as possible. Mrs. Ferrars can never
forget that Edward is her son."
"You surprise me; I should think it must nearly
have escaped her memory by this time."
"You wrong her exceedingly. Mrs. Ferrars is one
of the most affectionate mothers in the world."
Elinor was silent.
"We think now" --
said Mr. Dashwood, after a short
pause,
"of Robert's marrying Miss Morton."
Elinor, smiling at the grave and decisive importance
of her brother's tone, calmly replied,
"The lady, I suppose, has no choice in the affair."
"Choice! -- how do you mean?" --
"I only mean, that I suppose from your manner of
speaking, it must be the same to Miss Morton whether
she marry Edward or Robert."
AusSeSe297
"Certainly, there can be no difference; for Robert
will now to all intents and purposes be considered as the
eldest son; -- and as to any thing else, they are both
very agreeable young men, I do not know that one is
superior to the other."
Elinor said no more, and John was also for a short
time silent. -- His reflections ended thus.
"Of one thing, my dear sister,"
kindly taking her hand,
and speaking in an awful whisper --
"I may assure you; --
and I will do it, because I know it must gratify you.
I have good reason to think -- indeed I have it from the
best authority, or I should not repeat it, for otherwise it
would be very wrong to say any thing about it -- but
I have it from the very best authority -- not that I ever
precisely heard Mrs. Ferrars say it herself -- but her
daughter did, and I have it from her -- That in short,
whatever objections there might be against a certain --
a certain connection -- you understand me -- it would
have been far preferable to her, it would not have given
her half the vexation that this does. I was exceedingly
pleased to hear that Mrs. Ferrars considered it in that
light -- a very gratifying circumstance you know to us
all.
""It would have been beyond comparison,""
she said,
""the least evil of the two, and she would be glad to
compound now for nothing worse.""
But however, all
that is quite out of the question -- not to be thought of
or mentioned -- as to any attachment you know -- it
never could be -- all that is gone by. But I thought I
would just tell you of this, because I knew how much
it must please you. Not that you have any reason to
regret, my dearElinor. There is no doubt of your doing
exceedingly well -- quite as well, or better, perhaps, all
things considered. Has Colonel Brandon been with you
lately?"
Elinor had heard enough, if not to gratify her vanity,
and raise her self-importance, to agitate her nerves and
fill her mind; -- and she was therefore glad to be spared
from the necessity of saying much in reply herself, and
AusSeSe298
from the danger of hearing any thing more from her
brother, by the entrance of Mr. Robert Ferrars. After
a few moments' chat, John Dashwood, recollecting that
Fanny was yet uninformed of his sister's being there,
quitted the room in quest of her; and Elinor was left
to improve her acquaintance with Robert, who, by the
gay unconcern, the happy self-complacency of his
manner while enjoying so unfair a division of his mother's
love and liberality, to the prejudice of his banished
brother, earned only by his own dissipated course of
life, and that brother's integrity, was confirming her
most unfavourable opinion of his head and heart.
They had scarcely been two minutes by themselves,
before he began to speak of Edward; for he too had
heard of the living, and was very inquisitive on the
subject. Elinor repeated the particulars of it, as she
had given them to John; and their effect on Robert
though very different, was not less striking than it had
been on him. He laughed most immoderately. The
idea of Edward's being a clergyman, and living in a small
parsonage-house, diverted him beyond measure; -- and
when to that was added the fanciful imagery of Edward
reading prayers in a white surplice, and publishing the
banns of marriage between John Smith and Mary Brown,
he could conceive nothing more ridiculous.
Elinor, while she waited in silence, and immovable
gravity, the conclusion of such folly, could not restrain
her eyes from being fixed on him with a look that spoke
all the contempt it excited. It was a look, however,
very well bestowed, for it relieved her own feelings, and
gave no intelligence of him. He was recalled from wit
to wisdom, not by any reproof of her's, but by his own
sensibility.
"We may treat it as a joke,"
said he at last, recovering
from the affected laugh which had considerably lengthened
out the genuine gaiety of the moment --
"but upon
my soul, it is a most serious business. Poor Edward! he
is ruined for ever. I am extremely sorry for it -- for I
AusSeSe299
know him to be a very good-hearted creature; as well-meaning
a fellow perhaps, as any in the world. You
must not judge of him, Miss Dashwood, from your
slight acquaintance. -- Poor Edward! ---- His manners are
certainly not the happiest in nature. -- But we are not all
born, you know, with the same powers -- the same address. --
Poor fellow! -- to see him in a circle of strangers!
-- to be sure it was pitiable enough! -- but, upon my
soul, I believe he has as good a heart as any in the
kingdom; and I declare and protest to you I never
was so shocked in my life, as when it all burst forth. I
could not believe it. -- My mother was the first person
who told me of it, and I, feeling myself called on to act
with resolution, immediately said to her, ""My dear
madam, I do not know what you may intend to do on
the occasion, but as for myself, I must say, that if
Edward does marry this young woman, I never will see
him again."" That was what I said immediately, -- I was
most uncommonly shocked indeed! -- Poor Edward! --
he has done for himself completely -- shut himself out
for ever from all decent society! -- but, as I directly
said to my mother, I am not in the least surprised at it;
from his style of education it was always to be expected.
My poor mother was half frantic."
"Have you ever seen the lady?"
"Yes; once, while she was staying in this house,
I happened to drop in for ten minutes; and I saw quite
enough of her. The merest awkward country girl,
without style, or elegance, and almost without beauty. --
I remember her perfectly. Just the kind of girl I should
suppose likely to captivate poor Edward. I offered
immediately, as soon as my mother related the affair
to me, to talk to him myself, and dissuade him from the
match; but it was too late then, I found, to do any thing,
for unluckily, I was not in the way at first, and knew
nothing of it till after the breach had taken place, when
it was not for me, you know, to interfere. But had I
been informed of it a few hours earlier -- I think it is
AusSeSe300
most probable -- that something might have been hit
on. I certainly should have represented it to Edward
in a very strong light. ""My dear fellow,"" I should have
said, ""consider what you are doing. You are making
a most disgraceful connection, and such a one as your
family are unanimous in disapproving."" I cannot help
thinking, in short, that means might have been found.
But now it is all too late. He must be starved, you
know; -- that is certain; absolutely starved."
He had just settled this point with great composure,
when the entrance of Mrs. John Dashwood put an end
to the subject. But though she never spoke of it out of
her own family, Elinor could see its influence on her
mind, in the something like confusion of countenance
with which she entered, and an attempt at cordiality in
her behaviour to herself. She even proceeded so far as
to be concerned to find that Elinor and her sister were so
soon to leave town, as she had hoped to see more of
them; -- an exertion in which her husband, who attended
her into the room, and hung enamoured over her accents,
seemed to distinguish every thing that was most affectionate
and graceful.
AusSeSe301
One other short call in Harley-street, in whichElinor
received her brother's congratulations on their travelling
so far towards Barton without any expense, and on
Colonel Brandon's being to follow them to Cleveland in
a day or two, completed the intercourse of the brother
and sisters in town; -- and a faint invitation from Fanny,
to come to Norland whenever it should happen to be in
their way, which of all things was the most unlikely to
occur, with a more warm, though less public, assurance,
from John to Elinor, of the promptitude with which he
should come to see her at Delaford, was all that foretold
any meeting in the country.
It amused her to observe that all her friends seemed
determined to send her to Delaford; -- a place, in which,
of all others, she would now least chuse to visit, or wish
to reside; for not only was it considered as her future
home by her brother and Mrs. Jennings, but even Lucy,
when they parted, gave her a pressing invitation to visit
her there.
Very early in April, and tolerably early in the day,
the two parties from Hanover-square and Berkeley-street
set out from their respective homes, to meet, by appointment,
on the road. For the convenience of Charlotte
and her child, they were to be more than two days on
their journey, and Mr. Palmer, travelling more expeditiously
with Colonel Brandon, was to join them at
Cleveland soon after their arrival.
Marianne, few as had been her hours of comfort in
London, and eager as she had long been to quit it, could
not, when it came to the point, bid adieu to the house
in which she had for the last time enjoyed those hopes,
and that confidence, in Willoughby, which were now
extinguished for ever, without great pain. Nor could she
AusSeSe302
leave the place in whichWilloughby remained, busy in
new engagements, and new schemes, in which she could
have no share, without shedding many tears.
Elinor's satisfaction at the moment of removal, was
more positive. She had no such object for her lingering
thoughts to fix on, she left no creature behind, from
whom it would give her a moment's regret to be divided
for ever, she was pleased to be free herself from the
persecution of Lucy's friendship, she was grateful for
bringing her sister away unseen by Willoughby since
his marriage, and she looked forward with hope to what
a few months of tranquillity at Barton might do towards
restoring Marianne's peace of mind, and confirming her
own.
Their journey was safely performed. The second day
brought them into the cherished, or the prohibited,
county of Somerset, for as such was it dwelt on by turns
in Marianne's imagination; and in the forenoon of the
third they drove up to Cleveland.
Cleveland was a spacious, modern-built house, situated
on a sloping lawn. It had no park, but the pleasure-grounds
were tolerably extensive; and like every other
place of the same degree of importance, it had its open
shrubbery, and closer wood walk, a road of smooth gravel
winding round a plantation, led to the front, the lawn
was dotted over with timber, the house itself was under
the guardianship of the fir, the mountain-ash, and the
acacia, and a thick screen of them altogether, interspersed
with tall Lombardy poplars, shut out the offices.
Marianne entered the house with an heart swelling
with emotion from the consciousness of being only eighty
miles from Barton, and not thirty from Combe Magna;
and before she had been five minutes within its walls,
while the others were busily helping Charlotte shew her
child to the housekeeper, she quitted it again, stealing
away through the winding shrubberies, now just
beginning to be in beauty, to gain a distant eminence;
where, from its Grecian temple, her eye, wandering over
AusSeSe303
a wide tract of country to the south-east, could fondly
rest on the farthest ridge of hills in the horizon, and
fancy that from their summits Combe Magna might be
seen.
In such moments of precious, of invaluable misery,
she rejoiced in tears of agony to be at Cleveland; and as
she returned by a different circuit to the house, feeling
all the happy privilege of country liberty, of wandering
from place to place in free and luxurious solitude, she
resolved to spend almost every hour of every day while
she remained with the Palmers, in the indulgence of
such solitary rambles.
She returned just in time to join the others as they
quitted the house, on an excursion through its more
immediate premises; and the rest of the morning was
easily whiled away, in lounging round the kitchen garden,
examining the bloom upon its walls, and listening to
the gardener's lamentations upon blights, -- in dawdling
through the green-house, where the loss of her favourite
plants, unwarily exposed, and nipped by the lingering
frost, raised the laughter of Charlotte, -- and in visiting
her poultry-yard, where, in the disappointed hopes of
her dairy-maid, by hens forsaking their nests, or being
stolen by a fox, or in the rapid decease of a promising
young brood, she found fresh sources of merriment.
The morning was fine and dry, and Marianne, in her
plan of employment abroad, had not calculated for any
change of weather during their stay at Cleveland. With
great surprise therefore, did she find herself prevented by
a settled rain from going out again after dinner. She
had depended on a twilight walk to the Grecian temple,
and perhaps all over the grounds, and an evening merely
cold or damp would not have deterred her from it; but
an heavy and settled rain even she could not fancy dry
or pleasant weather for walking.
Their party was small, and the hours passed quietly
away. Mrs. Palmer had her child, and Mrs. Jennings
her carpet-work; they talked of the friends they had
AusSeSe304
left behind, arranged Lady Middleton's engagements,
and wondered whether Mr. Palmer and Colonel Brandon
would get farther than Reading that night. Elinor,
however little concerned in it, joined in their discourse,
and Marianne, who had the knack of finding her way
in every house to the library, however it might be
avoided by the family in general, soon procured herself
a book.
Nothing was wanting on Mrs. Palmer's side that constant
and friendly good-humour could do, to make them
feel themselves welcome. The openness and heartiness
of her manner, more than atoned for that want of
recollection and elegance, which made her often deficient
in the forms of politeness; her kindness, recommended
by so pretty a face, was engaging; her folly, though
evident, was not disgusting, because it was not conceited;
and Elinor could have forgiven every thing but
her laugh.
The two gentlemen arrived the next day to a very late
dinner, affording a pleasant enlargement of the party,
and a very welcome variety to their conversation, which
a long morning of the same continued rain had reduced
very low.
Elinor had seen so little of Mr. Palmer, and in that
little had seen so much variety in his address to her sister
and herself, that she knew not what to expect to find
him in his own family. She found him, however, perfectly
the gentleman in his behaviour to all his visitors,
and only occasionally rude to his wife and her mother;
she found him very capable of being a pleasant companion,
and only prevented from being so always, by
too great an aptitude to fancy himself as much superior
to people in general, as he must feel himself to be to Mrs. Jennings
and Charlotte. For the rest of his character
and habits, they were marked, as far as Elinor could
perceive, with no traits at all unusual in his sex and
time of life. He was nice in his eating, uncertain in his
hours; fond of his child, though affecting to slight it;
AusSeSe305
and idled away the mornings at billiards, which ought
to have been devoted to business. She liked him,
however, upon the whole much better than she had
expected, and in her heart was not sorry that she could
like him no more; -- not sorry to be driven by the
observation of his Epicurism, his selfishness, and his
conceit, to rest with complacency on the remembrance
of Edward's generous temper, simple taste, and diffident
feelings.
Of Edward, or at least of some of his concerns, she
now received intelligence from Colonel Brandon, who
had been into Dorsetshire lately; and who, treating
her at once as the disinterested friend of Mr. Ferrars, and
the kind confidante of himself, talked to her a great deal
of the Parsonage at Delaford, described its deficiencies,
and told her what he meant to do himself towards
removing them. -- His behaviour to her in this, as well
as in every other particular, his open pleasure in meeting
her after an absence of only ten days, his readiness to
converse with her, and his deference for her opinion,
might very well justify Mrs. Jennings's persuasion of his
attachment, and would have been enough, perhaps,
had not Elinor still, as from the first, believed Marianne
his real favourite, to make her suspect it herself. But
as it was, such a notion had scarcely ever entered her
head, except by Mrs. Jennings's suggestion; and she
could not help believing herself the nicest observer of
the two; -- she watched his eyes, while Mrs. Jennings
thought only of his behaviour; -- and while his looks of
anxious solicitude on Marianne's feeling, in her head
and throat, the beginning of an heavy cold, because
unexpressed by words, entirely escaped the latter lady's
observation; -- she could discover in them the quick
feelings, and needless alarm of a lover.
Two delightful twilight walks on the third and fourth
evenings of her being there, not merely on the dry gravel
of the shrubbery, but all over the grounds, and especially
in the most distant parts of them, where there was something
AusSeSe306
more of wildness than in the rest, where the
trees were the oldest, and the grass was the longest and
wettest, had -- assisted by the still greater imprudence
of sitting in her wet shoes and stockings -- given Marianne
a cold so violent, as, though for a day or two trifled with
or denied, would force itself by increasing ailments, on
the concern of every body, and the notice of herself.
Prescriptions poured in from all quarters, and as usual,
were all declined. Though heavy and feverish, with
a pain in her limbs, a cough, and a sore throat, a good
night's rest was to cure her entirely; and it was with
difficulty that Elinor prevailed on her, when she went
to bed, to try one or two of the simplest of the remedies.
AusSeSe307
Marianne got up the next morning at her usual time;
to every inquiry replied that she was better, and tried to
prove herself so, by engaging in her accustomary employments.
But a day spent in sitting shivering over the
fire with a book in her hand, which she was unable to
read, or in lying, weary and languid, on a sofa, did not
speak much in favour of her amendment; and when,
at last, she went early to bed, more and more indisposed,
Colonel Brandon was only astonished at her sister's
composure, who, though attending and nursing her the
whole day, against Marianne's inclination, and forcing
proper medicines on her at night, trusted, like Marianne,
to the certainty and efficacy of sleep, and felt no real
alarm.
A very restless and feverish night, however, disappointed
the expectation of both; and when Marianne,
after persisting in rising, confessed herself unable to sit
up, and returned voluntarily to her bed, Elinor was very
ready to adopt Mrs. Jennings's advice, of sending for
the Palmers' apothecary.
He came, examined his patient, and though encouraging
Miss Dashwood to expect that a very few days
would restore her sister to health, yet, by pronouncing
her disorder to have a putrid tendency, and allowing the
word
"infection"
to pass his lips, gave instant alarm
to Mrs. Palmer on her baby's account. Mrs. Jennings,
who had been inclined from the first to think Marianne's
complaint more serious than Elinor, now looked very
grave on Mr. Harris's report, and confirming Charlotte's
fears and caution, urged the necessity of her immediate
removal with her infant; and Mr. Palmer, though
treating their apprehensions as idle, found the anxiety
and importunity of his wife too great to be withstood.
AusSeSe308
Her departure therefore was fixed on; and, within an
hour after Mr. Harris's arrival, she set off, with her
little boy and his nurse, for the house of a near relation
of Mr. Palmer's, who lived a few miles on the other side
of Bath; whither her husband promised, at her earnest
entreaty, to join her in a day or two; and whither she
was almost equally urgent with her mother to accompany
her. Mrs. Jennings, however, with a kindness of
heart which made Elinor really love her, declared her
resolution of not stirring from Cleveland as long as
Marianne remained ill, and of endeavouring, by her own
attentive care, to supply to her the place of the mother
she had taken her from; and Elinor found her on every
occasion a most willing and active helpmate, desirous
to share in all her fatigues, and often by her better
experience in nursing, of material use.
Poor Marianne, languid and low from the nature of
her malady, and feeling herself universally ill, could no
longer hope that to-morrow would find her recovered;
and the idea of what to-morrow would have produced,
but for this unlucky illness, made every ailment more
severe; for on that day they were to have begun their
journey home; and, attended the whole way by a servant
of Mrs. Jennings, were to have taken their mother
by surprise on the following forenoon. The little that
she said, was all in lamentation of this inevitable delay;
though Elinor tried to raise her spirits, and make her
believe, as she then really believed herself, that it would
be a very short one.
The next day produced little or no alteration in the
state of the patient; she certainly was not better, and
except that there was no amendment, did not appear
worse. Their party was now farther reduced; for
Mr. Palmer, though very unwilling to go, as well from
real humanity and good-nature, as from a dislike of
appearing to be frightened away by his wife, was persuaded
at last by Colonel Brandon to perform his promise
of following her; and while he was preparing to go,
AusSeSe309
Colonel Brandon himself, with a much greater exertion,
began to talk of going likewise. -- Here, however, the
kindness of Mrs. Jennings interposed most acceptably;
for
to send the Colonel away while his love was in so
much uneasiness on her sister's account, would be to
deprive them both,
she thought,
of every comfort;
and
therefore telling him at once that
his stay at Cleveland
was necessary to herself, that she should want him to
play at piquet of an evening, while Miss Dashwood was
above with her sister,
&c. she urged him so strongly
to remain, that he, who was gratifying the first wish
of his own heart by a compliance, could not long even
affect to demur; especially as Mrs. Jennings's entreaty
was warmly seconded by Mr. Palmer, who seemed to feel
a relief to himself, in leaving behind him a person so well
able to assist or advise Miss Dashwood in any emergence.
Marianne was of course kept in ignorance of all these
arrangements. She knew not that she had been the
means of sending the owners of Cleveland away, in
about seven days from the time of their arrival. It gave
her no surprise that she saw nothing of Mrs. Palmer;
and as it gave her likewise no concern, she never mentioned
her name.
Two days passed away from the time of Mr. Palmer's
departure, and her situation continued, with little variation,
the same. Mr. Harris, who attended her every day,
still talked boldly of a speedy recovery, and Miss Dashwood
was equally sanguine; but the expectation of
the others was by no means so cheerful. Mrs. Jennings
had determined very early in the seisure that Marianne
would never get over it, and Colonel Brandon, who was
chiefly of use in listening to Mrs. Jennings's forebodings,
was not in a state of mind to resist their influence. He
tried to reason himself out of fears, which the different
judgment of the apothecary seemed to render absurd;
but the many hours of each day in which he was left
entirely alone, were but too favourable for the admission
of every melancholy idea, and he could not expel from
AusSeSe310
his mind the persuasion that he should see Marianne no
more.
On the morning of the third day however, the gloomy
anticipations of both were almost done away; for when
Mr. Harris arrived, he declared his patient materially
better. Her pulse was much stronger, and every symptom
more favourable than on the preceding visit.
Elinor, confirmed in every pleasant hope, was all cheerfulness;
rejoicing that in her letters to her mother, she
had pursued her own judgment rather than her friend's,
in making very light of the indisposition which delayed
them at Cleveland; and almost fixing on the time when
Marianne would be able to travel.
But the day did not close so auspiciously as it began. --
Towards the evening, Marianne became ill again,
growing more heavy, restless, and uncomfortable than
before. Her sister, however, still sanguine, was willing
to attribute the change to nothing more than the fatigue
of having sat up to have her bed made; and carefully
administering the cordials prescribed, saw her with
satisfaction sink at last into a slumber, from which she
expected the most beneficial effects. Her sleep, though
not so quiet as Elinor wished to see it, lasted a considerable
time; and anxious to observe the result of it
herself, she resolved to sit with her during the whole of
it. Mrs. Jennings, knowing nothing of any change in
the patient, went unusually early to bed; her maid, who
was one of the principal nurses, was recreating herself
in the housekeeper's room, and Elinor remained alone
with Marianne.
The repose of the latter became more and more disturbed;
and her sister, who watched with unremitting
attention her continual change of posture, and heard
the frequent but inarticulate sounds of complaint which
passed her lips, was almost wishing to rouse her from
so painful a slumber, when Marianne, suddenly awakened
by some accidental noise in the house, started
hastily up, and with feverish wildness, cried out --
AusSeSe311
"Is mama coming? --"
"Not yet,"
replied the other, concealing her terror,
and assisting Marianne to lie down again,
"but she will
be here, I hope, before it is long. It is a great way, you
know, from hence to Barton."
"But she must not go round by London,"
cried
Marianne, in the same hurried manner,
"I shall never
see her, if she goes by London."
Elinor perceived with alarm that she was not quite
herself, and while attempting to sooth her, eagerly felt
her pulse. It was lower and quicker than ever! and
Marianne, still talking wildly of mama, her alarm increased
so rapidly, as to determine her on sending
instantly for Mr. Harris, and dispatching a messenger
to Barton for her mother. To consult with Colonel Brandon
on the best means of effecting the latter, was
a thought which immediately followed the resolution of
its performance; and as soon as she had rung up the
maid to take her place by her sister, she hastened down
to the drawing-room, where she knew he was generally
to be found at a much later hour than the present.
It was no time for hesitation. Her fears and her
difficulties were immediately before him. Her fears, he
had no courage, no confidence to attempt the removal
of; -- he listened to them in silent despondence; -- but
her difficulties were instantly obviated, for with a readiness
that seemed to speak the occasion, and the service
pre-arranged in his mind, he offered himself as the
messenger who should fetch Mrs. Dashwood. Elinor
made no resistance that was not easily overcome. She
thanked him with brief, though fervent gratitude, and
while he went to hurry off his servant with a message
to Mr. Harris, and an order for post-horses directly, she
wrote a few lines to her mother.
The comfort of such a friend at that moment as
Colonel Brandon -- of such a companion for her mother, --
how gratefully was it felt! --a companion whose judgment
would guide, whose attendance must relieve, and
AusSeSe312
whose friendship might sooth her! -- as far as the shock
of such a summons could be lessened to her, his presence,
his manners, his assistance, would lessen it.
He, meanwhile, whatever he might feel, acted with
all the firmness of a collected mind, made every necessary
arrangement with the utmost dispatch, and calculated
with exactness the time in which she might look for his
return. Not a moment was lost in delay of any kind.
The horses arrived, even before they were expected,
and Colonel Brandon only pressing her hand with a
look of solemnity, and a few words spoken too low
to reach her ear, hurried into the carriage. It
was then about twelve o'clock, and she returned to
her sister's apartment to wait for the arrival of the
apothecary, and to watch by her the rest of the night.
It was a night of almost equal suffering to both. Hour
after hour passed away in sleepless pain and delirium on
Marianne's side, and in the most cruel anxiety on Elinor's,
before Mr. Harris appeared. Her apprehensions once
raised, paid by their excess for all her former security;
and the servant who sat up with her, for she would not
allow Mrs. Jennings to be called, only tortured her more,
by hints of what her mistress had always thought.
Marianne's ideas were still, at intervals, fixed incoherently
on her mother, and whenever she mentioned
her name, it gave a pang to the heart of poor Elinor,
who, reproaching herself for having trifled with so many
days of illness, and wretched for some immediate relief,
fancied that all relief might soon be in vain, that every thing
had been delayed too long, and pictured to herself
her suffering mother arriving too late to see this darling
child, or to see her rational.
She was on the point of sending again for Mr. Harris,
or if he could not come, for some other advice, when the
former -- but not till after five o'clock -- arrived. His
opinion, however, made some little amends for his delay,
for though acknowledging a very unexpected and unpleasant
alteration in his patient, he would not allow
AusSeSe313
the danger to be material, and talked of the relief which
a fresh mode of treatment must procure, with a confidence
which, in a lesser degree, was communicated to Elinor.
He promised to call again in the course of three or four
hours, and left both the patient and her anxious attendant
more composed than he had found them.
With strong concern, and with many reproaches for
not being called to their aid, did Mrs. Jennings hear in
the morning of what had passed. Her former apprehensions,
now with greater reason restored, left her no
doubt of the event; and though trying to speak comfort
to Elinor, her conviction of her sister's danger would
not allow her to offer the comfort of hope. Her heart
was really grieved. The rapid decay, the early death
of a girl so young, so lovely as Marianne, must have
struck a less interested person with concern. On Mrs. Jennings's
compassion she had other claims. She had
been for three months her companion, was still under
her care, and she was known to have been greatly injured,
and long unhappy. The distress of her sister too, particularly
a favourite, was before her; -- and as for their
mother, when Mrs. Jennings considered that Marianne
might probably be to her whatCharlotte was to herself,
her sympathy in her sufferings was very sincere.
Mr. Harris was punctual in his second visit; -- but
he came to be disappointed in his hopes of what the last
would produce. His medicines had failed; -- the fever
was unabated; and Marianne only more quiet -- not
more herself -- remained in an heavy stupor. Elinor,
catching all, and more than all, his fears in a moment,
proposed to call in farther advice. But he judged it
unnecessary; he had still something more to try, some
fresh application, of whose success he was almost as
confident as the last, and his visit concluded with
encouraging assurances which reached the ear, but
cold not enter the heart, of Miss Dashwood. She was
calm, except when she thought of her mother, but she
was almost hopeless; and in this state she continued
AusSeSe314
till noon, scarcely stirring from her sister's bed, her
thoughts wandering from one image of grief, one suffering
friend to another, and her spirits oppressed to the
utmost by the conversation of Mrs. Jennings, who
scrupled not to attribute the severity and danger of
this attack, to the many weeks of previous indisposition
whichMarianne's disappointment had brought on.
Elinor felt all the reasonableness of the idea, and it gave
fresh misery to her reflections.
About noon, however, she began -- but with a caution
-- a dread of disappointment, which for some time kept
her silent, even to her friend -- to fancy, to hope she could
perceive a slight amendment in her sister's pulse; --
she waited, watched, and examined it again and again; --
and at last, with an agitation more difficult to bury under
exterior calmness, than all her foregoing distress, ventured
to communicate her hopes. Mrs. Jennings, though
forced, on examination, to acknowledge a temporary
revival, tried to keep her young friend from indulging
a thought of its continuance; -- and Elinor, conning over
every injunction of distrust, told herself likewise not
to hope. But it was too late. Hope had already
entered; and feeling all its anxious flutter, she bent over
her sister to watch -- she hardly knew for what. Half
an hour passed away, and the favourable symptom yet
blessed her. Others even arose to confirm it. Her
breath, her skin, her lips, all flattered Elinor with signs of
amendment, and Marianne fixed her eyes on her with
a rational, though languid, gaze. Anxiety and hope now
oppressed her in equal degrees, and left her no moment of
tranquillity till the arrival of Mr. Harris at four o'clock;
-- when his assurances, his felicitations on a recovery
in her sister even surpassing his expectation, gave her
confidence, comfort, and tears of joy.
Marianne was in every respect materially better, and
he declared her entirely out of danger. Mrs. Jennings,
perhaps satisfied with the partial justification of her
forebodings which had been found in their late alarm,
AusSeSe315
allowed herself to trust in his judgment, and admitted
with unfeigned joy, and soon with unequivocal cheerfulness,
the probability of an entire recovery.
Elinor could not be cheerful. Her joy was of a different
kind, and led to anything rather than to gaiety. Marianne
restored to life, health, friends, and to her doating
mother, was an idea to fill her heart with sensations of
exquisite comfort, and expand it in fervent gratitude; --
but it led to no outward demonstrations of joy, no words,
no smiles. All within Elinor's breast was satisfaction,
silent and strong.
She continued by the side of her sister with little
intermission the whole afternoon, calming every fear,
satisfying every inquiry of her enfeebled spirits, supplying
every succour, and watching almost every look and
every breath. The possibility of a relapse would of
course, in some moments, occur to remind her of what
anxiety was -- but when she saw, on her frequent and
minute examination, that every symptom of recovery
continued, and saw Marianne at six o'clock sink into a
quiet, steady, and to all appearance comfortable, sleep,
she silenced every doubt.
The time was now drawing on, when Colonel Brandon
might be expected back. At ten o'clock, she trusted,
or at least not much later, her mother would be relieved
from the dreadful suspense in which she must now be
travelling towards them.
The Colonel too! -- perhaps
scarcely less an object of pity! -- Oh! -- how slow was
the progress of time which yet kept them in ignorance!
At seven o'clock, leaving Marianne still sweetly asleep,
she joined Mrs. Jennings in the drawing-room to tea.
Of breakfast she had been kept by her fears, and of
dinner by their sudden reverse, from eating much; --
and the present refreshment, therefore, with such
feelings of content as she brought to it, was particularly
welcome. Mrs. Jennings would have persuaded her at
its conclusion to take some rest before her mother's
arrival, and allow her to take her place by Marianne;
AusSeSe316
but Elinor had no sense of fatigue, no capability of sleep
at that moment about her, and she was not to be kept
away from her sister an unnecessary instant. Mrs. Jennings
therefore attending her up stairs into the sick chamber,
to satisfy herself that all continued right, left her there
again to her charge and her thoughts, and retired to
her own room to write letters and sleep.
The night was cold and stormy. The wind roared
round the house, and the rain beat against the windows;
but Elinor, all happiness within, regarded it not. Marianne
slept through every blast, and the travellers -- they had a
rich reward in store, for every present inconvenience.
The clock struck eight. Had it been ten, Elinor would
have been convinced that at that moment she heard
a carriage driving up to the house; and so strong was
the persuasion that she did, in spite of the almost impossibility
of their being already come, that she moved into
the adjoining dressing-closet and opened a window-shutter,
to be satisfied of the truth. She instantly saw
that her ears had not deceived her. The flaring lamps
of a carriage were immediately in view. By their uncertain
light she thought she could discern it to be drawn
by four horses; and this, while it told the excess of her
poor mother's alarm, gave some explanation to such
unexpected rapidity.
Never in her life had Elinor found it so difficult to be
calm, as at that moment. The knowledge of what her
mother must be feeling as the carriage stopt at the
door, -- of her doubt -- her dread -- perhaps her despair! --
and of what she had to tell! -- with such knowledge it
was impossible to be calm. All that remained to be done,
was to be speedy; and therefore staying only till she
could leave Mrs. Jennings's maid with her sister, she
hurried down stairs.
The bustle in the vestibule, as she passed along an
inner lobby, assured her that they were already in the
house. She rushed forwards towards the drawing-room,
-- she entered it, -- and saw only Willoughby.
AusSeSe317
Elinor, starting back with a look of horror at the
sight of him, obeyed the first impulse of her heart in
turning instantly to quit the room, and her hand was
already on the lock, when its action was suspended by
his hastily advancing, and saying, in a voice rather of
command than supplication,
"Miss Dashwood, for half an hour -- for ten minutes --
I entreat you to stay."
"No, sir,"
she replied with firmness,
"I shall not stay.
Your business cannot be with me. The servants, I
suppose, forgot to tell you that Mr. Palmer was not in
the house."
"Had they told me,"
he cried with vehemence,
"that
Mr. Palmer and all his relations were at the devil, it
would not have turned me from the door. My business
is with you, and only you."
"With me!" -- in the utmost amazement -- "well,
sir -- be quick -- and if you can -- less violent."
"Sit down, and I will be both."
She hesitated; she knew not what to do. The
possibility of Colonel Brandon's arriving and finding
him there, came across her. But she had promised to
hear him, and her curiosity no less than her honour was
engaged. After a moment's recollection, therefore,
concluding that prudence required dispatch, and that
her acquiescence would best promote it, she walked
silently towards the table, and sat down. He took the
opposite chair, and for half a minute not a word was
said by either.
"Pray be quick, sir" --
said Elinor impatiently --
"I have no time to spare."
He was sitting in an attitude of deep meditation, and
seemed not to hear her.
AusSeSe318
"Your sister,"
said he, with abruptness, a moment
afterwards --
"is out of danger. I heard it from the
servant. God be praised! -- But is it true? -- is it really
true?"
Elinor would not speak. He repeated the inquiry
with yet greater eagerness.
"For God's sake tell me, is she out of danger, or is
she not?"
"We hope she is."
He rose up, and walked across the room.
"Had I known as much half an hour ago -- But since
I am here" --
speaking with a forced vivacity as he
returned to his seat --
"what does it signify? -- For once,
Miss Dashwood -- it will be the last time, perhaps -- let
us be cheerful together. -- I am in a fine mood for gaiety.
-- Tell me honestly" --
a deeper glow overspreading his
cheeks --
"do you think me most a knave or a fool?"
Elinor looked at him with greater astonishment than
ever. She began to think that he must be in liquor; --
the strangeness of such a visit, and of such manners,
seemed no otherwise intelligible; and with this impression
she immediately rose, saying,
"Mr. Willoughby, I advise you at present to return
to Combe. -- I am not at leisure to remain with you
longer. -- Whatever your business may be with me, it
will be better recollected and explained to-morrow."
"I understand you,"
he replied, with an expressive
smile, and a voice perfectly calm,
"yes, I am very
drunk. -- A pint of porter with my cold beef at Marlborough
was enough to over-set me."
"At Marlborough!" --
cried Elinor, more and more at
a loss to understand what he would be at.
"Yes -- I left London this morning at eight o'clock,
and the only ten minutes I have spent out of my chaise
since that time, procured me a nuncheon at Marlborough."
The steadiness of his manner, and the intelligence
of his eye as he spoke, convincing Elinor, that whatever
other unpardonable folly might bring him to Cleveland,
AusSeSe319
he was not brought there by intoxication, she said, after
a moment's recollection,
"Mr. Willoughby, you ought to feel, and I certainly
do -- that after what has passed -- your coming here in
this manner, and forcing yourself upon my notice,
requires a very particular excuse. -- What is it, that you
mean by it?" --
"I mean" --
said he, with serious energy --
"if I can,
to make you hate me one degree less than you do now.
I mean to offer some kind of explanation, some kind of
apology, for the past; to open my whole heart to you,
and by convincing you, that though I have been always
a blockhead, I have not been always a rascal, to obtain
something like forgiveness from Ma -- from your sister."
"Is this the real reason of your coming?"
"Upon my soul it is," --
was his answer, with a warmth
which brought all the former Willoughby to her remembrance,
and in spite of herself made her think him
sincere.
"If that is all, you may be satisfied already, -- for
Marianne does -- she has long forgiven you."
"Has she!" --
he cried, in the same eager tone. --
"Then she has forgiven me before she ought to have
done it. But she shall forgive me again, and on more
reasonable grounds. -- Now will you listen to me?"
Elinor bowed her assent.
"I do not know,"
said he, after a pause of expectation
on her side, and thoughtfulness on his own, --
"how
you may have accounted for my behaviour to your
sister, or what diabolical motive you may have imputed
to me. -- Perhaps you will hardly think the better of me,
-- it is worth the trial however, and you shall hear
every thing. When I first became intimate in your
family, I had no other intention, no other view in the
acquaintance than to pass my time pleasantly while I
was obliged to remain in Devonshire, more pleasantly
than I had ever done before. Your sister's lovely person
and interesting manners could not but please me; and her
AusSeSe320
behaviour to me almost from the first, was of a kind ----
It is astonishing, when I reflect on what it was, and what
she was, that my heart should have been so insensible! --
But at first I must confess, my vanity only was elevated
by it. Careless of her happiness, thinking only of my own
amusement, giving way to feelings which I had always
been too much in the habit of indulging, I endeavoured,
by every means in my power, to make myself pleasing to
her, without any design of returning her affection."
Miss Dashwood at this point, turning her eyes on him
with the most angry contempt, stopped him, by saying,
"It is hardly worth while, Mr. Willoughby, for you
to relate, or for me to listen any longer. Such a beginning
as this cannot be followed by any thing. ---- Do not
let me be pained by hearing any thing more on the
subject."
"I insist on your hearing the whole of it,"
he replied.
"My fortune was never large, and I had always been
expensive, always in the habit of associating with people
of better income than myself. Every year since my
coming of age, or even before, I believe, had added to my
debts; and though the death of my old cousin, Mrs. Smith,
was to set me free; yet that event being uncertain,
and possibly far distant, it had been for some time my
intention to re-establish my circumstances by marrying
a woman of fortune. To attach myself to your sister,
therefore, was not a thing to be thought of; -- and with
a meanness, selfishness, cruelty -- which no indignant,
no contemptuous look, even of yours, Miss Dashwood,
can ever reprobate too much -- I was acting in this
manner, trying to engage her regard, without a thought
of returning it. -- But one thing may be said for me,
even in that horrid state of selfish vanity, I did not
know the extent of the injury I meditated, because I
did not then know what it was to love. But have I ever
known it? -- Well may it be doubted; for, had I really
loved, could I have sacrificed my feelings to vanity,
to avarice? -- or, what is more, could I have sacrificed
AusSeSe321
her's? ---- But I have done it. To avoid a comparative
poverty, which her affection and her society would
have deprived of all its horrors, I have, by raising
myself to affluence, lost every thing that could make it
a blessing."
"You did then,"
said Elinor, a little softened,
"believe
yourself at one time attached to her."
"To have resisted such attractions, to have withstood
such tenderness! -- Is there a man on earth who could
have done it! -- Yes, I found myself, by insensible
degrees, sincerely fond of her; and the happiest hours
of my life were what I spent with her, when I felt my
intentions were strictly honourable, and my feelings
blameless. Even then, however, when fully determined
on paying my addresses to her, I allowed myself most
improperly to put off, from day to day, the moment of
doing it, from an unwillingness to enter into an engagement
while my circumstances were so greatly embarrassed.
I will not reason here -- nor will I stop for you to expatiate
on the absurdity, and the worse than absurdity, of
scrupling to engage my faith where my honour was
already bound. The event has proved, that I was
a cunning fool, providing with great circumspection for
a possible opportunity of making myself contemptible
and wretched for ever. At last, however, my resolution
was taken, and I had determined, as soon as I could
engage her alone, to justify the attentions I had so
invariably paid her, and openly assure her of an affection
which I had already taken such pains to display. But
in the interim -- in the interim of the very few hours
that were to pass, before I could have an opportunity
of speaking with her in private -- a circumstance occurred
-- an unlucky circumstance, to ruin all my resolution, and
with it all my comfort. A discovery took place," --
here
he hesitated and looked down. --
"Mrs. Smith had somehow
or other been informed, I imagine by some distant
relation, whose interest it was to deprive me of her favour,
of an affair, a connection -- but I need not explain myself
AusSeSe322
farther,"
he added, looking at her with an heightened
colour and an inquiring eye, --
"your particular intimacy
-- you have probably heard the whole story long ago."
"I have,"
returned Elinor, colouring likewise, and
hardening her heart anew against any compassion for
him,
"I have heard it all. And how you will explain
away any part of your guilt in that dreadful business,
I confess is beyond my comprehension."
"Remember,"
cried Willoughby,
"from whom you
received the account. Could it be an impartial one?
I acknowledge that her situation and her character
ought to have been respected by me. I do not mean to
justify myself, but at the same time cannot leave you
to suppose that I have nothing to urge -- that because
she was injured she was irreproachable, and because
I was a libertine, she must be a saint. If the violence
of her passions, the weakness of her understanding --
I do not mean, however, to defend myself. Her affection
for me deserved better treatment, and I often, with
great self-reproach, recal the tenderness which, for a very
short time, had the power of creating any return. I
wish -- I heartily wish it had never been. But I have
injured more than herself; and I have injured one,
whose affection for me -- (may I say it?) was scarcely
less warm than her's; and whose mind -- Oh! how
infinitely superior!" --
"Your indifference, however, towards that unfortunate
girl -- I must say it, unpleasant to me as the discussion
of such a subject may well be -- your indifference
is no apology for your cruel neglect of her. Do not
think yourself excused by any weakness, any natural
defect of understanding on her side, in the wanton
cruelty so evident on yours. You must have known,
that while you were enjoying yourself in Devonshire,
pursuing fresh schemes, always gay, always happy, she
was reduced to the extremest indigence."
"But, upon my soul, I did not know it,"
he warmly
replied;
"I did not recollect that I had omitted to give
AusSeSe323
her my direction; and common sense might have told
her how to find it out."
"Well, sir, and what said Mrs. Smith?"
"She taxed me with the offence at once, and my
confusion may be guessed. The purity of her life, the
formality of her notions, her ignorance of the world --
every thing was against me. The matter itself I could
not deny, and vain was every endeavour to soften it.
She was previously disposed, I believe, to doubt the
morality of my conduct in general, and was moreover
discontented with the very little attention, the very
little portion of my time that I had bestowed on her,
in my present visit. In short, it ended in a total breach.
By one measure I might have saved myself. In the
height of her morality, good woman! she offered to
forgive the past, if I would marry Eliza. That could not
be -- and I was formally dismissed from her favour and
her house. The night following this affair -- I was to go
the next morning -- was spent by me in deliberating on
what my future conduct should be. The struggle was
great -- but it ended too soon. My affection for Marianne,
my thorough conviction of her attachment to me -- it
was all insufficient to outweigh that dread of poverty,
or get the better of those false ideas of the necessity
of riches, which I was naturally inclined to feel, and
expensive society had increased. I had reason to believe
myself secure of my present wife, if I chose to address
her, and I persuaded myself to think that nothing else
in common prudence remained for me to do. An heavy
scene however awaited me, before I could leave Devonshire;
-- I was engaged to dine with you on that very
day; some apology was therefore necessary for my
breaking the engagement. But whether I should write
this apology, or deliver it in person, was a point of long
debate. To see Marianne, I felt would be dreadful, and
I even doubted whether I could see her again, and keep
to my resolution. In that point, however, I undervalued
my own magnanimity, as the event declared; for I went,
AusSeSe324
I saw her, and saw her miserable, and left her miserable
-- and left her hoping never to see her again."
"Why did you call, Mr. Willoughby?"
said Elinor,
reproachfully;
"a note would have answered every
purpose. -- Why was it necessary to call?"
"It was necessary to my own pride. I could not bear
to leave the country in a manner that might lead you,
or the rest of the neighbourhood, to suspect any part
of what had really passed between Mrs. Smith and
myself -- and I resolved therefore on calling at the cottage,
in my way to Honiton. The sight of your dear sister,
however, was really dreadful; and to heighten the
matter, I found her alone. You were all gone I do not
know where. I had left her only the evening before, so
fully, so firmly resolved within myself on doing right!
A few hours were to have engaged her to me for ever;
and I remember how happy, how gay were my spirits,
as I walked from the cottage to Allenham, satisfied with
myself, delighted with every body! But in this, our last
interview of friendship, I approached her with a sense
of guilt that almost took from me the power of dissembling.
Her sorrow, her disappointment, her deep regret,
when I told her that I was obliged to leave Devonshire
so immediately -- I never shall forget it -- united too with
such reliance, such confidence in me! -- Oh, God! -- what
an hard-hearted rascal I was!"
They were both silent for a few moments. Elinor
first spoke.
"Did you tell her that you should soon return?"
"I do not know what I told her,"
he replied, impatiently;
"less than was due to the past, beyond a
doubt, and in all likelihood much more than was justified
by the future. I cannot think of it. -- It won't do. -- Then
came your dear mother to torture me farther, with all
her kindness and confidence. Thank Heaven! it did
torture me. I was miserable. Miss Dashwood, you
cannot have an idea of the comfort it gives me to look
back on my own misery. I owe such a grudge to myself
AusSeSe325
for the stupid, rascally folly of my own heart, that all
my past sufferings under it are only triumph and exultation
to me now. Well, I went, left all that I loved, and
went to those to whom, at best, I was only indifferent.
My journey to town -- travelling with my own horses,
and therefore so tediously -- no creature to speak to -- my
own reflections so cheerful -- when I looked forward everything
so inviting! -- when I looked back at Barton, the
picture so soothing! -- oh! it was a blessed journey!"
He stopt.
"Well, sir,"
said Elinor, who, though pitying him,
grew impatient for his departure,
"and this is all?"
"All! -- no, -- have you forgot what passed in town?
-- That infamous letter -- Did she shew it you?"
"Yes, I saw every note that passed."
"When the first of her's reached me, (as it immediately
did, for I was in town the whole time,) what I felt is --
in the common phrase, not to be expressed; in a more
simple one -- perhaps too simple to raise any emotion --
my feelings were very, very painful. -- Every line, every
word was -- in the hackneyed metaphor which their dear
writer, were she here, would forbid -- a dagger to my
heart. To know that Marianne was in town was -- in
the same language -- a thunderbolt. -- Thunderbolts and
daggers! -- what a reproof would she have given
me! -- her taste, her opinions -- I believe they are better
known to me than my own, -- and I am sure they are
dearer."
Elinor's heart, which had undergone many changes
in the course of this extraordinary conversation, was
now softened again; -- yet she felt it her duty to check
such ideas in her companion as the last.
"This is not rightMr. Willoughby. -- Remember that
you are married. Relate only what in your conscience
you think necessary for me to hear."
"Marianne's note, by assuring me that I was still as
dear to her as in former days, that in spite of the many,
many weeks we had been separated, she was as constant
AusSeSe326
in her own feelings, and as full of faith in the constancy
of mine as ever, awakened all my remorse. I say
awakened, because time and London, business and
dissipation, had in some measure quieted it, and I had
been growing a fine hardened villain, fancying myself
indifferent to her, and chusing to fancy that she too
must have become indifferent to me; talking to myself
of our past attachment as a mere idle, trifling, business,
shrugging up my shoulders in proof of its being so, and
silencing every reproach, overcoming every scruple, by
secretly saying now and then, ""I shall be heartily glad
to hear she is well married."" -- But this note made me
know myself better. I felt that she was infinitely dearer
to me than any other woman in the world, and that I was
using her infamously. But everything was then just
settled between Miss Grey and me. To retreat was impossible.
All that I had to do, was to avoid you both.
I sent no answer to Marianne, intending by that means
to preserve myself from her farther notice; and for
some time I was even determined not to call in Berkeley-street;
-- but at last, judging it wiser to affect the air of
a cool, common acquaintance than anything else, I
watched you all safely out of the house one morning, and
left my name."
"Watched us out of the house!"
"Even so. You would be surprised to hear how often
I watched you, how often I was on the point of falling
in with you. I have entered many a shop to avoid your
sight, as the carriage drove by. Lodging as I did in
Bond-street, there was hardly a day in which I did not
catch a glimpse of one or other of you; and nothing
but the most constant watchfulness on my side, a most
invariably prevailing desire to keep out of your sight,
could have separated us so long. I avoided the Middletons
as much as possible, as well as everybody else who
was likely to prove an acquaintance in common. Not
aware of their being in town, however, I blundered on
Sir John, I believe, the first day of his coming, and the
AusSeSe327
day after I had called at Mrs. Jennings's. He asked me to
a party, a dance at his house in the evening. -- Had he
not told me as an inducement that you and your sister
were to be there, I should have felt it too certain a thing,
to trust myself near him. The next morning brought
another short note from Marianne -- still affectionate,
open, artless, confiding -- everything that could make
my conduct most hateful. I could not answer it. I tried
-- but could not frame a sentence. But I thought of her,
I believe, every moment of the day. If you can pity me,
Miss Dashwood, pity my situation as it was then. With
my head and heart full of your sister, I was forced to play
the happy lover to another woman! -- Those three or
four weeks were worse than all. Well, at last, as I need
not tell you, you were forced on me; and what a sweet
figure I cut! -- what an evening of agony it was! --
Marianne, beautiful as an angel on one side, calling me
Willoughby in such a tone! -- Oh! God! -- holding out
her hand to me, asking me for an explanation with those
bewitching eyes fixed in such speaking solicitude on my
face! -- and Sophia, jealous as the devil on the other
hand, looking all that was -- Well, it does not signify;
it is over now. -- Such an evening! -- I ran away from
you all as soon as I could; but not before I had seen
Marianne's sweet face as white as death. -- That was the
last, last look I ever had of her; -- the last manner in
which she appeared to me. It was a horrid sight! --
Yet when I thought of her to-day as really dying, it was
a kind of comfort to me to imagine that I knew exactly
how she would appear to those, who saw her last in this
world. She was before me, constantly before me, as
I travelled, in the same look and hue."
A short pause of mutual thoughtfulness succeeded.
Willoughby first rousing himself, broke it thus:
"Well, let me make haste and be gone. Your sister
is certainly better, certainly out of danger?"
"We are assured of it."
"Your poor mother too! -- doting on Marianne."
AusSeSe328
"But the letter, Mr. Willoughby, your own letter;
have you anything to say about that?"
"Yes, yes, that in particular. Your sister wrote to
me again, you know, the very next morning. You saw
what she said. I was breakfasting at the Ellisons, -- and
her letter, with some others, was brought to me there
from my lodgings. It happened to catch Sophia's eye
before it caught mine -- and its size, the elegance of the
paper, the hand-writing altogether, immediately gave
her a suspicion. Some vague report had reached her
before of my attachment to some young lady in Devonshire,
and what had passed within her observation the
preceding evening had marked who the young lady
was, and made her more jealous than ever. Affecting
that air of playfulness, therefore, which is delightful in
a woman one loves, she opened the letter directly, and
read its contents. She was well paid for her impudence.
She read what made her wretched. Her wretchedness
I could have borne, but her passion -- her malice -- At
all events it must be appeased. And in short -- what do
you think of my wife's style of letter-writing? -- delicate
-- tender -- truly feminine -- was it not?"
"Your wife! -- The letter was in your own hand-writing."
"Yes, but I had only the credit of servilely copying such
sentences as I was ashamed to put my name to. The
original was all her own -- her own happy thoughts and
gentle diction. But what could I do? -- we were engaged,
every thing in preparation, the day almost fixed -- But I
am talking like a fool. Preparation! -- day! -- In honest
words, her money was necessary to me, and in a situation
like mine, any thing was to be done to prevent a rupture.
And after all, what did it signify to my character in the
opinion of Marianne and her friends, in what language
my answer was couched? -- It must have been only to one
end. My business was to declare myself a scoundrel, and
whether I did it with a bow or a bluster was of little
importance. -- ""I am ruined for ever in their opinion --
AusSeSe329
said I to myself -- I am shut out for ever from their
society, they already think me an unprincipled fellow,
this letter will only make them think me a blackguard
one."" Such were my reasonings, as, in a sort of desperate
carelessness, I copied my wife's words, and parted with
the last relics of Marianne. Her three notes -- unluckily
they were all in my pocket-book, or I should have denied
their existence, and hoarded them for ever -- I was forced
to put them up, and could not even kiss them. And
the lock of hair -- that too I had always carried about
me in the same pocket-book, which was now searched
by Madam with the most ingratiating virulence, -- the
dear lock -- all, every memento was torn from me."
"You are very wrong, Mr. Willoughby, very blameable,"
said Elinor, while her voice, in spite of herself,
betrayed her compassionate emotion;
"you ought not
to speak in this way, either of Mrs. Willoughby or my
sister. You have made your own choice. It was not
forced on you. Your wife has a claim to your politeness,
to your respect, at least. She must be attached to you,
or she would not have married you. To treat her with
unkindness, to speak of her slightingly is no atonement
to Marianne -- nor can I suppose it a relief to your own
conscience."
"Do not talk to me of my wife,"
said he with an
heavy sigh. --
"She does not deserve your compassion. --
She knew I had no regard for her when we married. --
Well, married we were, and came down to Combe Magna
to be happy, and afterwards returned to town
to be gay. -- And now do you pity me, Miss Dashwood?
-- or have I said all this to no purpose? -- Am I --
be it only one degree -- am I less guilty in your
opinion than I was before? -- My intentions were not
always wrong. Have I explained away any part of my
guilt?"
"Yes, you have certainly removed something -- a little.
-- You have proved yourself, on the whole, less faulty
than I had believed you. You have proved your heart
AusSeSe330
less wicked, much less wicked. But I hardly know --
the misery that you have inflicted -- I hardly know what
could have made it worse."
"Will you repeat to your sister when she is recovered,
what I have been telling you? -- Let me be a little
lightened too in her opinion as well as in yours. You
tell me that she has forgiven me already. Let me be
able to fancy that a better knowledge of my heart, and
of my present feelings, will draw from her a more spontaneous,
more natural, more gentle, less dignified, forgiveness.
Tell her of my misery and my penitence -- tell her
that my heart was never inconstant to her, and if you
will, that at this moment she is dearer to me than ever."
"I will tell her all that is necessary to what may
comparatively be called, your justification. But you
have not explained to me the particular reason of your
coming now, nor how you heard of her illness."
"Last night, in Drury-lane lobby, I ran against Sir John Middleton,
and when he saw who I was -- for the
first time these two months -- he spoke to me. -- That he
had cut me ever since my marriage, I had seen without
surprise or resentment. Now, however, his good-natured,
honest, stupid soul, full of indignation against
me, and concern for your sister, could not resist the
temptation of telling me what he knew ought to -- though
probably he did not think it would -- vex me horridly. --
As bluntly as he could speak it, therefore, he told me that
Marianne Dashwood was dying of a putrid fever at Cleveland --
a letter that morning received from Mrs. Jennings
declared her danger most imminent -- the Palmers all
gone off in a fright, &c. -- I was too much shocked to
be able to pass myself off as insensible even to the
undiscerning Sir John. His heart was softened in seeing
mine suffer; and so much of his ill-will was done away,
that when we parted, he almost shook me by the hand
while he reminded me of an old promise about a pointer
puppy. What I felt on hearing that your sister was
dying -- and dying too, believing me the greatest villain
AusSeSe331
upon earth, scorning, hating me in her latest moments --
for how could I tell what horrid projects might not have
been imputed? One person I was sure would represent
me as capable of anything -- what I felt was dreadful! --
My resolution was soon made, and at eight o'clock
this morning I was in my carriage. Now you know
all."
Elinor made no answer. Her thoughts were silently
fixed on
the irreparable injury which too early an independence
and its consequent habits of idleness, dissipation,
and luxury, had made in the mind, the character,
the happiness, of a man who, to every advantage of
person and talents, united a disposition naturally open
and honest, and a feeling, affectionate temper. The
world had made him extravagant and vain -- Extravagance
and vanity had made him cold-hearted and selfish.
Vanity, while seeking its own guilty triumph at the
expense of another, had involved him in a real attachment,
which extravagance, or at least its offspring, necessity,
had required to be sacrificed. Each faulty propensity
in leading him to evil, had led him likewise to punishment.
The attachment, from which against honour,
against feeling, against every better interest he had
outwardly torn himself, now, when no longer allowable,
governed every thought; and the connection, for the sake
of which he had, with little scruple, left her sister to misery,
was likely to prove a source of unhappiness to himself of a
far more incurable nature.
From a reverie of this kind she
was recalled at the end of some minutes by Willoughby,
who, rousing himself from a reverie at least equally
painful, started up in preparation for going, and said,
"There is no use in staying here; I must be off."
"Are you going back to town?"
"No -- to Combe Magna. I have business there;
from thence to town in a day or two. Good bye."
He held out his hand. She could not refuse to give
him her's; -- he pressed it with affection.
"And you do think something better of me than you
AusSeSe332
did?" --
said he, letting it fall, and leaning against the
mantle-piece as if forgetting he was to go.
Elinor assured him that she did; -- that she forgave,
pitied, wished him well -- was even interested in his
happiness -- and added some gentle counsel as to the
behaviour most likely to promote it. His answer was
not very encouraging.
"As to that,"
said he,
"I must rub through the world
as well as I can. Domestic happiness is out of the
question. If, however, I am allowed to think that you
and yours feel an interest in my fate and actions, it may
be the means -- it may put me on my guard -- at least, it
will be something to live for. Marianne to be sure is
lost to me for ever. Were I even by any blessed chance
at liberty again" ----
Elinor stopped him with a reproof.
"Well" --
he replied --
"once more good bye. I shall
now go away and live in dread of one event."
"What do you mean?"
"Your sister's marriage."
"You are very wrong. She can never be more lost to
you than she is now."
"But she will be gained by some one else. And if that
some one should be the very he whom, of all others,
I could least bear ---- But I will not stay to rob myself
of all your compassionate good-will, by shewing that
where I have most injured I can least forgive. Good bye, --
God bless you!"
And with these words, he almost ran out of the room.
AusSeSe333
Elinor, for some time after he left her, for some time
even after the sound of his carriage had died away,
remained too much oppressed by a croud of ideas, widely
differing in themselves, but of which sadness was the
general result, to think even of her sister.
Willoughby, he, whom only half an hour ago she had
abhorred as the most worthless of men, Willoughby, in
spite of all his faults, excited a degree of commiseration
for the sufferings produced by them, which made her
think of him as now separated for ever from her family
with a tenderness, a regret, rather in proportion, as she
soon acknowledged within herself -- to his wishes than
to his merits. She felt that his influence over her mind
was heightened by circumstances which ought not in
reason to have weight; by that person of uncommon
attraction, that open, affectionate, and lively manner
which it was no merit to possess; and by that still
ardent love for Marianne, which it was not even innocent
to indulge. But she felt that it was so, long, long before
she could feel his influence less.
When at last she returned to the unconscious Marianne,
she found her just awaking, refreshed by so long and
sweet a sleep to the extent of her hopes. Elinor's heart
was full. The past, the present, the future, Willoughby's
visit, Marianne's safety, and her mother's expected
arrival, threw her altogether into an agitation of spirits
which kept off every indication of fatigue, and made her
only fearful of betraying herself to her sister. Short was
the time, however, in which that fear could affect her,
for within half an hour after Willoughby's leaving the
house, she was again called down stairs by the sound
of another carriage. -- Eager to save her mother from
every unnecessary moment's horrible suspense, she ran
AusSeSe334
immediately into the hall, and reached the outward door
just in time to receive and support her as she entered it.
Mrs. Dashwood, whose terror as they drew near the
house had produced almost the conviction of Marianne's
being no more, had no voice to inquire after her, no
voice even for Elinor; but she, waiting neither for salutation
nor inquiry, instantly gave the joyful relief; -- and her
mother, catching it with all her usual warmth, was in a
moment as much overcome by her happiness, as she had
been before by her fears. She was supported into the
drawing-room between her daughter and her friend; --
and there, shedding tears of joy, though still unable to
speak, embraced Elinor again and again, turning from
her at intervals to press Colonel Brandon's hand, with
a look which spoke at once her gratitude, and her conviction
of his sharing with herself in the bliss of the
moment. He shared it, however, in a silence even greater
than her own.
As soon as Mrs. Dashwood had recovered herself, to
see Marianne was her first desire; and in two minutes
she was with her beloved child, rendered dearer to her
than ever by absence, unhappiness, and danger. Elinor's
delight, as she saw what each felt in the meeting, was
only checked by an apprehension of its robbing Marianne
of farther sleep; -- but Mrs. Dashwood could be calm,
could be even prudent, when the life of a child was at
stake, and Marianne, satisfied in knowing her mother
was near her, and conscious of being too weak for conversation,
submitted readily to the silence and quiet
prescribed by every nurse around her. Mrs. Dashwood
would sit up with her all night, and Elinor, in compliance
with her mother's entreaty, went to bed. But the rest,
which one night entirely sleepless, and many hours of
the most wearing anxiety seemed to make requisite,
was kept off by irritation of spirits. Willoughby,
"poor
Willoughby,"
as she now allowed herself to call him,
was constantly in her thoughts; she would not but
have heard his vindication for the world, and now blamed,
AusSeSe335
now acquitted herself for having judged him so harshly
before. But her promise of relating it to her sister was
invariably painful. She dreaded the performance of it,
dreaded what its effect on Marianne might be; doubted
whether after such an explanation she could ever be
happy with another; and for a moment wished Willoughby
a widower. Then, remembering Colonel Brandon,
reproved herself, felt that to his sufferings and his
constancy far more than to his rival's, the reward of
her sister was due, and wished any thing rather than
Mrs. Willoughby's death.
The shock of Colonel Brandon's errand at Barton had
been much softened to Mrs. Dashwood by her own
previous alarm; for so great was her uneasiness about
Marianne, that she had already determined to set out
for Cleveland on that very day, without waiting for any
farther intelligence, and had so far settled her journey
before his arrival, that the Careys were then expected
every moment to fetch Margaret away, as her mother
was unwilling to take her where there might be infection.
Marianne continued to mend every day, and the
brilliant cheerfulness of Mrs. Dashwood's looks and
spirits proved her to be, as she repeatedly declared herself,
one of the happiest women in the world.
Elinor
could not hear the declaration, nor witness its proofs
without sometimes wondering whether her mother
ever recollected Edward. But Mrs. Dashwood, trusting
to the temperate account of her own disappointment
whichElinor had sent her, was led away by the exuberance
of her joy to think only of what would increase
it. Marianne was restored to her from a danger in
which, as she now began to feel, her own mistaken
judgment in encouraging the unfortunate attachment
to Willoughby, had contributed to place her; -- and
in her recovery she had yet another source of joy unthought
of by Elinor. It was thus imparted to her, as
soon as any opportunity of private conference between
them occurred.
AusSeSe336
"At last we are alone. My Elinor, you do not yet
know all my happiness. Colonel Brandon loves Marianne.
He has told me so himself."
Her daughter, feeling by turns both pleased and
pained, surprised and not surprised, was all silent
attention.
"You are never like me, dearElinor, or I should
wonder at your composure now. Had I sat down to
wish for any possible good to my family, I should have
fixed on Colonel Brandon's marrying one of you as the
object most desirable. And I believe Marianne will be
the most happy with him of the two."
Elinor was half inclined to ask her reason for thinking
so, because satisfied that none founded on an impartial
consideration of their age, characters, or feelings, could
be given; -- but her mother must always be carried away
by her imagination on any interesting subject, and
therefore instead of an inquiry, she passed it off with
a smile.
"He opened his whole heart to me yesterday as we
travelled. It came out quite unawares, quite undesignedly.
I, you may well believe, could talk of nothing
but my child; -- he could not conceal his distress; I saw
that it equalled my own, and he perhaps, thinking that
mere friendship, as the world now goes, would not justify
so warm a sympathy -- or rather not thinking at all, I
suppose -- giving way to irresistible feelings, made me
acquainted with his earnest, tender, constant, affection
for Marianne. He has loved her, my Elinor, ever since
the first moment of seeing her."
Here, however, Elinor perceived, -- not the language,
not the professions of Colonel Brandon, but the natural
embellishments of her mother's active fancy, which
fashioned every thing delightful to her, as it chose.
"His regard for her, infinitely surpassing anything
thatWilloughby ever felt or feigned, as much more
warm, as more sincere or constant -- which ever we are
to call it -- has subsisted through all the knowledge of
AusSeSe337
dearMarianne's unhappy prepossession for that worthless
young man! -- and without selfishness -- without
encouraging a hope! -- could he have seen her unhappy
with another -- Such a noble mind! -- such openness,
such sincerity! -- no one can be deceived in him."
"Colonel Brandon's character,"
said Elinor,
"as an
excellent man, is well established."
"I know it is" --
replied her mother seriously,
"or after
such a warning, I should be the last to encourage such
affection, or even to be pleased by it. But his coming
for me as he did, with such active, such ready friendship,
is enough to prove him one of the worthiest of men."
"His character, however,"
answered Elinor,
"does
not rest on one act of kindness, to which his affection for
Marianne, were humanity out of the case, would have
prompted him. To Mrs. Jennings, to the Middletons,
he has been long and intimately known; they equally
love and respect him; and even my own knowledge of
him, though lately acquired, is very considerable; and
so highly do I value and esteem him, that if Marianne
can be happy with him, I shall be as ready as yourself
to think our connection the greatest blessing to us in the
world. What answer did you give him? -- Did you allow
him to hope?"
"Oh! my love, I could not then talk of hope to him
or to myself. Marianne might at that moment be dying.
But he did not ask for hope or encouragement. His
was an involuntary confidence, an irrepressible effusion
to a soothing friend -- not an application to a parent.
Yet after a time I did say, for at first I was quite overcome
-- that if she lived, as I trusted she might, my
greatest happiness would lie in promoting their marriage;
and since our arrival, since our delightful security I have
repeated it to him more fully, have given him every
encouragement in my power. Time, a very little time,
I tell him, will do everything; -- Marianne's heart is not
to be wasted for ever on such a man as Willoughby. --
His own merits must soon secure it."
AusSeSe338
"To judge from the Colonel's spirits, however, you
have not yet made him equally sanguine."
"No. -- He thinks Marianne's affection too deeply
rooted for any change in it under a great length of time,
and even supposing her heart again free, is too diffident
of himself to believe, that with such a difference of age
and disposition, he could ever attach her. There, however,
he is quite mistaken. His age is only so much
beyond her's, as to be an advantage, as to make his
character and principles fixed; -- and his disposition,
I am well convinced, is exactly the very one to make
your sister happy. And his person, his manners too,
are all in his favour. My partiality does not blind me;
he certainly is not so handsome as Willoughby -- but at
the same time, there is something much more pleasing
in his countenance. -- There was always a something, --
if you remember, -- in Willoughby's eyes at times, which
I did not like."
Elinor could not remember it; -- but her mother,
without waiting for her assent, continued,
"And his manners, the Colonel's manners are not only
more pleasing to me than Willoughby's ever were, but
they are of a kind I well know to be more solidly attaching
to Marianne. Their gentleness, their genuine
attention to other people, and their manly unstudied
simplicity is much more accordant with her real disposition,
than the liveliness -- often artificial, and often ill-timed
of the other. I am very sure myself, that had
Willoughby turned out as really amiable, as he has
proved himself the contrary, Marianne would yet never
have been so happy with him, as she will be with Colonel Brandon."
She paused. -- Her daughter could not quite agree
with her, but her dissent was not heard, and therefore
gave no offence.
"At Delaford, she will be within an easy distance of
me,"
added Mrs. Dashwood,
"even if I remain at
Barton; and in all probability, -- for I hear it is a large
AusSeSe339
village, -- indeed there certainly must be some small
house or cottage close by, that would suit us quite as
well as our present situation."
Poor Elinor!
-- here was a new scheme for getting
her to Delaford! --
but her spirit was stubborn.
"His fortune too! -- for at my time of life you know,
everybody cares about that; -- and though I neither
know, nor desire to know, what it really is, I am sure it
must be a good one."
Here they were interrupted by the entrance of a third
person, and Elinor withdrew to think it all over in private,
to wish success to her friend, and yet in wishing it, to feel
a pang for Willoughby.
AusSeSe340
Marianne's illness, though weakening in its kind,
had not been long enough to make her recovery slow;
and with youth, natural strength, and her mother's
presence in aid, it proceeded so smoothly as to enable her
to remove, within four days after the arrival of the latter,
into Mrs. Palmer's dressing-room. When there, at her
own particular request, for she was impatient to pour
forth her thanks to him for fetching her mother, Colonel Brandon
was invited to visit her.
His emotion in entering the room, in seeing her
altered looks,and in receiving the pale hand which she
immediately held out to him, was such, as, in Elinor's
conjecture,
must arise from something more than his
affection for Marianne, or the consciousness of its being
known to others;
and she soon discovered in his melancholy
eye and varying complexion as he looked at her
sister,
the probable recurrence of many past scenes of
misery to his mind, brought back by that resemblance
between Marianne and Eliza already acknowledged, and
now strengthened by the hollow eye, the sickly skin,
the posture of reclining weakness, and the warm acknowledgment
of peculiar obligation.
Mrs. Dashwood, not less watchful of what passed than
her daughter, but with a mind very differently influenced,
and therefore watching to very different effect, saw
nothing in the Colonel's behaviour but what arose from
the most simple and self-evident sensations, while in
the actions and words of Marianne she persuaded herself
to think that something more than gratitude already
dawned.
At the end of another day or two, Marianne growing
visibly stronger every twelve hours, Mrs. Dashwood,
urged equally by her own and her daughter's wishes,
AusSeSe341
began to talk of removing to Barton. On her measures
depended those of her two friends; Mrs. Jennings could
not quit Cleveland during the Dashwoods' stay, and
Colonel Brandon was soon brought, by their united
request, to consider his own abode there as equally
determinate, if not equally indispensable. At his and
Mrs. Jennings's united request in return, Mrs. Dashwood
was prevailed on to accept the use of his carriage
on her journey back, for the better accommodation of
her sick child; and the Colonel, at the joint invitation of
Mrs. Dashwood and Mrs. Jennings, whose active good-nature
made her friendly and hospitable for other
people as well as herself, engaged with pleasure to redeem
it by a visit at the cottage, in the course of a few
weeks.
The day of separation and departure arrived; and
Marianne, after taking so particular and lengthened a
leave of Mrs. Jennings, one so earnestly grateful, so full
of respect and kind wishes as seemed due to her own
heart from a secret acknowledgment of past inattention,
and bidding Colonel Brandon farewel with the cordiality
of a friend, was carefully assisted by him into the carriage,
of which he seemed anxious that she should engross at
least half. Mrs. Dashwood and Elinor then followed,
and the others were left by themselves, to talk of the
travellers, and feel their own dulness, till Mrs. Jennings
was summoned to her chaise to take comfort in the gossip
of her maid for the loss of her two young companions;
and Colonel Brandon immediately afterwards took his
solitary way to Delaford.
The Dashwoods were two days on the road, and
Marianne bore her journey on both, without essential
fatigue. Every thing that the most zealous affection,
the most solicitous care could do to render her comfortable,
was the office of each watchful companion, and each
found their reward in her bodily ease, and her calmness
of spirits. To Elinor, the observation of the latter was
particularly grateful. She, who had seen her week after
AusSeSe342
week so constantly suffering, oppressed by anguish of
heart which she had neither courage to speak of, nor
fortitude to conceal, now saw with a joy, which no other
could equally share, an apparent composure of mind,
which, in being the result as she trusted of serious reflection,
must eventually lead her to contentment and
cheerfulness.
As they approached Barton, indeed, and entered on
scenes, of which every field and every tree brought some
peculiar, some painful recollection, she grew silent and
thoughtful, and turning away her face from their notice,
sat earnestly gazing through the window. But here,
Elinor could neither wonder nor blame; and when she
saw, as she assisted Marianne from the carriage, that
she had been crying, she saw only an emotion too
natural in itself to raise anything less tender than pity,
and in its unobtrusiveness entitled to praise. In the
whole of her subsequent manner, she traced the direction
of a mind awakened to reasonable exertion; for no
sooner had they entered their common sitting-room,
than Marianne turned her eyes around it with a look of
resolute firmness, as if determined at once to accustom
herself to the sight of every object with which the
remembrance of Willoughby could be connected. -- She
said little, but every sentence aimed at cheerfulness, and
though a sigh sometimes escaped her, it never passed
away without the atonement of a smile. After dinner
she would try her piano-forte=. She went to it; but the
music on which her eye first rested was an opera, procured
for her by Willoughby, containing some of their
favourite duets, and bearing on its outward leaf her
own name in his hand writing. -- That would not do. --
She shook her head, put the music aside, and after
running over the keys for a minute complained of
feebleness in her fingers, and closed the instrument
again; declaring however with firmness as she did so,
that she should in future practise much.
The next morning produced no abatement in these
AusSeSe343
happy symptoms. On the contrary, with a mind and
body alike strengthened by rest, she looked and spoke
with more genuine spirit, anticipating the pleasure of
Margaret's return, and talking of the dear family party
which would then be restored, of their mutual pursuits
and cheerful society as the only happiness worth a wish.
"When the weather is settled, and I have recovered
my strength,"
said she,
"we will take long walks together
every day. We will walk to the farm at the edge
of the down, and see how the children go on; we will
walk to Sir John's new plantations at Barton-Cross, and
the Abbeyland; and we will often go to the old ruins of
the Priory, and try to trace its foundations as far as we
are told they once reached. I know we shall be happy.
I know the summer will pass happily away. I mean
never to be later in rising than six, and from that time
till dinner I shall divide every moment between music and
reading. I have formed my plan, and am determined
to enter on a course of serious study. Our own library
is too well known to me, to be resorted to for anything
beyond mere amusement. But there are many works
well worth reading, at the Park; and there are others of
more modern production which I know I can borrow
of Colonel Brandon. By reading only six hours a-day,
I shall gain in the course of a twelvemonth a great deal
of instruction which I now feel myself to want."
Elinor honoured her for a plan which originated so
nobly as this; though smiling to see the same eager
fancy which had been leading her to the extreme of
languid indolence and selfish repining, now at work
in introducing excess into a scheme of such rational
employment and virtuous self-controul. Her smile
however changed to a sigh when she remembered,
that her promise to Willoughby was yet unfulfilled,
and feared she had that to communicate which might
again unsettle the mind of Marianne, and ruin at least
for a time this fair prospect of busy tranquillity. Willing
therefore to delay the evil hour, she resolved to wait till
AusSeSe344
her sister's health were more secure, before she appointed
it. But the resolution was made only to be broken.
Marianne had been two or three days at home, before
the weather was fine enough for an invalid like herself
to venture out. But at last a soft, genial morning
appeared; such as might tempt the daughter's wishes
and the mother's confidence; and Marianne, leaning
on Elinor's arm, was authorised to walk as long as she
could without fatigue, in the lane before the house.
The sisters set out at a pace, slow as the feebleness
of Marianne in an exercise hitherto untried since her
illness required; -- and they had advanced only so far
beyond the house as to admit a full view of the hill,
the important hill behind, when pausing with her eyes
turned towards it, Marianne calmly said,
"There, exactly there" --
pointing with one hand,
"on that projecting mound, -- there I fell; and there I
first saw Willoughby."
Her voice sunk with the word, but presently reviving
she added,
"I am thankful to find that I can look with so little
pain on the spot! -- shall we ever talk on that subject,
Elinor?" --
hesitatingly it was said. --
"Or will it be
wrong? -- I can talk of it now, I hope, as I ought to do." --
Elinor tenderly invited her to be open.
"As for regret,"
said Marianne,
"I have done with
that, as far as he is concerned. I do not mean to talk to
you of what my feelings have been for him, but what
they are now. -- At present, if I could be satisfied on one
point, if I could be allowed to think that he was not
always acting a part, not always deceiving me; -- but
above all, if I could be assured that he never was so very
wicked as my fears have sometimes fancied him, since
the story of that unfortunate girl" --
She stopt. -- Elinor joyfully treasured her words as she
answered.
"If you could be assured of that, you think you should
be easy."
AusSeSe345
"Yes. My peace of mind is doubly involved in it; --
for not only is it horrible to suspect a person, who has
been what he has been to me, of such designs, -- but what
must it make me appear to myself? -- What in a situation
like mine, but a most shamefully unguarded affection
could expose me to" --
"How then,"
asked her sister,
"would you account
for his behaviour?"
"I would suppose him, -- Oh! how gladly would I
suppose him, only fickle, very, very fickle."
Elinor said no more. She was debating within herself
on the eligibility of beginning her story directly, or postponing
it till Marianne were in stronger health; -- and
they crept on for a few minutes in silence.
"I am not wishing him too much good,"
said Marianne
at last with a sigh,
"when I wish his secret reflections
may be no more unpleasant than my own. He will
suffer enough in them."
"Do you compare your conduct with his?"
"No. I compare it with what it ought to have been;
I compare it with yours."
"Our situations have borne little resemblance."
"They have borne more than our conduct. -- Do not,
my dearest Elinor, let your kindness defend what I know
your judgment must censure. My illness has made me
think -- It has given me leisure and calmness for serious
recollection. Long before I was enough recovered to
talk, I was perfectly able to reflect. I considered the
past; I saw in my own behaviour since the beginning
of our acquaintance with him last autumn, nothing
but a series of imprudence towards myself, and want
of kindness to others. I saw that my own feelings had
prepared my sufferings, and that my want of fortitude
under them had almost led me to the grave. My illness,
I well knew, had been entirely brought on by myself,
by such negligence of my own health, as I had felt even
at the time to be wrong. Had I died, -- it would have
been self-destruction. I did not know my danger till
AusSeSe346
the danger was removed; but with such feelings as
these reflections gave me, I wonder at my recovery, --
wonder that the very eagerness of my desire to live, to
have time for atonement to my God, and to you all, did
not kill me at once. Had I died, -- in what peculiar
misery should I have left you, my nurse, my friend, my
sister! -- You, who had seen all the fretful selfishness
of my latter days; who had known all the murmurings
of my heart! -- How should I have lived in your remembrance!
-- My mother too! How could you have consoled
her! -- I cannot express my own abhorrence of myself.
Whenever I looked towards the past, I saw some duty
neglected, or some failing indulged. Every body seemed
injured by me. The kindness, the unceasing kindness
of Mrs. Jennings, I had repaid with ungrateful contempt.
To the Middletons, the Palmers, the Steeles, to every
common acquaintance even, I had been insolent and
unjust; with an heart hardened against their merits,
and a temper irritated by their very attention. -- To
John, to Fanny, -- yes, even to them, little as they
deserve, I had given less than their due. But you, --
you above all, above my mother, had been wronged by
me. I, and only I, knew your heart and its sorrows;
yet, to what did it influence me? -- not to any compassion
that could benefit you or myself. -- Your example was
before me: but to what avail? -- Was I more considerate
of you and your comfort? Did I imitate your
forbearance, or lessen your restraints, by taking any
part in those offices of general complaisance or particular
gratitude which you had hitherto been left to discharge
alone? -- No; -- not less when I knew you to be unhappy,
than when I had believed you at ease, did I turn away
from every exertion of duty or friendship; scarcely
allowing sorrow to exist but with me, regretting only
that heart which had deserted and wronged me, and
leaving you, for whom I professed an unbounded affection,
to be miserable for my sake."
Here ceased the rapid flow of her self-reproving spirit;
AusSeSe347
and Elinor, impatient to sooth, though too honest to
flatter, gave her instantly that praise and support which
her frankness and her contrition so well deserved.
Marianne pressed her hand and replied,
"You are very good. -- The future must be my proof.
I have laid down my plan, and if I am capable of
adhering to it -- my feelings shall be governed and my
temper improved. They shall no longer worry others,
nor torture myself. I shall now live solely for my family.
You, my mother, and Margaret, must henceforth be all
the world to me; you will share my affections entirely
between you. From you, from my home, I shall never
again have the smallest incitement to move; and if
I do mix in other society it will be only to shew that my
spirit is humbled, my heart amended, and that I can
practise the civilities, the lesser duties of life, with
gentleness, and forbearance. As for Willoughby -- to
say that I shall soon or that I shall ever forget him,
would be idle. His remembrance can be overcome by
no change of circumstances or opinions. But it shall
be regulated, it shall be checked by religion, by reason,
by constant employment."
She paused -- and added in a lower voice,
"If I could
but know his heart, everything would become easy."
Elinor, who had now been for some time reflecting
on the propriety or impropriety of speedily hazarding
her narration, without feeling at all nearer decision than
at first, heard this; and perceiving that as reflection did
nothing, resolution must do all, soon found herself
leading to the fact.
She managed the recital, as she hoped, with address;
prepared her anxious listener with caution; related
simply and honestly the chief points on whichWilloughby
grounded his apology; did justice to his repentance,
and softened only his protestations of present regard.
Marianne said not a word. -- She trembled, her eyes were
fixed on the ground, and her lips became whiter than
even sickness had left them. A thousand inquiries sprung
AusSeSe348
up from her heart, but she dared not urge one. She
caught every syllable with panting eagerness; her hand,
unknowingly to herself, closely pressed her sister's, and
tears covered her cheeks.
Elinor, dreading her being tired, led her towards home;
and till they reached the door of the cottage, easily
conjecturing what her curiosity must be though no
question was suffered to speak it, talked of nothing but
Willoughby, and their conversation together; and
was carefully minute in every particular of speech and
look, where minuteness could be safely indulged. As
soon as they entered the house, Marianne with a kiss
of gratitude and these two words just articulate through
her tears,
"Tell mama,"
withdrew from her sister and
walked slowly up stairs. Elinor would not attempt
to disturb a solitude so reasonable as what she now
sought; and with a mind anxiously pre-arranging its
result, and a resolution of reviving the subject again,
should Marianne fail to do it, she turned into the parlour
to fulfil her parting injunction.
AusSeSe349
Mrs. Dashwood did not hear unmoved the vindication
of her former favourite.
She rejoiced in his being
cleared from some part of his imputed guilt; -- she was
sorry for him; -- she wished him happy. But the feelings
of the past could not be recalled. -- Nothing could restore
him with a faith unbroken -- a character unblemished,
to Marianne. Nothing could do away the knowledge
of what the latter had suffered through his means, nor
remove the guilt of his conduct towards Eliza. Nothing
could replace him, therefore, in her former esteem, nor
injure the interests of Colonel Brandon.
Had Mrs. Dashwood, like her daughter, heard
Willoughby's story from himself -- had she witnessed his
distress, and been under the influence of his countenance
and his manner, it is probable that her compassion
would have been greater. But it was neither in Elinor's
power, nor in her wish, to rouse such feelings in another,
by her retailed explanation, as had at first been called
forth in herself. Reflection had given calmness to her
judgment, and sobered her own opinion of Willoughby's
deserts; -- she wished, therefore, to declare only the
simple truth, and lay open such facts as were really due
to his character, without any embellishment of tenderness
to lead the fancy astray.
In the evening, when they were all three together,
Marianne began voluntarily to speak of him again; --
but that it was not without an effort, the restless, unquiet
thoughtfulness in which she had been for some time
previously sitting -- her rising colour, as she spoke -- and
her unsteady voice, plainly shewed.
"I wish to assure you both,"
said she,
"that I see
every thing -- as you can desire me to do."
Mrs. Dashwood would have interrupted her instantly
AusSeSe350
with soothing tenderness, had not Elinor, who really
wished to hear her sister's unbiassed opinion, by an
eager sign, engaged her silence. Marianne slowly continued --
"It is a great relief to me -- whatElinor told me this
morning -- I have now heard exactly what I wished to
hear." --
For some moments her voice was lost; but
recovering herself, she added, and with greater calmness
than before --
"I am now perfectly satisfied, I wish for
no change. I never could have been happy with him,
after knowing, as sooner or later I must have known,
all this. -- I should have had no confidence, no esteem.
Nothing could have done it away to my feelings."
"I know it -- I know it,"
cried her mother.
Happy
with a man of libertine practices! -- With one who had
so injured the peace of the dearest of our friends, and
the best of men! -- No -- my Marianne has not a heart to
be made happy with such a man! -- Her conscience, her
sensitive conscience, would have felt all that the conscience
of her husband ought to have felt."
Marianne sighed, and repeated --
"I wish for no
change."
"You consider the matter,"
said Elinor,
"exactly as
a good mind and a sound understanding must consider
it; and I dare say, you perceive, as well as myself, not
only in this, but in many other circumstances, reason
enough to be convinced that your marriage must have
involved you in many certain troubles and disappointments,
in which you would have been poorly supported
by an affection, on his side, much less certain. Had you
married, you must have been always poor. His expensiveness
is acknowledged even by himself, and his whole
conduct declares that self-denial is a word hardly
understood by him. His demands and your inexperience
together on a small, very small income, must have
brought on distresses which would not be the less
grievous to you, from having been entirely unknown
and unthought of before. Your sense of honour and
AusSeSe351
honesty would have led you, I know, when aware of
your situation, to attempt all the economy that would
appear to you possible; and perhaps, as long as your
frugality retrenched only on your own comfort, you
might have been suffered to practise it, but beyond that
-- and how little could the utmost of your single management
do to stop the ruin which had begun before your
marriage? -- Beyond that, had you endeavoured, however
reasonably, to abridge his enjoyments, is it not to
be feared, that instead of prevailing on feelings so selfish
to consent to it, you would have lessened your own
influence on his heart, and made him regret the connection
which had involved him in such difficulties?"
Marianne's lips quivered, and she repeated the word
"Selfish?"
in a tone that implied --
"do you really
think him selfish?"
"The whole of his behaviour,"
replied Elinor,
"from
the beginning to the end of the affair, has been grounded
on selfishness. It was selfishness which first made him
sport with your affections; which afterwards, when his
own were engaged, made him delay the confession of it,
and which finally carried him from Barton. His own
enjoyment, or his own ease, was, in every particular,
his ruling principle."
"It is very true. My happiness never was his object."
"At present,"
continued Elinor,
"he regrets what he
has done. And why does he regret it? -- Because he finds
it has not answered towards himself. It has not made
him happy. His circumstances are now unembarrassed
-- he suffers from no evil of that kind; and he thinks
only that he has married a woman of a less amiable
temper than yourself. But does it thence follow that
had he married you, he would have been happy? -- The
inconveniencies would have been different. He would
then have suffered under the pecuniary distresses which,
because they are removed, he now reckons as nothing.
He would have had a wife of whose temper he could
make no complaint, but he would have been always
AusSeSe352
necessitous -- always poor; and probably would soon
have learnt to rank the innumerable comforts of a clear
estate and good income as of far more importance, even
to domestic happiness, than the mere temper of a wife."
"I have not a doubt of it,"
said Marianne;
"and
I have nothing to regret -- nothing but my own folly."
"Rather say your mother's imprudence, my child,"
said Mrs. Dashwood;
"she must be answerable."
Marianne would not let her proceed; -- and Elinor,
satisfied that each felt their own error, wished to avoid
any survey of the past that might weaken her sister's
spirits; she therefore, pursuing the first subject,
immediately continued,
"One observation may, I think, be fairly drawn from
the whole of the story -- that all Willoughby's difficulties
have arisen from the first offence against virtue, in his
behaviour to Eliza Williams. That crime has been the
origin of every lesser one, and of all his present discontents."
Marianne assented most feelingly to the remark; and
her mother was led by it to an enumeration of Colonel Brandon's
injuries and merits, warm as friendship and
design could unitedly dictate. Her daughter did not
look, however, as if much of it were heard by her.
Elinor, according to her expectation, saw on the two
or three following days, that Marianne did not continue
to gain strength as she had done; but while her resolution
was unsubdued, and she still tried to appear cheerful
and easy, her sister could safely trust to the effect of
time upon her health.
Margaret returned, and the family were again all
restored to each other, again quietly settled at the
cottage, and if not pursuing their usual studies with quite
so much vigour as when they first came to Barton, at
least planning a vigorous prosecution of them in future.
Elinor grew impatient for some tidings of Edward.
She had heard nothing of him since her leaving London,
nothing new of his plans, nothing certain even of his
AusSeSe353
present abode. Some letters had passed between her
and her brother, in consequence of Marianne's illness;
and in the first of John's, there had been this sentence:
-- "We know nothing of our unfortunate Edward, and
can make no inquiries on so prohibited a subject, but
conclude him to be still at Oxford;"
which was all the
intelligence of Edward afforded her by the correspondence,
for his name was not even mentioned in any of
the succeeding letters. She was not doomed, however,
to be long in ignorance of his measures.
Their man-servant had been sent one morning to
Exeter on business; and when, as he waited at table,
he had satisfied the inquiries of his mistress as to the
event of his errand, this was his voluntary communication --
"I suppose you know ma'am, that Mr. Ferrars is
married."
Marianne gave a violent start, fixed her eyes upon
Elinor, saw her turning pale, and fell back in her
chair in hysterics. Mrs. Dashwood, whose eyes, as she
answered the servant's inquiry, had intuitively taken
the same direction, was shocked to perceive by Elinor's
countenance how much she really suffered, and in a
moment afterwards, alike distressed by Marianne's
situation, knew not on which child to bestow her
principal attention.
The servant, who saw only that Miss Marianne was
taken ill, had sense enough to call one of the maids, who,
with Mrs. Dashwood's assistance, supported her into
the other room. By that time, Marianne was rather
better, and her mother leaving her to the care of Margaret
and the maid, returned to Elinor, who, though still much
disordered, had so far recovered the use of her reason
and voice as to be just beginning an inquiry of Thomas,
as to the source of his intelligence. Mrs. Dashwood
immediately took all that trouble on herself; and
Elinor had the benefit of the information without the
exertion of seeking it.
AusSeSe354
"Who told you that Mr. Ferrars was married,
Thomas?"
"I see Mr. Ferrars myself, ma'am, this morning in
Exeter, and his lady tooMiss Steele as was. They was
stopping in a chaise at the door of the New London Inn,
as I went there with a message from Sally at the Park
to her brother, who is one of the post-boys. I happened
to look up as I went by the chaise, and so I see directly
it was the youngest Miss Steele; so I took off my hat, and
she knew me and called to me, and inquired after you,
ma'am, and the young ladies, especially Miss Marianne,
and bid me I should give her compliments and Mr. Ferrars's,
their best compliments and service, and how
sorry they was they had not time to come on and see you,
but they was in a great hurry to go forwards, for they
was going further down for a little while, but howsever,
when they come back, they'd make sure to come and
see you."
"But did she tell you she was married, Thomas?"
"Yes, ma'am. She smiled, and said how she had
changed her name since she was in these parts. She was
always a very affable and free-spoken young lady, and
very civil behaved. So, I made free to wish her joy."
"Was Mr. Ferrars in the carriage with her?"
"Yes, ma'am, I just see him leaning back in it, but
he did not look up; -- he never was a gentleman much
for talking."
Elinor's heart could easily account for his not putting
himself forward; and Mrs. Dashwood probably found
the same explanation.
"Was there no one else in the carriage?"
"No, ma'am, only they two."
"Do you know where they came from?"
"They come straight from town, as Miss Lucy -- Mrs. Ferrars
told me."
"And are going farther westward?"
"Yes, ma'am -- but not to bide long. They will soon
be back again, and then they'd be sure and call here."
AusSeSe355
Mrs. Dashwood now looked at her daughter; but
Elinor knew better than to expect them. She recognised
the whole of Lucy in the message, and was very confident
that Edward would never come near them. She observed,
in a low voice, to her mother, that they were probably
going down to Mr. Pratt's, near Plymouth.
Thomas's intelligence seemed over. Elinor looked as
if she wished to hear more.
"Did you see them off, before you came away?"
"No, ma'am -- the horses was just coming out, but
I could not bide any longer; I was afraid of being late."
"Did Mrs. Ferrars look well?"
"Yes, ma'am, she said how she was very well; and
to my mind she was always a very handsome young
lady -- and she seemed vastly contented."
Mrs. Dashwood could think of no other question, and
Thomas and the table-cloth, now alike needless, were
soon afterwards dismissed. Marianne had already
sent to say that she should eat nothing more. Mrs. Dashwood's
and Elinor's appetites were equally lost,
and Margaret might think herself very well off, that
with so much uneasiness as both her sisters had lately
experienced, so much reason as they had often had to
be careless of their meals, she had never been obliged
to go without her dinner before.
When the dessert and the wine were arranged, and
Mrs. Dashwood and Elinor were left by themselves,
they remained long together in a similarity of thoughtfulness
and silence. Mrs. Dashwood feared to hazard
any remark, and ventured not to offer consolation.
She now found that she had erred in relying on Elinor's
representation of herself; and justly concluded that
every thing had been expressly softened at the time,
to spare her from an increase of unhappiness, suffering
as she then had suffered for Marianne. She found that
she had been misled by the careful, the considerate
attention of her daughter, to think the attachment,
which once she had so well understood, much slighter
AusSeSe356
in reality, than she had been wont to believe, or than it
was now proved to be. She feared that under this
persuasion she had been unjust, inattentive, nay, almost
unkind, to her Elinor; -- that Marianne's affliction,
because more acknowledged, more immediately before
her, had too much engrossed her tenderness, and led her
away to forget that in Elinor she might have a daughter
suffering almost as much, certainly with less self-provocation,
and greater fortitude.
AusSeSe357
Elinor now found the difference between the expectation
of an unpleasant event, however certain the mind
may be told to consider it, and certainty itself. She
now found, that in spite of herself,
she had always
admitted a hope, while Edward remained single, that
something would occur to prevent his marrying Lucy;
that some resolution of his own, some mediation of
friends, or some more eligible opportunity of establishment
for the lady, would arise to assist the happiness
of all.
But he was now married, and she condemned her
heart for the lurking flattery, which so much heightened
the pain of the intelligence.
That he should be married so soon, before (as she
imagined) he could be in orders, and consequently before
he could be in possession of the living, surprised her
a little at first. But she soon saw how likely it was that
Lucy, in her self-provident care, in her haste to secure
him, should overlook every thing but the risk of delay.
They were married, married in town, and now hastening
down to her uncle's. What had Edward felt on being
within four miles of Barton, on seeing her mother's
servant, on hearing Lucy's message!
They would soon,
she supposed,
be settled at Delaford.
-- Delaford, -- that place in which so much conspired to
give her an interest; which she wished to be acquainted
with, and yet desired to avoid. She saw them in an instant
in their parsonage-house; saw in Lucy, the active,
contriving manager, uniting at once a desire of smart
appearance, with the utmost frugality, and ashamed
to be suspected of half her economical practices; --
pursuing her own interest in every thought, courting
the favour of Colonel Brandon, of Mrs. Jennings, and
of every wealthy friend.
In Edward -- she knew not
AusSeSe358
what she saw, nor what she wished to see; -- happy or
unhappy, -- nothing pleased her; she turned away her
head from every sketch of him.
Elinor flattered herself that some one of their connections
in London would write to them to announce the
event, and give farther particulars, -- but day after day
passed off, and brought no letter, no tidings. Though
uncertain that any one were to blame, she found fault
with every absent friend. They were all thoughtless or
indolent.
"When do you write to Colonel Brandon, ma'am?"
was an inquiry which sprung from the impatience of
her mind to have something going on.
"I wrote to him, my love, last week, and rather
expect to see, than to hear from him again. I earnestly
pressed his coming to us, and should not be surprised to
see him walk in to-day or to-morrow, or any day."
This was gaining something, something to look forward
to. Colonel Brandon must have some information to give.
Scarcely had she so determined it, when the figure
of a man on horseback drew her eyes to the window. He
stopt at their gate.
It was a gentleman, it was Colonel Brandon
himself. Now she should hear more; and she
trembled in expectation of it. But -- it was not Colonel Brandon
-- neither his air -- nor his height. Were it
possible, she should say it must be Edward. She
looked again. He had just dismounted; -- she could
not be mistaken; -- it was Edward. She moved away
and sat down.
"He comes from Mr. Pratt's purposely
to see us. I will be calm; I will be mistress of myself."
In a moment she perceived that the others were
likewise aware of the mistake. She saw her mother and
Marianne change colour; saw them look at herself, and
whisper a few sentences to each other. She would have
given the world to be able to speak -- and to make them
understand that she hoped no coolness, no slight, would
appear in their behaviour to him; -- but she had no utterance,
and was obliged to leave all to their own discretion.
AusSeSe359
Not a syllable passed aloud. They all waited in silence
for the appearance of their visitor. His footsteps were
heard along the gravel path; in a moment he was in
the passage; and in another, he was before them.
His countenance, as he entered the room, was not
too happy, even for Elinor. His complexion was white
with agitation, and he looked as if fearful of his reception,
and conscious that he merited no kind one. Mrs. Dashwood,
however, conforming, as she trusted, to the
wishes of that daughter, by whom she then meant in
the warmth of her heart to be guided in everything,
met him with a look of forced complacency, gave him
her hand, and wished him joy.
He coloured, and stammered out an unintelligible
reply. Elinor's lips had moved with her mother's, and
when the moment of action was over, she wished that
she had shaken hands with him too. But it was then too
late, and with a countenance meaning to be open, she
sat down again and talked of the weather.
Marianne had retreated as much as possible out of
sight, to conceal her distress; and Margaret, understanding
some part, but not the whole, of the case,
thought it incumbent on her to be dignified, and therefore
took a seat as far from him as she could, and
maintained a strict silence.
When Elinor had ceased to rejoice in the dryness of
the season, a very awful pause took place. It was put
an end to by Mrs. Dashwood, who felt obliged
to hope
that he had left Mrs. Ferrars very well.
In an hurried
manner, he replied in the affirmative.
Another pause.
Elinor, resolving to exert herself, though fearing the
sound of her own voice, now said,
"Is Mrs. Ferrars at Longstaple?"
"At Longstaple!"
he replied, with an air of surprise --
"No, my mother is in town."
"I meant,"
said Elinor, taking up some work from
the table,
"to inquire after Mrs. Edward Ferrars."
AusSeSe360
She dared not look up; -- but her mother and Marianne
both turned their eyes on him. He coloured, seemed
perplexed, looked doubtingly, and after some hesitation,
said,
"Perhaps you mean -- my brother -- you mean Mrs.
-- Mrs. Robert Ferrars."
"Mrs. Robert Ferrars!" --
was repeated by Marianne
and her mother, in an accent of the utmost amazement;
-- and though Elinor could not speak, even her eyes
were fixed on him with the same impatient wonder. He
rose from his seat and walked to the window, apparently
from not knowing what to do; took up a pair of scissars
that lay there, and while spoiling both them and their
sheath by cutting the latter to pieces as he spoke, said,
in an hurried voice,
"Perhaps you do not know -- you may not have
heard that my brother is lately married to -- to the
youngest -- to Miss Lucy Steele."
His words were echoed with unspeakable astonishment
by all but Elinor, who sat with her head leaning
over her work, in a state of such agitation as made her
hardly know where she was.
"Yes,"
said he,
"they were married last week, and
are now at Dawlish."
Elinor could sit it no longer. She almost ran out of
the room, and as soon as the door was closed, burst into
tears of joy, which at first she thought would never cease.
Edward, who had till then looked any where, rather
than at her, saw her hurry away, and perhaps saw --
or even heard, her emotion; for immediately afterwards
he fell into a reverie, which no remarks, no inquiries,
no affectionate address of Mrs. Dashwood could penetrate,
and at last, without saying a word, quitted the room,
and walked out towards the village ---- leaving the others
in the greatest astonishment and perplexity on a change
in his situation, so wonderful and so sudden; -- a perplexity
which they had no means of lessening but by
their own conjectures.
AusSeSe361
Unaccountable, however, as the circumstances of
his release might appear to the whole family, it was
certain that Edward was free: and to what purpose
that freedom would be employed was easily pre-determined
by all; -- for after experiencing the blessings of
one imprudent engagement, contracted without his
mother's consent, as he had already done for more than
four years, nothing less could be expected of him in the
failure of that, than the immediate contraction of another.
His errand at Barton, in fact, was a simple one. It
was only to ask Elinor to marry him; -- and considering
that he was not altogether inexperienced in such a
question, it might be strange that he should feel so
uncomfortable in the present case as he really did, so
much in need of encouragement and fresh air.
How soon he had walked himself into the proper
resolution, however, how soon an opportunity of exercising
it occurred, in what manner he expressed himself,
and how he was received, need not be particularly told.
This only need be said; -- that when they all sat down
to table at four o'clock, about three hours after his arrival,
he had secured his lady, engaged her mother's consent,
and was not only in the rapturous profession of the lover,
but in the reality of reason and truth, one of the happiest
of men. His situation indeed was more than commonly
joyful. He had more than the ordinary triumph of
accepted love to swell his heart, and raise his spirits.
He was released without any reproach to himself, from
an entanglement which had long formed his misery,
from a woman whom he had long ceased to love; -- and
elevated at once to that security with another, which
he must have thought of almost with despair, as soon as
he had learnt to consider it with desire. He was brought,
not from doubt or suspense, but from misery to happiness;
AusSeSe362
-- and the change was openly spoken in such
a genuine, flowing, grateful cheerfulness, as his friends
had never witnessed in him before.
His heart was now open to Elinor, all its weaknesses,
all its errors confessed, and his first boyish attachment
to Lucy treated with all the philosophic dignity of
twenty-four.
"It was a foolish, idle inclination on my side,"
said
he,
"the consequence of ignorance of the world -- and
want of employment. Had my mother given me some
active profession when I was removed at eighteen from
the care of Mr. Pratt, I think -- nay, I am sure, it would
never have happened; for though I left Longstaple
with what I thought, at the time, a most unconquerable
preference for his niece, yet had I then had any pursuit,
any object to engage my time and keep me at a distance
from her for a few months, I should very soon have
outgrown the fancied attachment, especially by mixing
more with the world, as in such a case I must have done.
But instead of having anything to do, instead of having
any profession chosen for me, or being allowed to chuse
any myself, I returned home to be completely idle;
and for the first twelvemonth afterwards, I had not
even the nominal employment, which belonging to
the university would have given me, for I was not
entered at Oxford till I was nineteen. I had therefore
nothing in the world to do, but to fancy myself in love;
and as my mother did not make my home in every
respect comfortable, as I had no friend, no companion
in my brother, and disliked new acquaintance, it was
not unnatural for me to be very often at Longstaple,
where I always felt myself at home, and was always sure
of a welcome; and accordingly I spent the greatest part
of my time there from eighteen to nineteen: Lucy
appeared everything that was amiable and obliging.
She was pretty too -- at least I thought so then, and I had
seen so little of other women, that I could make no
comparisons, and see no defects. Considering everything,
therefore, I hope, foolish as our engagement was, foolish as
AusSeSe363
it has since in every way been proved, it was not at the
time an unnatural, or an inexcusable piece of folly."
The change which a few hours had wrought in the
minds and the happiness of the Dashwoods, was such --
so great -- as promised them all, the satisfaction of a
sleepless night. Mrs. Dashwood, too happy to be comfortable,
knew not how to love Edward, nor praise Elinor
enough, how to be enough thankful for his release
without wounding his delicacy, nor how at once to give
them leisure for unrestrained conversation together, and
yet enjoy, as she wished, the sight and society of both.
Marianne could speak her happiness only by tears.
Comparisons would occur -- regrets would arise; -- and
her joy, though sincere as her love for her sister, was of
a kind to give her neither spirits nor language.
But Elinor -- How are her feelings to be described? --
From the moment of learning that Lucy was married
to another, that Edward was free, to the moment of his
justifying the hopes which had so instantly followed,
she was everything by turns but tranquil. But when
the second moment had passed, when she found every
doubt, every solicitude removed, compared her situation
with what so lately it had been, -- saw him honourably
released from his former engagement, saw him instantly
profiting by the release, to address herself and declare
an affection as tender, as constant as she had ever supposed
it to be, -- she was oppressed, she was overcome
by her own felicity; -- and happily disposed as is the
human mind to be easily familiarized with any change
for the better, it required several hours to give sedateness
to her spirits, or any degree of tranquillity to her heart.
Edward was now fixed at the cottage at least for a
week; -- for whatever other claims might be made on
him, it was impossible that less than a week should be
given up to the enjoyment of Elinor's company, or suffice
to say half that was to be said of the past, the present,
and the future; -- for though a very few hours spent
in the hard labour of incessant talking will dispatch
more subjects than can really be in common between
AusSeSe364
any two rational creatures, yet with lovers it is different.
Between them no subject is finished, no communication is
even made, till it has been made at least twenty times over.
Lucy's marriage, the unceasing and reasonable wonder
among them all, formed of course one of the earliest
discussions of the lovers; -- and Elinor's particular knowledge
of each party made it appear to her in every view,
as one of the most extraordinary and unaccountable
circumstances she had ever heard. How they could be
thrown together, and by what attraction Robert could
be drawn on to marry a girl, of whose beauty she had
herself heard him speak without any admiration, -- a girl
too already engaged to his brother, and on whose account
that brother had been thrown off by his family -- it was
beyond her comprehension to make out. To her own
heart it was a delightful affair, to her imagination it was
even a ridiculous one, but to her reason, her judgment,
it was completely a puzzle.
Edward could only attempt an explanation by supposing,
that perhaps at first accidentally meeting, the
vanity of the one had been so worked on by the flattery
of the other, as to lead by degrees to all the rest. Elinor
remembered whatRobert had told her in Harley-street,
of his opinion of what his own mediation in his brother's
affairs might have done, if applied to in time. She
repeated it to Edward.
"That was exactly like Robert," --
was his immediate
observation. --
"And that,"
he presently added,
"might
perhaps be in his head when the acquaintance between
them first began. And Lucy perhaps at first might think
only of procuring his good offices in my favour. Other
designs might afterwards arise."
How long it had been carrying on between them,
however, he was equally at a loss with herself to make
out; for at Oxford, where he had remained by choice
ever since his quitting London, he had had no means
of hearing of her but from herself, and her letters to
the very last were neither less frequent, nor less affectionate
than usual. Not the smallest suspicion, therefore,
AusSeSe365
had ever occurred to prepare him for what followed; --
and when at last it burst on him in a letter from Lucy
herself, he had been for some time, he believed, half
stupified between the wonder, the horror, and the joy of
such a deliverance. He put the letter into Elinor's hands.
"Dear Sir,
Being very sure I have long lost your affections,
I have thought myself at liberty to bestow my own on
another, and have no doubt of being as happy with him
as I once used to think I might be with you; but I scorn
to accept a hand while the heart was another's. Sincerely
wish you happy in your choice, and it shall not be my fault
if we are not always good friends, as our near relationship
now makes proper. I can safely say I owe you no ill-will,
and am sure you will be too generous to do us any ill
offices. Your brother has gained my affections entirely,
and as we could not live without one another, we are
just returned from the altar, and are now on our way to
Dawlish for a few weeks, which place your dear brother
has great curiosity to see, but thought I would first
trouble you with these few lines, and shall always remain,
Your sincere well-wisher, friend, and sister,
LUCY FERRARS.
I have burnt all your letters, and will return your
picture the first opportunity. Please to destroy my
scrawls -- but the ring with my hair you are very welcome
to keep."
Elinor read and returned it without any comment.
"I will not ask your opinion of it as a composition,"
said Edward. --
"For worlds would not I have had
a letter of her's seen by you in former days. -- In a sister
it is bad enough, but in a wife! -- how I have blushed
over the pages of her writing! -- and I believe I may
say that since the first half year of our foolish -- business
-- this is the only letter I ever received from her, of which
the substance made me any amends for the defect of the
style."
AusSeSe366
"However it may have come about,"
said Elinor,
after a pause --
"they are certainly married. And your
mother has brought on herself a most appropriate
punishment. The independence she settled on Robert,
through resentment against you, has put it in his power
to make his own choice; and she has actually been
bribing one son with a thousand a-year, to do the very
deed which she disinherited the other for intending to
do. She will hardly be less hurt, I suppose, by Robert's
marrying Lucy, than she would have been by your
marrying her."
"She will be more hurt by it, for Robert always was
her favourite. -- She will be more hurt by it, and on the
same principle will forgive him much sooner."
In what state the affair stood at present between
them, Edward knew not, for no communication with any
of his family had yet been attempted by him. He had
quitted Oxford within four and twenty hours after
Lucy's letter arrived, and with only one object before
him, the nearest road to Barton, had had no leisure to
form any scheme of conduct, with which that road did not
hold the most intimate connection. He could do nothing
till he were assured of his fate with Miss Dashwood; and
by his rapidity in seeking that fate, it is to be supposed,
in spite of the jealousy with which he had once thought
of Colonel Brandon, in spite of the modesty with which
he rated his own deserts, and the politeness with which
he talked of his doubts, he did not, upon the whole,
expect a very cruel reception. It was his business, however,
to say that he did, and he said it very prettily.
What he might say on the subject a twelvemonth after,
must be referred to the imagination of husbands and
wives.
That Lucy had certainly meant to deceive, to go off
with a flourish of malice against him in her message
by Thomas, was perfectly clear to Elinor; and Edward
himself, now thoroughly enlightened on her character,
had no scruple in believing her capable of the utmost
meanness of wanton ill-nature. Though his eyes had
AusSeSe367
been long opened, even before his acquaintance with
Elinor began, to her ignorance and a want of liberality
in some of her opinions -- they had been equally imputed,
by him, to her want of education; and till her last letter
reached him, he had always believed her to be a well-disposed,
good-hearted girl, and thoroughly attached
to himself. Nothing but such a persuasion could have
prevented his putting an end to an engagement, which,
long before the discovery of it laid him open to his
mother's anger, had been a continual source of disquiet
and regret to him.
"I thought it my duty,"
said he,
"independent of
my feelings, to give her the option of continuing the
engagement or not, when I was renounced by my mother,
and stood to all appearance without a friend in the
world to assist me. In such a situation as that, where
there seemed nothing to tempt the avarice or the vanity
of any living creature, how could I suppose, when she
so earnestly, so warmly insisted on sharing my fate,
whatever it might be, that any thing but the most
disinterested affection was her inducement? And
even now, I cannot comprehend on what motive she
acted, or what fancied advantage it could be to her, to
be fettered to a man for whom she had not the smallest
regard, and who had only two thousand pounds in the
world. She could not foresee that Colonel Brandon
would give me a living."
"No, but she might suppose that something would
occur in your favour; that your own family might in time
relent. And at any rate, she lost nothing by continuing
the engagement, for she has proved that it fettered
neither her inclination nor her actions. The connection
was certainly a respectable one, and probably gained
her consideration among her friends; and, if nothing
more advantageous occurred, it would be better for her
to marry you than be single."
Edward was of course immediately convinced that
nothing could have been more natural than Lucy's conduct,
nor more self-evident than the motive of it.
AusSeSe368
Elinor scolded him, harshly as ladies always scold the
imprudence which compliments themselves, for having
spent so much time with them at Norland, when he
must have felt his own inconstancy.
"Your behaviour was certainly very wrong,"
said she,
"because -- to say nothing of my own conviction, our
relations were all led away by it to fancy and expect
what, as you were then situated, could never be."
He could only plead an ignorance of his own heart,
and a mistaken confidence in the force of his engagement.
"I was simple enough to think, that because my faith
was plighted to another, there could be no danger in
my being with you; and that the consciousness of my
engagement was to keep my heart as safe and sacred as
my honour. I felt that I admired you, but I told myself
it was only friendship; and till I began to make comparisons
between yourself and Lucy, I did not know how
far I was got. After that, I suppose, I was wrong in
remaining so much in Sussex, and the arguments with
which I reconciled myself to the expediency of it, were
no better than these: -- The danger is my own; I am
doing no injury to anybody but myself."
Elinor smiled, and shook her head.
Edward heard with pleasure of Colonel Brandon's
being expected at the Cottage, as he really wished not
only to be better acquainted with him, but to have
an opportunity of convincing him that he no longer
resented his giving him the living of Delaford --
"Which,
at present,"
said he,
"after thanks so ungraciously
delivered as mine were on the occasion, he must think
I have never forgiven him for offering."
Now he felt astonished himself that he had never yet
been to the place. But so little interest had he taken
in the matter, that he owed all his knowledge of the
house, garden, and glebe, extent of the parish, condition
of the land, and rate of the tythes, to Elinor herself,
who had heard so much of it from Colonel Brandon,
and heard it with so much attention, as to be entirely
mistress of the subject.
AusSeSe369
One question after this only remained undecided,
between them, one difficulty only was to be overcome.
They were brought together by mutual affection, with
the warmest approbation of their real friends, their
intimate knowledge of each other seemed to make their
happiness certain -- and they only wanted something
to live upon. Edward had two thousand pounds, and
Elinor one, which, with Delaford living, was all that they
could call their own; for it was impossible that Mrs. Dashwood
should advance anything, and they were
neither of them quite enough in love to think that three
hundred and fifty pounds a-year would supply them
with the comforts of life.
Edward was not entirely without hopes of some
favourable change in his mother towards him; and on
that he rested for the residue of their income. But Elinor
had no such dependance; for since Edward would still
be unable to marry Miss Morton, and his chusing herself
had been spoken of in Mrs. Ferrars's flattering language
as only a lesser evil than his chusing Lucy Steele, she
feared that Robert's offence would serve no other
purpose than to enrich Fanny.
About four days after Edward's arrival, Colonel Brandon
appeared, to complete Mrs. Dashwood's satisfaction,
and to give her the dignity of having, for the
first time since her living at Barton, more company with
her than her house would hold. Edward was allowed
to retain the privilege of first comer, and Colonel Brandon
therefore walked every night to his old quarters at the
Park; from whence he usually returned in the morning,
early enough to interrupt the lovers' first te--te-a`-te--te
before breakfast.
A three weeks' residence at Delaford, where, in his
evening hours at least, he had little to do but to calculate
the disproportion between thirty-six and seventeen,
brought him to Barton in a temper of mind which
needed all the improvement in Marianne's looks, all
the kindness of her welcome, and all the encouragement
of her mother's language, to make it cheerful.
AusSeSe370
Among such friends, however, and such flattery, he did
revive. No rumour of Lucy's marriage had yet reached
him; -- he knew nothing of what had passed; and the
first hours of his visit were consequently spent in hearing
and in wondering. Every thing was explained to him
by Mrs. Dashwood, and he found fresh reason to rejoice
in what he had done for Mr. Ferrars, since eventually it
promoted the interest of Elinor.
It would be needless to say, that the gentlemen
advanced in the good opinion of each other, as they
advanced in each other's acquaintance, for it could not
be otherwise. Their resemblance in good principles and
good sense, in disposition and manner of thinking, would
probably have been sufficient to unite them in friendship,
without any other attraction; but their being in love
with two sisters, and two sisters fond of each other,
made that mutual regard inevitable and immediate,
which might otherwise have waited the effect of time
and judgment.
The letters from town, which a few days before would
have made every nerve in Elinor's body thrill with transport,
not arrived to be read with less emotion than
mirth. Mrs. Jennings wrote to tell the wonderful tale,
to vent her honest indignation against the jilting girl,
and pour forth her compassion towards poor Mr. Edward,
who, she was sure, had quite doted upon the worthless
hussey, and was now, by all accounts, almost broken-hearted,
at Oxford. --
"I do think,"
she continued,
"nothing was ever carried on so sly; for it was but two
days before Lucy called and sat a couple of hours with
me. Not a soul suspected anything of the matter, not
even Nancy, who, poor soul! came crying to me the day
after, in a great fright for fear of Mrs. Ferrars, as well
as not knowing how to get to Plymouth; for Lucy it
seems borrowed all her money before she went off to
be married, on purpose we suppose to make a shew with,
and poor Nancy had not seven shillings in the world; --
so I was very glad to give her five guineas to take her
down to Exeter, where she thinks of staying three or
AusSeSe371
four weeks with Mrs. Burgess, in hopes, as I tell her, to
fall in with the Doctor again. And I must say that
Lucy's crossness not to take her along with them in the
chaise is worse than all. Poor Mr. Edward! I cannot
get him out of my head, but you must send for him to
Barton, and Miss Marianne must try to comfort him."
Mr. Dashwood's strains were more solemn.
Mrs. Ferrars
was the most unfortunate of women -- poor
Fanny had suffered agonies of sensibility -- and he
considered the existence of each, under such a blow,
with grateful wonder. Robert's offence was unpardonable,
but Lucy's was infinitely worse. Neither of them
was ever again to be mentioned to Mrs. Ferrars; and
even, if she might hereafter be induced to forgive her
son, his wife should never be acknowledged as her
daughter, nor be permitted to appear in her presence.
The secrecy with which every thing had been carried on
between them, was rationally treated as enormously
heightening the crime, because, had any suspicion of it
occurred to the others, proper measures would have
been taken to prevent the marriage; and he called on
Elinor to join with him in regretting that Lucy's engagement
with Edward had not rather been fulfilled, than
that she should thus be the means of spreading misery
farther in the family. -- He thus continued:
"Mrs. Ferrars has never yet mentioned Edward's
name, which does not surprise us; but to our great
astonishment, not a line has been received from him
on the occasion. Perhaps, however, he is kept silent
by his fear of offending, and I shall, therefore, give him
a hint, by a line to Oxford, that his sister and I both
think a letter of proper submission from him, addressed
perhaps to Fanny, and by her shewn to her mother,
might not be taken amiss; for we all know the tenderness
of Mrs. Ferrars's heart, and that she wishes for
nothing so much as to be on good terms with her children."
This paragraph was of some importance to the
prospects and conduct of Edward. It determined him
AusSeSe372
to attempt a reconciliation, though not exactly in the
manner pointed out by their brother and sister.
"A letter of proper submission!"
repeated he;
"would they have me beg my mother's pardon for
Robert's ingratitude to her, and breach of honour to
me? -- I can make no submission -- I am grown neither
humble nor penitent by what has passed. -- I am grown
very happy, but that would not interest. -- I know of no
submission that is proper for me to make."
"You may certainly ask to be forgiven,"
said Elinor,
"because you have offended; -- and I should think you
might now venture so far as to profess some concern for
having ever formed the engagement which drew on you
your mother's anger."
He agreed that he might.
"And when she has forgiven you, perhaps a little
humility may be convenient while acknowledging
a second engagement, almost as imprudent in her eyes,
as the first."
He had nothing to urge against it, but still resisted
the idea of a letter of proper submission; and therefore,
to make it easier to him, as he declared a much greater
willingness to make mean concessions by word of mouth
than on paper, it was resolved that, instead of writing
to Fanny, he should go to London, and personally
intreat her good offices in his favour. --
"And if they
really do interest themselves,"
said Marianne, in her new
character of candour,
"in bringing about a reconciliation,
I shall think that even John and Fanny are not entirely
without merit."
After a visit on Colonel Brandon's side of only three
or four days, the two gentlemen quitted Barton together.
-- They were to go immediately to Delaford, that Edward
might have some personal knowledge of his future home,
and assist his patron and friend in deciding on what
improvements were needed to it; and from thence,
after staying there a couple of nights, he was to proceed
on his journey to town.
AusSeSe373
After a proper resistance on the part of Mrs. Ferrars,
just so violent and so steady as to preserve her from
that reproach which she always seemed fearful of
incurring, the reproach of being too amiable, Edward
was admitted to her presence, and pronounced to be
again her son.
Her family had of late been exceedingly fluctuating.
For many years of her life she had had two sons; but
the crime and annihilation of Edward a few weeks ago,
had robbed her of one; the similar annihilation of
Robert had left her for a fortnight without any; and
now, by the resuscitation of Edward, she had one again.
In spite of his being allowed once more to live, however,
he did not feel the continuance of his existence secure,
till he had revealed his present engagement; for the
publication of that circumstance, he feared, might give
a sudden turn to his constitution, and carry him off as
rapidly as before. With apprehensive caution therefore
it was revealed, and he was listened to with unexpected
calmness. Mrs. Ferrars at first reasonably endeavoured
to dissuade him from marrying Miss Dashwood, by
every argument in her power; -- told him, that
in Miss Morton
he would have a woman of higher rank and
larger fortune; --
and enforced the assertion, by observing
that
Miss Morton was the daughter of a nobleman
with thirty thousand pounds, while Miss Dashwood
was only the daughter of a private gentleman, with no
more than three;
but when she found that, though
perfectly admitting the truth of her representation, he
was by no means inclined to be guided by it, she judged
it wisest, from the experience of the past, to submit --
and therefore, after such an ungracious delay as she owed
to her own dignity, and as served to prevent every
AusSeSe374
suspicion of good-will, she issued her decree of consent
to the marriage of Edward and Elinor.
What she would engage to do towards augmenting
their income, was next to be considered; and here it
plainly appeared, that though Edward was now her only
son, he was by no means her eldest; for while Robert
was inevitably endowed with a thousand pounds a-year,
not the smallest objection was made against Edward's
taking orders for the sake of two hundred and fifty at
the utmost; nor was anything promised either for the
present or in future, beyond the ten thousand pounds,
which had been given with Fanny.
It was as much, however, as was desired, and more
than was expected by Edward and Elinor; and Mrs. Ferrars
herself, by her shuffling excuses, seemed the only
person surprised at her not giving more.
With an income quite sufficient to their wants thus
secured to them, they had nothing to wait for after
Edward was in possession of the living, but the readiness
of the house, to whichColonel Brandon, with an eager
desire for the accommodation of Elinor, was making
considerable improvements; and after waiting some
time for their completion, after experiencing, as usual,
a thousand disappointments and delays, from the unaccountable
dilatoriness of the workmen, Elinor, as usual,
broke through the first positive resolution of not marrying
till every thing was ready, and the ceremony took
place in Barton church early in the autumn.
The first month after their marriage was spent with
their friend at the Mansion-house, from whence they could
superintend the progress of the Parsonage, and direct
every thing as they liked on the spot; -- could chuse papers,
project shrubberies, and invent a sweep. Mrs. Jennings's
prophecies, though rather jumbled together, were chiefly
fulfilled; for she was able to visit Edward and his wife in
their Parsonage by Michaelmas, and she found in Elinor
and her husband, as she really believed, one of the happiest
couple in the world. They had in fact nothing to wish
AusSeSe375
for, but the marriage of Colonel Brandon and Marianne,
and rather better pasturage for their cows.
They were visited on their first settling by almost all
their relations and friends. Mrs. Ferrars came to inspect
the happiness which she was almost ashamed of
having authorised; and even the Dashwoods were at
the expense of a journey from Sussex to do them honour.
"I will not say that I am disappointed, my dear
sister,"
said John, as they were walking together one
morning before the gates of Delaford House,
"that would
be saying too much, for certainly you have been one of
the most fortunate young women in the world, as it is.
But, I confess, it would give me great pleasure to call
Colonel Brandon brother. His property here, his place,
his house, every thing in such respectable and excellent
condition! -- and his woods! -- I have not seen such
timber any where in Dorsetshire, as there is now standing
in Delaford Hanger! -- And though, perhaps, Marianne
may not seem exactly the person to attract him -- yet I
think it would altogether be adviseable for you to have
them now frequently staying with you, for as Colonel Brandon
seems a great deal at home, nobody can tell
what may happen -- for, when people are much thrown
together, and see little of anybody else -- and it will
always be in your power to set her off to advantage,
and so forth; -- in short, you may as well give her a
chance -- You understand me." --
But though Mrs. Ferrars did come to see them, and
always treated them with the make-believe of decent
affection, they were never insulted by her real favour
and preference. That was due to the folly of Robert, and
the cunning of his wife; and it was earned by them
before many months had passed away. The selfish
sagacity of the latter, which had at first drawn Robert
into the scrape, was the principal instrument of his
deliverance from it; for her respectful humility, assiduous
attentions, and endless flatteries, as soon as the
smallest opening was given for their exercise, reconciled
AusSeSe376
Mrs. Ferrars to his choice, and re-established him completely
in her favour.
The whole of Lucy's behaviour in the affair, and the
prosperity which crowned it, therefore, may be held forth
as a most encouraging instance of what an earnest, an
unceasing attention to self-interest, however its progress
may be apparently obstructed, will do in securing every
advantage of fortune, with no other sacrifice than that
of time and conscience. When Robert first sought her
acquaintance, and privately visited her in Bartlett's Buildings,
it was only with the view imputed to him by
his brother. He merely meant to persuade her to give
up the engagement; and as there could be nothing to
overcome but the affection of both, he naturally expected
that one or two interviews would settle the matter. In
that point, however, and that only, he erred; -- for
though Lucy soon gave him hopes that his eloquence
would convince her in time, another visit, another
conversation, was always wanted to produce this conviction.
Some doubts always lingered in her mind when
they parted, which could only be removed by another
half hour's discourse with himself. His attendance was
by this means secured, and the rest followed in course.
Instead of talking of Edward, they came gradually to talk
only of Robert, -- a subject on which he had always more
to say than on any other, and in which she soon betrayed
an interest even equal to his own; and in short, it
became speedily evident to both, that he had entirely
supplanted his brother. He was proud of his conquest,
proud of tricking Edward, and very proud of marrying
privately without his mother's consent. What immediately
followed is known. They passed some months in
great happiness at Dawlish; for she had many relations
and old acquaintance to cut -- and he drew several
plans for magnificent cottages; -- and from thence
returning to town, procured the forgiveness of Mrs. Ferrars,
by the simple expedient of asking it, which,
at Lucy's instigation, was adopted. The forgiveness at
AusSeSe377
first, indeed, as was reasonable, comprehended only
Robert; and Lucy, who had owed his mother no duty,
and therefore could have transgressed none, still remained
some weeks longer unpardoned. But perseverance
in humility of conduct and messages, in self-condemnation
for Robert's offence, and gratitude for the unkindness
she was treated with, procured her in time the haughty
notice which overcame her by its graciousness, and led
soon afterwards, by rapid degrees, to the highest state
of affection and influence. Lucy became as necessary
to Mrs. Ferrars, as either Robert or Fanny; and while
Edward was never cordially forgiven for having once
intended to marry her, and Elinor, though superior to
her in fortune and birth, was spoken of as an intruder,
she was in every thing considered, and always openly
acknowledged, to be a favourite child. They settled in
town, received very liberal assistance from Mrs. Ferrars,
were on the best terms imaginable with the Dashwoods;
and setting aside the jealousies and ill-will continually
subsisting between Fanny and Lucy, in which their
husbands of course took a part, as well as the frequent
domestic disagreements between Robert and Lucy
themselves, nothing could exceed the harmony in which
they all lived together.
WhatEdward had done to forfeit the right of eldest
son, might have puzzled many people to find out; and
whatRobert had done to succeed to it, might have
puzzled them still more. It was an arrangement, however,
justified in its effects, if not in its cause; for
nothing ever appeared in Robert's style of living or of
talking, to give a suspicion of his regretting the extent
of his income, as either leaving his brother too little,
or bringing himself too much; -- and if Edward might
be judged from the ready discharge of his duties in every
particular, from an increasing attachment to his wife
and his home, and from the regular cheefulness of his
spirits, he might be supposed no less contented with his
lot, no less free from every wish of an exchange.
AusSeSe378
Elinor's marriage divided her as little from her
family as could well be contrived, without rendering
the cottage at Barton entirely useless, for her mother
and sisters spent much more than half their time with her.
Mrs. Dashwood was acting on motives of policy as well
as pleasure in the frequency of her visits at Delaford;
for her wish of bringing Marianne and Colonel Brandon
together was hardly less earnest, though rather more
liberal than whatJohn had expressed. It was now her
darling object. Precious as was the company of her
daughter to her, she desired nothing so much as to give
up its constant enjoyment to her valued friend; and to
see Marianne settled at the mansion-house was equally
the wish of Edward and Elinor. They each felt his
sorrows, and their own obligations, and Marianne, by
general consent, was to be the reward of all.
With such a confederacy against her -- with a knowledge
so intimate of his goodness -- with a conviction of
his fond attachment to herself, which at last, though
long after it was observable to everybody else -- burst on
her -- what could she do?
Marianne Dashwood was born to an extraordinary
fate. She was born to discover the falsehood of her
own opinions, and to counteract, by her conduct,
her most favourite maxims. She was born to overcome
an affection formed so late in life as at seventeen, and
with no sentiment superior to strong esteem and lively
friendship, voluntarily to give her hand to another! --
and that other, a man who had suffered no less than
herself under the event of a former attachment, whom,
two years before, she had considered too old to be
married, -- and who still sought the constitutional safeguard
of a flannel waistcoat!
But so it was. Instead of falling a sacrifice to an
irresistible passion, as once she had fondly flattered
herself with expecting, -- instead of remaining even for ever
with her mother, and finding her only pleasures in
retirement and study, as afterwards in her more calm
AusSeSe379
and sober judgment she had determined on, -- she found
herself at nineteen, submitting to new attachments,
entering on new duties, placed in a new home, a wife,
the mistress of a family, and the patroness of a village.
Colonel Brandon was now as happy, as all those who
best loved him, believed he deserved to be; -- in Marianne
he was consoled for every past affliction; -- her regard
and her society restored his mind to animation, and his
spirits to cheerfulness; and that Marianne found her
own happiness in forming his, was equally the persuasion
and delight of each observing friend. Marianne
could never love by halves; and her whole heart became,
in time, as much devoted to her husband, as it had once
been to Willoughby.
Willoughby could not hear of her marriage without
a pang; and his punishment was soon afterwards
complete in the voluntary forgiveness of Mrs. Smith,
who, by stating his marriage with a woman of character,
as the source of her clemency, gave him reason for
believing that had be behaved with honour towards
Marianne, he might at once have been happy and rich.
That his repentance of misconduct, which thus brought
it own punishment, was sincere, need not be doubted;
-- nor that he long thought of Colonel Brandon with
envy, and of Marianne with regret. But that he was
for ever inconsolable, that he fled from society, or
contracted an habitual gloom of temper, or died of
a broken heart, must not be depended on -- for he did
neither. He lived to exert, and frequently to enjoy
himself. His wife was not always out of humour, nor
his home always uncomfortable; and in his breed of
horses and dogs, and in sporting of every kind, he found
no inconsiderable degree of domestic felicity.
For Marianne, however -- in spite of his incivility in
surviving her loss -- he always retained that decided
regard which interested him in everything that befell her,
and made her his secret standard of perfection in woman;
-- and many a rising beauty would be slighted by him
AusSeSe380
in after-days as bearing no comparison with Mrs. Brandon.
Mrs. Dashwood was prudent enough to remain at the
cottage, without attempting a removal to Delaford;
and fortunately for Sir John and Mrs. Jennings, when
Marianne was taken from them, Margaret had reached
an age highly suitable for dancing, and not very ineligible
for being supposed to have a lover.
Between Barton and Delaford, there was that constant
communication which strong family affection
would naturally dicate; -- and among the merits and
the happiness of Elinor and Marianne, let it not be
ranked as the least considerable, that though sisters,
and living almost within sight of each other, they could
live without disagreement between themselves, or producing
coolness between their husbands.